DUKE UNIVERSITY LIBRARY Digitized by the Internet Archive in 2017 with funding from Duke University Libraries https://archive.org/details/passingofkorea01hulb THE PASSING OF KOREA THE EMPEROR OF KOREA •i THE PASSING OF KOREA BY HOMER B. ^ULBERT A.M., F.R.G.S. Author of “The History of Korea,” “Comparative Grammar OF Korean and Dravidian,” “A Search for the Siberian Klondike,” etc. Illustrated from Photographs ii -f o o ' * NEW YORK Doubleday, Page & Company 1909 Copyright, 1906, by Doubleday, Page & Company Published, September, 1906 All righi% reser'vedy including that of translation into foreign languages^ including the Scandina'vian ‘? j ' -1 1 5 P £> 0 0 SeTlicatelf TO HIS MAJESTY THE EMPEROR OF KOREA AS A TOKEN OF HIGH ESTEEM AND A PLEDGE OF UNWAVERING ALLEGIANCE, AT A TIME WHEN CALUMNY HAS DONE ITS WORST AND JUSTICE HAS SUFFERED AN ECLIPSE AND TO THE KOREAN PEOPLE WHO ARE NOW WITNESSING THE PASSING OF OLD KOREA TO GIVE PLACE TO A NEW, WHEN THE SPIRIT OF THE NATION, QUICKENED BY THE TOUCH OF FIRE, SHALL HAVE PROVED THAT THOUGH “SLEEP IS THE IMAGE OF DEATH ” IT IS NOT DEATH ITSELF PREFACE M any excellent books have been written about Korea, each of them approaching the subject from a slightly different angle. In the present volume I have attempted to handle the theme from a more intimate standpoint than that of the casual tourist. Much that is contained in this present volume is matter that has come under the writer’s personal observation or has been derived directly from Koreans or from Korean works. Some of this matter has already appeared in The Korea Review and elsewhere. The historical survey is a condensation from the writer’s “ History of Korea. ” This book is a labour of love, undertaken in the days of Korea’s distress, with the purpose of interesting the reading public in a country and a people that have been frequently maligned and sel- dom appreciated. They are overshadowed by China on the one hand in respect of numbers, and by Japan oiji th^ other, in respect of wit. They are neither good merchants lil 505 - This is almost as many as the recent census report gives, which is mani- festly absurd. Even at that early time the estimate was doubt- less far below the truth, and the discrepancy has widened rather than narrowed during the interval. Party strife continued, and the annals are full of the ups and downs of these selfish and suicidal factions. Native records say that it was in 1686 that foreigners first entered Korea to preach the doctrines of Chris- tianity. We are not told their nationality, but they were prob- ably Chinese. Nothing is said of this in Ballet’s great work on the history of Roman Catholicism in Korea, and it is rather difficult to understand. It would hardly be found in the records, however, unless there was some slight ground for it. We are told that the doctrine made good progress at that time, but that some of the highest officials asked the King to send the for- eigners out of the country. The eighteenth century opened with the strife of parties at white heat, but there were bright spots in the picture. The great mountain fortress back of Seoul, called Pukhan, was completed in 1717, and the same King who put through this stupendous piece of work also made himself a wellnigh unique figure in history by prohibiting, under the severest penalties, the manu- facture or sale of intoxicating beverages of any kind. For years the drinking of such liquors was practically unknown. It is said that special police were stationed outside the gates, whose duty it was to smell the breath of every passer-by. No sinecure this! The governor of one of the northern provinces was exe- cuted because he failed to observe the letter of this law. With the year 1730 there began an era of grand reform in Korea. It bade fair to bring the land back to the standard set by the first kings of the dynasty. A mere list of the reforms instituted at that time will give us a glimpse at the condition of the people. The grandsons of all female slaves were declared free; irrigation reservoirs were built; a new model of the solar io8 THE PASSING OF KOREA system was made, to replace the one destroyed during the Jap- anese invasion; the cruel form of torture consisting of bending the bones of the lower leg was discontinued; granaries were built to store grain for use in times of famine ; torture with red- hot irons was done away; a war chariot was invented, having swords extending from the hubs of the wheels ; a detective force was formed to keep watch of officials; the size of whipping- rods was strictly limited; the custom of branding thieves by striking the forehead with a bunch of needles and then rubbing ink into the wound, was abrogated; the three-decked war-vessel was done away with, and the swifter “ Falcon Boat ” was sub- stituted; the length of the yardstick was carefully regulated and equalised throughout the country; the west and northeast gates of Seoul were roofed for the first time ; the use of silk was discouraged ; the corrupt miidang, or sorceress, class was out- lawed ; the great sewer of the capital was repaired and walled up ; all the serfs in Korea were emancipated. We are told that by this time the secret study of Roman Catholicism had resulted in the wide dissemination of that reli- gion in Whang-ha and Kang-wun provinces. This caused un- easiness at court, and the King gave orders to put down the growing church. This was more easily said than done, and, as no deaths resulted, it is probable that little more than threats were indulged in. In 1776 the census of the country showed a population of 7,006,248, which was an increase of over 2,300,000 in a century. This in itself attests the prosperity of the people. This rate of advance was probably very exceptional, and was largely due to the remarkably long and wise rule of King In-jong, whose reforms we have just recorded. It was about 1780 that the scholar Kwun Chul-sin gathered about him a company of men and went into the mountains to study the doctrines of Christianity. They possessed a single copy of a Christian work. They one and all determined to adopt the Faith. About the same time another young man met THE MAXCHU INVASION 109 in Peking the Franciscan, Alexandre de Govea, and was bap- tised. He brought back to Korea many books, crosses, images and other religious emblems. The town of Yang-geun is called the birthplace of Korean Roman Catholicism. In 1785 active operations were begun against the new religion, and a memorial was sent in to the King about it. The following year the embassy to Peking brought back many Catholic books. This was reported to the King, and a great stir was made. It was decided to cause a strict search to be made in future of all bag- gage of embassies returning to Korea. This same year marked one of the most disastrous scourges of cholera that ever swept the country. It is said that three hundred and seventy thousand perished. In Seoul alone there were eight thousand recoveries, which would indicate at least sixty thousand deaths, half the population of the city at that time. It was not until 1791 that the government began to take extreme measures against the Catholic converts. It began with the execution of two men who had buried their ancestral tablets. From this it extended until, in the eleventh moon of the year, four high officials, who had embraced the new faith, were seized and put to death. In the following year the Pope formally put the care of the Korean church into the hands of the Bishop of Peking, and this was almost immediately followed by the send- ing to Korea of the first regularly ordained priest in the person of Pere Tsiou, a Chinese. The end of the eighteenth century beheld a marked advance in the arts and sciences. Literature also came to the fore, and the King ordered the casting of two hundred thousand more printing-types like those that had been cast near the beginning of the dynasty. At the same time some two hundred and twenty thousand wooden types were also made. With these a large number of important works were published, touching upon law, religion, military tactics, ethics and the penal code. The opening of the nineteenth century saw the government thoroughly committed to the policy of extirpating Roman Cathol- 1 lO THE PASSING OF KOREA icism. The reason for this was the fear of foreign influence. It was not primarily because the government cared what reli- gion the people believed. The Japanese and Manchu invasions, which came so close together, made the government feel that there was no safety except in keeping as far as possible from all outside influences. It is for this reason that the year i8oi saw such a sanguinary persecution. About thirty people lost their lives, among whom were two princesses and the priest Tsiou. The two decades beginning with i8io were full of disaster for Korea. Floods, pestilences and famines followed thick upon :s •' ■’J''-' /■; - - -r - • A*/ y j '■. , rL > '3.. >t ' V -ir ..> xv..fii THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 133 The ex-regent was determined that Pak Yong-hyo should be gotten out of the way. To this end he concocted a scheme which, with the probable sanction of the Japanese, seemed to promise success. He laid before the King certain grave charges of treason against Pak, which, though not believed either by the King or the Queen, convinced them that it would be impossible to shield him from probable destruction ; for the people still called him a traitor, the ex-regent would spare no pains to see him put out of the way, and it was evident that the Japanese would not take any strong measures to protect him. The Queen called him up and advised him to make good his escape before action could be taken on the charge of treason. He complied, and forthwith escaped again to Japan. He had not as yet broken with the Japanese, and they were doubtless glad to help him away. It was early in July that he passed off the stage, perhaps for ever, and thus there were lost to Korea the services of one of the most genuinely patriotic Koreans of modern times. If the Japanese could have determinedly put the ex-regent in the back- ground, and aV wed Pak Yong-hyo to work out his plans on terms of amity with the royal family, all the evils which followed might easily have been averted. It was this act, as we believe, of allowing the ex-regent to carry out his scheme of personal revenge that caused the whole trouble, and there never was a time, before or since, when brighter hopes for Korea were more ruthlessly sacrificed. But progressive measures kept on apace, and during July the government issued new and important mining, quarantine and army regulations, and organised a domestic postal system. A valuable mining concession in the district of Un-san in the north was granted to an American syndicate, a transaction that has proved the most profitable, at least to the foreigner, of any attempt to open up the resources of Korea. Near the end of the month Korea suffered the misfortune of seeing Count Inouye retire from the legation in Seoul and return to Japan. Never did the Japanese have such need of a 134 THE PASSING OF KOREA strong and upright man in Seoul, and never had a Japanese min- ister in Seoul opportunity for greater distinction. There are those who believe that he despaired of accomplishing anything so long as the two opposing factions in Seoul were led by per- sonalities so strong and so implacable in their mutual hatred as the Queen and the ex-regent. It is not unlikely that he felt that until one or other of these should be permanently removed from the field of action there could be no real opportunity for the renovation of Korea. This by no means implies that he desired such removal to be effected by forcible means, but it is not un- natural to suppose that he must have given expression to the conviction as to the futility of doing anything under existing conditions in the peninsvda. There have been some who have believed that the Japanese authorities in Tokyo determined upon the removal of the obstacle in Seoul by any means in their power. Subsequent events gave some colour to this surmise, but we can- not and do not believe that the Japanese government was a party to the plot which ended in the tragedy of the following October, but that a fanatical and injudicious Japanese nvnister to Korea privately gave his sanction to an act which the Japanese govern- ment would have sternly forbidden had they been consulted. On the first day of September Viscount iMiura arrived from Japan to assume the duties of minister. Over a month had elapsed since the departure of Count Inouye. The viscount was an enthusiastic Buddhist, and evidently belonged to the old rather than the new Japan. He was, Avithal, a strenuous man. and is said to have considered the settlement of the Korean difficulties merely a matter of prompt and vigorous action. At the time of his arrival the ex-regent was living at his summer-house near the river, and from the very first he was in close relations with the new Japanese minister. It was quite evident that the latter had espoused the cause of the ex-regent as against the Queen, and that instead of trying to close the breach which Avas constantly Avidening betAveen these tAvo poAverful personages he Avas pre- paring to make use of this estrangement to further AA'hat he sup- THE ASSASSINATION OF THE OUEEN 135 posed to be the interests of Japan. Min Yong-whan, the most lK)werful of the Queen’s friends, was sent to America as minister ; and e^'erything was ready for the coup which had undoubtedly been determined upon. From the mass of conflicting evidence, charge and counter-charge, it is difficult to escape the following conclusion. There were two different policies held by political parties in Japan as to the best way to handle the Korean ques- tion : one was what we may call the radical policy which advo- cated strong measures and the instant and complete overthrow of all opposition to the will of Japan in the peninsula; the other or conservative policy looked to the attainment of the same object by gradual and pacific means. It seems that the failure of Count Inouye to accomplish anything definite in the line of a settlement of internal dissensions at Seoul resulted in the appointment of Viscount Miura as an exponent of the extreme radical policy. He was supposed to do prompt work, but what that work would be, perhaps neither he nor his constituency saw clearly before his arrival on the scene. It would be going much too far to say that the assassination of the Queen was once thought of, and yet it is more than likely that those most conversant with conditions in Seoul felt that by some means or other her enormous influence must be permanently checked, and that affairs must be so man- aged that she should have nothing more to do in the handling of questions of state. How this was to be accomplished neither Miura nor any of his advisers knew until he came and looked over the field. For this reason it is easy to see how the ex-regent would be the first man in Korea with whom the Japanese minister would wish to consult, and it is certain that the Taiwunkun would have but one word to say as to the solution of the difficulty. His experience of twenty years had convinced him that there was only one way to accomplish the object which the minister had in view ; and while Viscount Miura naturally shrunk from adopting that course it would seem he too was at last convinced that it was the only feasible plan. That he actually advised it in the 136 THE PASSING OF KOREA first instance, we do not believe ; but that he fell in with the plan which others suggested and which they offered to carry through without his personal intervention there can be no doubt whatever. Nor can there be any question as to where the responsibility for the tragedy rests; not with the Japanese government, surely, except in so far as its appointment of such a man to the difficult post of minister to Seoul may reflect upon its wisdom. It has sometimes been hinted that Count Inouye upon his return to Japan advocated some such policy as that which was carried out by Marc|uis Miura, but there is nothing to indicate that this is other than a libel, for the whole career of that able statesman gives the he to such suspicions, and his despatches to his government show the very opposite spirit from that intimated in these slanderous reports. For instance, we have the extract from his reports, read in the Japanese parliament, in which he says : “ On one occasion the Queen observed to me, ‘ It was a matter of extreme regret to me that the overtures made by me toward Japan were rejected. The Taiwunkun, on the other hand, who showed his unfriendliness toward Japan, was assisted by the Japanese minister to rise in power.’ In reply to this I gave as far as I could an explanation of these things to the Queen, and after allaying her suspicions I further explained that it was the true and sincere desire of the Emperor and government of Japan to place the independence of Korea on a firm basis, and in the meantime to strengthen the royal house of Korea. In the e^-ent of any member of the royal family, or indeed any Korean, attempting treason against the royal house, I ga'S'e the assurance that the Japanese government would not fail to protect the royal house even by force of arms.” This unequivocal promise of protection was made by Count Inouye just before his departure for Japan, and we do not and cannot believe that he expressed anjiihing but his honest senti- ments and those of the government that was back of him. It has been urged that the action of the Japanese government in THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 137 acquitting Viscount Miura in the face of the evidence given proves the complicity of that government in the outrage and its previous knowledge that it was to be perpetrated, but this does not necessarily follow. That government was doubtless unwill- ing to stultify itself by acknowledging that its accredited minister to Korea was actually guilty of the crime indicated in the charge. This attempt to evade the responsibility was of course futile. There was no escape from the dilemma in which that government was placed, but the deduction that it was parficeps criniinis in the events of October 8 is unbelievable. It was the work of Viscount Miura and of his staff, and of them alone, as is shown by the decision of the Japanese Court of Preliminary Inquiry, which court sat in Hiroshima in January, 1896. That court found, among other things, that Viscount Miura upon his arrival in Seoul soon became aware that the Korean court, and especially the Queen’s faction, was placing every obstacle in the way of reform, and felt that an effective remedy should be applied. The Taiwunkun asked the Japanese for assistance in effecting a radical change, and it was decided to grant it. But first the ex-regent was asked to sign an agree- ment not to interfere unwarrantedly in political matters in the future. A plot was then formed to take the palace by force, murder the Queen, hold the person of the King, and thus control the situation. This plot was definitely sanctioned and urged by Viscount Miura and his secretary. At three o’clock on the morning of October 8, a large party of Japanese, including a number of soshi, together with several Koreans, went to the residence of the Taiwunkun, near the river, and in company with him proceeded toward Seoul. When they were about to start, their leader exhorted them to deal witli the “ fox ” as necessity might dictate, the obvious meaning being that the Queen should be killed. About dawn the whole party entered the palace by the Kwang-wha gate, and at once proceeded to the royal apartments. At this point the recital of the facts abruptly stops, and the 138 THE PASSING OF KOREA court goes on to state that, in spite of these proven facts, there is not sufficient evidence to pi'ove that any of the Japanese actu- ally committed the crime which had been contemplated, and all the accused are discharged. It is very much to the credit of the Japanese authorities that they frankly published these incriminating facts, and did not attempt to suppress them. Their action discharging the accused was a candid statement that, in spite of the actual proof which they adduced, it would not be possible to punish the perpetrators of the outrage, for Miura had been sent as the accredited min- ister of Japan, and his acts, though unforeseen by his superiors, could not but partake of an official character, and therefore the onus of the affair must fall on the Japanese government. This is the effect that was produced in the public mind, and, while the Japanese government as such must be acquitted of any intention or desire to secure the assassination of the Queen, yet it can scarcely escape the charge of criminal carelessness, in according to the Korean court a representative who would so far forget the dignity of his position as to plan and encourage the perpetration of such a revolting crime. The description of the scene, as given by the Hiroshima court, stops abruptly with the entrance into the palace before the actual business of the day began. It is necessary for us to take up the narration from that point. The buildings occupied by the King and Queen were near the back of the palace enclosure, almost half a mile from the front gate, so that the Japanese and Korean force, accompanied by the ex-regent, had to traverse a long succession of passageways through a great mass of build- ings before reaching the object of their search. Some of the palace guard were met on the way and easily pushed aside, some of them being killed, among whom was Colonel Hong. Wdien the Japanese arrived at the buildings occupied by their majesties, a part of them formed about it in military order, guarding all the approaches, but they did not enter the building. A crowd of Japanese civilians, commonly believed to be sosJiij and a A PALACE-WOMAN IN FULL REGALIA I 4 i THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 139 considerable number of Koreans, all heavily armed, rushed into the royal quarters. A part of the crowd went into the presence of the King, brandishing their weapons, but without directly attacking his person nor that of the Crown Prince, who stood beside him. Another part of the crowd ranged through the apartments of the Queen, seizing palace women and demanding information as to the whereabouts of the Queen. They met Yi Kyung-jik, the Minister of the Household, before the Queen’s apartments and at once cut him down, but he managed to crawl into the presence of the King, where he was despatched by the Japanese. The Queen was found in one of the rooms which constituted her suite, and was ruthlessly butchered. It is impos- sible to state with absolute certainty whether the blow was struck by a Korean or by a Japanese, but the overwhelming probability is that it was done by one of the armed Japanese. The body was wrapped in some sort of blanket, saturated with petroleum, and burned at the edge of a pine grove imme- diately to the east of the pond which lies in front of the royal quarters. The royal family had been aware for two days of the danger which threatened. The guards at the palace had been reduced, the arms had been taken away, and the movements of Japanese troops were veiy suspicious. The King advised the Queen to go to a place of safety, and she said she would do so if the Queen Dowager would also go, but the latter refused. Chong Pyung-ha, who had been raised to high office through the patronage of the Queen, but who had struck hands with the Japanese, urged with great insistence that there was no danger to her Majesty’s person, and it was the confidence expressed by this traitor that did the most to set at rest the apprehension of the King and the Queen. During all the time leading up to these events the palace guard was in charge of General Dye, but his efforts to carry out the wishes of his Majesty were continually thwarted, and the guard was merely a nominal one. 140 THE PASSING OF KOREA At about the time when the Queen was being killed, the Taiwunkun came into the presence of the King, and took the direction of affairs at the court. As might be supposed, both the King and the Crown Prince were in anything but an enviable frame of mind. They had been pushed about and insulted by low Japanese, and felt that their lives were momentarily in danger. Colonel Yi Kyung-jik, the Minister of the Household Department, had taken his stand at the door of the Queen’s apartments, and had there been cut down by the Japanese or Koreans, but succeeded in making his way, desperately wounded, into the presence of the King. He was there stabbed to death by the Japanese before the eyes of his iMajesty. This did not tend to reassure the King and the Crown Prince, but the coming of the Taiwunkun tended to quiet them somewhat. Of course they had no idea as yet that the Queen had been despatched. Before dawn began to break the King learned that Japanese troops were pouring into the barracks in front of the palace, and, as some semblance of order had been restored in the imme- diate presence of his Majesty, a note was sent in haste to the Japanese minister, asking what all this meant. The messenger found Miura and Sugimura already up and dressed, and sedan chairs at the door. Miura told the messenger that he had heard that troops had been marched to the barracks, but did not know why. The minister and his secretary thereupon proceeded rap- idly to the palace. Immediately upon their arrival all the dis- turbance suddenly quieted down, and the soshi dispersed and left the palace grounds. The Japanese minister and secretary immediately sought an audience with his IMajesty, accompanied only by an interpreter and another Japanese who had led the soshi. The ex-regent was also present. Three documents were prepared by those present and placed before his Majesty for signature, one of them guaranteeing that the Cabinet should thereafter manage the affairs of the country, the second appointing Yi Cha-myun, the King’s brother, as IMin- ister of the Household in place of Yi Kyung-jik, who had just THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 141 been killed, and the third appointing a vice-Minister of the Household. These documents the King perforce signed. There- upon all Japanejse troops were removed from the palace, and only the Japanese-trained Korean troops were left as a palace- guard. Later in the day ministers of war and police were appointed in the persons of Cho Heui-yun and Kwun Yung- jin, both strong partisans of the Japanese, and doubtless privy to the attack upon the palace and the murder of the Queen. In other words, the King and court were surrounded by men every one of whom were in sympathy with the movement which had been planned by Viscount Miura. Very early in the morning, while it was still scarcely day- light, Mr. Waeber, the Russian Charge d’ Affaires, and Dr. Allen, the American Charge d’ Affaires ad interim, came to the palace and sought audience with the King, but were told that the King was unwell and could not see them. They insisted, however, and succeeded in seeing his Majesty, who told them that he still had hopes that the Queen had escaped, and besought their friendly offices to prevent further trouble. Other foreign representatives were received later in the day. It soon became evident that the Japanese authorities intended to deny any responsibility for the outrages committed. Miura stated in his despatches to his government that the origin of the cmeiite was a conflict between the Japanese-drilled Korean troops, who desired to lay a complaint before his Majesty, and the palace guards, who tried to prevent their entrance into the palace. Miura even sought to strengthen his disclaimer by obtaining from the newly appointed Minister of War a deflnite official statement that the rumours of his (Miura’s) complicity in the affair were without foundation. The document that the Minister of War sent in reply proved altogether too much and defeated its own purpose, for it stated baldly that there was not a single Japanese in the palace on the night of the 8th of October when the Queen was murdered. As this minister was a creature of the Japanese, and as the presence of Japanese in 142 THE PASSING OF KOREA >the palace was clearly proved subsequently, it is evident that Aliura, by this sort of trickery, only succeeded in further impli- cating himself. On the 9th, the day after the cmcutc, a full Cabinet was appointed, composed entirely of Japanese sympathisers, but, with one or two exceptions, they were not privy to the assassination ■of the Queen, though they were willing to profit by that crime in accepting office at the hands of the perpetrators. One would have supposed that the enemies of the Queen would liave been satisfied by her death, but not so. On the nth, three days after her assassination, an edict, purporting to have originated with his Majesty and signed by the full Cabinet, appeared in the “ Court Gazette.” In it the Queen is charged with having interfered in public matters, disturbed the government and put the dynasty in peril. It is stated that she has disappeared, and that her guilt is excessive; therefore she is deposed from her rank as Queen and reduced to the level of tlie lowest class. There can be no doubt that this edict is fraudulent. The King ne\'er gave his consent to it, and several of the members of the Cabinet knew nothing about it, notably Sim Sang-hun, who had already thrown up his position and run away, and Pak 'Chong-yang, who denounced the nefarious business and resigned. It was put through by a few of the Cabinet who were thoroughly subservient to the Japanese. The Japanese minister, in reply to the announcement of the Queen’s degradation, affected to sympathise with the Korean government, but thought it was done for the good of the state. The United States representa- tive refused to recognise the decree as coming from his Majesty, and in this he was seconded by all the other foreign representa- tives except one. Meanwhile the Japanese government began to learn some- thing of the truth in regard to the Queen’s death, and felt called upon to defend itself from the charge of complicity in the out- rage through its accredited minister. Consequently it recalled THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 143 ^liura and Sugimura, and upon their arrival in Japan they were .arrested and charged with instigating the outrage. The fact of their arrest and trial was a distinct disclaimer on the part of the Japanese government that it was accessory to the crime; .and, in spite of the utter inadequacy of the trial and its almost ludicrous termination, we hold to the theory that the Japanese g-overnment was not a party to the crime, excepting in so far as the appointment of such a man as Miura can be called ■complicity. But the vigorous action of Japan in arresting Miura and putting him on trial had a strong influence upon the course of e^’ents in Korea. The Korean public and all the foreign repre- sentatives were demanding that the occurrences of the 8th of October should be investigated, and the responsibility for the murder of the Queen placed where it rightly belonged. This itself bore strongly upon the Cabinet, but when, in addition to this, the Japanese government itself seemed to be weakening, and it appeared that IMiura’s acts would prove to have been unauthorised, things began to look rather black for the men who were enjoying office solely through Miura’s influence, and, .although the fiction was still maintained that the Queen was not •dead but in hiding somewhere, the situation became more and more strained, until at last it became evident even to the Cabinet that something must be done to relieve the situation. Accord- ingly, on the 26th of November, the foreign representatives and several other foreigners were invited to the palace, and it was announced in the presence of his Majesty that Cho Heui-yun, the Minister of War, and Kwun Yung-jin, the Chief of Police, were dismissed, that the edict degrading the Queen was rescinded, and that the facts connected with the attack on the palace would be investigated by the Department of Justice and all guilty per- sons tried and punished. At the same time the death of her IMajesty was formally announced. The position of his IMajesty during the months succeeding tlie attack was anything but comfortable. He had no voice in 144 THE PASSING OF KOREA the direction of affairs, and he considered himself practically a prisoner in the hands of the Cabinet. He even feared for his life, and for weeks ate no food except what Avas brought to him in a locked box from friends outside the palace. He had requested that two or three foreigners should come to the palace each night and be at hand in case of trouble, feeling that their presence would exert a deterrent influence upon any who might plot injury to his person. The half-way measures adopted on the 26th of November by no means satisfled those who wished to see his Majesty freed from practical durance at the hands of men thoroughly obnoxious to him, and a scheme was evolved by a number of Koreans to effect his release by forcible means. The purpose of these men was a laudable one, but the execution of it Avas ill-managed. On the night of the 28th, upAvards of a thousand Koreans demanded entrance into the palace. They had arranged Avith one of the members of the palace guard, inside, to open the gate to them, but at the last moment he failed them, and they found themselves balked. The palace Avas in some confusion ; the King had called in to his presence the three foreigners Avho, at his request, Avere on duty that night, but in spite of their assurances that his person Avould be protected it Avas only natural that excitement should run high. The croAvd Avithout Avere shouting Avildly and attempt- ing to scale the high Avail, and the members of the Cabinet, before the King, did not knoAv at Avhat moment the guard might betray them to the assailants, and they kneAv that once betrayed they Avould be torn to pieces Avithout mercy. They tried, therefore, to induce the King to remove to a distant part of the palace. Avhere he could hide for a long time before he could be found, even though the croAvd should effect an entrance. The night Avas bitterly cold, and the King Avas but lightly clad ; and as the King’s person Avas safe in any event, the foreigners Avho Avere Avith him opposed the move strongly, and at last Avere compelled to use physical force to preA'ent the change, Avhich Avould certainly have endangered the, King’s life. The purpose of the Cabinet Avas THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 145 thus thwarted, but as the hours passed it became evident that the men outside would not be able to effect an entrance. The shouts gradually died away, and at last the crowd dispersed, leaving in the hands of the palace guard three or four men who had scaled the wall but had not been followed by their confreres. In view of the attitude of the Tokyo government, the Japanese in Seoul were now entirely quiescent, and the government was standing on its own base. The Cabinet held its own by virtue of the palace guard, which was composed of the soldiers trained by the Japanese. This Cabinet and guard held together from necessity, for both knew that should their power fail they would be denounced as traitors, and under the circumstances could expect little help from the Japanese. The Cabinet had to make a show of investigating the attack of the 5th of October, and someone must be killed for having murdered the Queen. At the same time punishment was to be meted out to the principals in the attempt on the palace on the 28th of November. Three men were arrested and charged with being directly implicated in the crime of regicide. Of these one was certainly innocent, and while the second was probably privy to the crime, being a lieutenant of the Japanese-trained troops, there was no evidence adduced to prove his actual participation in the act of assassination. As a fact, the court did not know and never dis- covered who the actual perpetrators were. The three men were executed before the end of the year. Though only three men were arrested in connection with the assassination of the Queen, thirty-three men were arrested in con- nection with the comparatively trivial affair of the 28th of Novem- ber. Their trial proceeded simultaneously with that of the other three. Two of them were condemned to death, four to exile for life, and four to three years’ imprisonment. To show the kind of evidence on which these convictions were based, we will cite the case of Prince Yi Cha-sun, who was proved to have gotten hold of some compromising documents and to have shown them 146 THE PASSING OF KOREA to the King only, instead of to the proper authorities, namely, of course, the Cabinet. On these grounds he was sentenced to three years’ imprisonment. December and January saw matters move to an inevitable climax. The Cabinet forced upon the people the edict ordering the cutting off of the top-knot, the distinctive mark of Korean citizenship. The whole country was in a ferment, and the people, almost to a man, were gnashing their teeth at the Cabinet. The finding of the Hiroshima court claimed to have freed iMiura and his fellows from blame, and it was rumoured that several of them were to return to Korea to take office under the government. It was perfectly evident, therefore, that the grip of the Japanese upon the King through the Gaoler Cabinet was tightening, and that there was no escape from it except through heroic measures. These measures the King was prepared to adopt rather than longer endure the humiliating position to which he seemed condemned. He determined to find asylum in the Russian legation. C. A'aeber was the Russian minister, a pronounced friend of the dead Queen and a man of great ability. Just how he was approached and his consent gained to the King’s scheme is not generally known ; but in view of subsequent events, and the part that Russia intended to play in Korea, it is easy to see how the Russian representative would welcome an opportunity to da the King such a signal service, and one which was of such a personal character as to render it certain that it would never be forgotten. The plan was carried out successfully in every detail. \\Tmen’s chairs were caused to be sent in and out the palace gates at frequent intervals by day and night, until the gaiards had become quite accustomed to them. Then on the night of th.e iith of February the King and the Crown Prince without escort slipped by the guards in common women’s chairs, and were taken directly to the Russian legation, where they were courteously recei^•ed and given the best portion of the legation THE ASSASSINATION OF THE QUEEN 147 building'. This act was, of course, a grievous lapse from the dignity that befits a king, but under the circumstances there is much to say by way of excuse. On the whole, it must be con- sidered a mistake so far as the country at large is concerned, for it set in motion a new set of factors which probably did more harm than the temporary enforced seclusion of the King could have done. It acted as a potent factor in embittering the Jap- anese against Russia, and opened the door for Russian intrigue, which finally hastened if it did not actually cause the Russo- Japanese war. Had Japan been able to preserve the predomi- nance which she held in Korea just after the China-Japan war, she might have looked with more or less complacency upon the Russian aggression in Manchuria, but when Korea itself became disputed ground the war was inevitable. At seven o’clock on the morning of the nth of February the King and the Crown Prince entered the Russian legation. Several hours elapsed before the Cabinet in the palace became aware of the fact. During that interval active operations were going on at the Russian legation. The organisation of a new Cabinet was hastened by summoning from various parts of the city such officials as the King could trust. Pak Chong-yang was made prime minister. No time was lost in putting out a royal edict deprecating the necessity of taking refuge in a foreign legation,, promising to punish the real authors of the Queen’s assassination, rescinding the order for cutting the top-knots. This was posted on the gates of the legation and at various points throughout the city. CHAPTER X THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB W HEN the public awoke to the momentous fact, a thrill of excitement and generally of approval went through the whole population of Seoul. The city hummed with excited humanity. The streets swarmed with the crowds bent upon watching the course of such stirring events. Later in the day the King put forth an edict calling upon the soldiers to rally to his support, and urging that the members of the Cabinet should be seized and turned over to the proper authorities for trial. As soon as it became known in the palace that the King had fled, the three leading members of the Cabinet saw that their lives were forfeited. O Yun-jung managed to escape to the country, but was set upon and killed by the people; Cho Heui-yun escaped; Yu Kil-jun was spirited away to Japan by the Jap- anese ; but Kim Hong-jip and Chong Pyung-ha were seized by the Korean soldiers, and immediately rushed by the crowd and killed. Their bodies were hauled to Chong-no, where they" were stamped upon, kicked, bitten and stoned by a half-crazed rabble for hours. A Japanese who happened to be passing was set upon by the crowd and killed, and several foreigners drawn to the spot by curiosity were threatened. To say that the Japanese were nonplussed by this coup on the part of the King would be to put it very mildly. All their efforts to consolidate their power in Korea, and to secure there some fruit of the victoiy in the war just finished, had been worse than thrown away. The King had cast himself into the arms of Russia, and the whole Korean people were worked THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 149 up to a white heat against Japan, comparable only with the feelings elicited by the invasion of 1592. It was a very great pity, for Japan was in a position to do for Korea infinitely more than Russia would do. The interests of Korea and Japan were identical, or at least complementary, and the mistake which Japan made in the latter half of 1895 was one whose effects will require decades to efface. But the Japanese authorities, though thrown into conster- nation by this radical movement of his Majesty, did not give up hope of mending matters. The Japanese minister saw the King at the Russian legation, and urged upon him every pos- sible argument for returning to tbe palace. His Majesty, how- ever, being now wholly relieved from anxiety as to his personal safety, enjoyed the respite too thoroughly to cut it short, and so politely refused to change his place of residence. A large number of Japanese in Seoul became convinced that Japan had hopelessly compromised herself, and left the country, but the Japanese government itself by no act or word granted that her paramount influence in the peninsula was impaired, and with admirable sang froid took up the new line of work imposed upon her by the King’s peculiar action, meanwhile putting down one more score against Russia, to be reckoned with later. Now that it was possible, the King hastened to order a new investigation of the circumstances attending the death of the Queen. It was feared that this would result in a very sweeping arrest of Koreans, and the punishment of many people on mere suspicion, but these fears were ill-founded. The trials were carried through under the eye of Mr. Greathouse, the adviser to the law department and a man of great legal ability. Thir- teen men were arrested and tried in open court without torture and with every privilege of a fair trial. One man, Yi Whi-wha, was condemned to death, four banished for life, and five for lesser periods. This dispassionate trial was not the least of the signs which pointed toward a new and enlightened era in Korean political history. THE PASSING OF KOREA 150 It will be remembered that ever since the previous year Dr. Philip Jaisohn had been acting as Adviser to the Privy Coun- cil. This Council enjoyed considerable power at first, but gradu- ally fell to a secondary place; but now that new conditions had sprung up, the element combating the Russian influence took advantage of the presence of Dr. Jaisohn and other Koreans who had been educated abroad. The Russians seemed to look with complacency upon this movement, and in the spring of this year seem to have made no effort to prevent the appointment of J. McLeavy Brown, LL.D., as Adviser to the Finance Depart- ment, with large powers ; which seemed to bear out the belief that the Russian minister was sincere in his statement that Russia wished the King to be quite untrammelled in the admin- istration of his government. It is this generous policy of ]\Ir. Waeber that is believed to have caused his transfer later to another post, to be replaced by A. de Speyer, who adopted a very different policy. However this may have been, things began to take on a very hopeful aspect in Seoul. Needed reforms were carried through ; torture was abolished in the Seoul courts; a concession was given to an American company to construct a railway between Seoul and Chemulpo; IMin Yong- whan was appointed special envoy to the coronation of the Czar ; work was begun on the American mining concession granted the year before, various schools were founded, and the outlook on the whole was very bright indeed. It looked as if a solution had been found for the difficulties that afflicted the state, and that an era of comparatively enlightened government was opening. For some time there had existed a more or less secret organi- sation among the Koreans, the single article of whose political creed was independence both from China and Japan, or, in other words, “ Korea for Koreans.” Now that the King had been relieved of Chinese suzerainty by the Japanese and of Japanese restraint by himself, this little society, under the leadership of Dr. Philip Jaisohn, blossomed out into what was called The Indcl>cnd- ence Club. The name but partially described the society, for. TWO OF THE FOREIGN LEGATIONS IN KOREA The top picture is the Russian and the lower the British Legation THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 151 while it advocated the complete independence of Korea, it still more insistently advocated a liberal government, in the shape of a genuine constitiitional monarchy, in which the royal prerogative should be largely curtailed and the element of paternalism elim- inated. At first the greater stress was laid upon the general principle of Korean independence, and to this the King, in the joy of his newly found freedom, heartily agreed. The royal sanction was given to the Independence Club, and it was launched upon a voyage which had no haven, but ended in total shipwreck. This club society was composed of young men, many of whom were doubtless aroused for the time being to something like patriotic fervour, but who had had no practical experience of the rocky road of Korean politics or of the obstacles which would be encountered. The cordiality of the King’s recognition blinded them to the fact that the real object of their organisation, namely, the definition of the royal prerogative, was one that must eventually arouse first the suspicion and then the open hos- tility of his Majesty, and would become the slogan of all that army of self-seekers who saw no chance for self-aggrandisement except in the immemorial spoils system. These young men were armed with nothing but a laudable enthusiasm. They could command neither the aid of the Korean army nor the advocacy of the older statesmen, all of whom were either directly hostile to the movement or had learned caution through connec- tion with previous abortive attempts to stem the tide of official corruption. The purpose of this club, so far as it knew its own mind, was a laudable one in theory, but the amount of persist- ency, courage, tact and self-restraint necessary to carry the plan to a successful issue was so immensely greater than they could possibly guess that, considering the youth and inexperience of the personnel of the society, the attempt was doomed to failure. They never clearly formulated a constructive plan by which to build upon the ruins of that system which they were bent upon destroying. On the 7th of April the first foreign newspaper was founded 152 THE PASSING OF KOREA by Dr. Philip Jaisohn. It was called “ The Independent,” and was partly in the native character. From the first it exerted a powerful influence among the Koreans, and was one of the main factors which led to the formation of the Independence Club. Both Japan and Russia were desirous of coming to an under- standing as to Korea, and on the 14th of May there was published the Waeber-Komura Agreement, which was modified and rati- fied later under the name of the Lobanoff-Yamagata Agreement. According to the terms of this convention, both powers guar- anteed to respect the independence of Korea, and not to send soldiers into the country except by common consent. The summer of 1896 saw great material improvements in Seoul. The work of clearing out and widening the streets was vigorously pushed, and, although much of the work was done superficially, some permanent improvement was effected, and the “ squatters ” along the main streets were cleaned out, it is hoped for all time. In July the concession for building a rail- way between Seoul and Wiju was given to a French syndicate. From subsequent events it appears that there was no fixed deter- mination on the part of the French to push this great engineer- ing work to a finish, but merely to preempt the ground and prevent others from doing it. Russian influence doubtless accom- plished this, and from that time there began to spring up the idea that Korea would be divided into two spheres of influence, the Japanese predominant in the south and the Russians in the north. In spite of the favourable signs that appeared during the early months of 1896, and the hopes which were entertained that an era of genuine reform had been entered upon, the com- ing of summer began to reveal the hollowness of such hopes. The King himself was strongly conservative, and never looked with favour upon administrative changes, which tended to weaken his personal hold upon the finances of the country, and he chafed under the new order of things. In this he was encouraged by many of the leading officials, who saw in the establishment of THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 153 liberal institutions the end of their opportunities for personal power and aggrandisement. The old order of things appealed to them too strongly, and it became evident that the govern- ment was rapidly lapsing into its former condition of arbitrary and partisan control. Open and violent opposition to such harm- less innovations as the wearing of foreign uniforms by the stu- dents of foreign language schools indicated too plainly the tendency of the time, and the Russian authorities did nothing to influence his Majesty in the right direction. Judging from subsequent events, it was not Russia’s policy to see an enlight- ened administration in Seoul. The political plans of that power could be better advanced by a return to the status quo ante. The act of the government in substituting an independence arch in place of the former gate, outside the west gate, which com- memorated Chinese suzerainty, was looked upon, and rightly, by the more thoughtful as being merely a superficial demonstra- tion which was based upon no deeper desire than that of being free from all control or restraint except such as personal incli- nation should dictate. The current was setting toward a con- centration of power rather than toward a healthful distribution of it, and thus those who had hailed the vision of a new and reju- venated state were compelled to confess that it was but a mirage. Pressure was brought to bear upon the court to remove • from the Russian legation, and it was high time that such a move be made. As a matter of urgent necessity, it was con- sidered a not too great sacrifice of dignity to go to the lega- tion, but to make it a permanent residence was out of the question. The King was determined, however, not to go back to the palace from which he had fled. It held too many grue- some memories. It was decided to build the Myung-ye Palace in the midst of the foreign quarter with legations on three sides of it. The present King intended it as a permanent residence, and building operations were begun on a large scale, but it was not until Eebruary of the following year that his Majesty finally removed from the Russian legation to his new palace. 154 THE PASSING OF KOREA All during the latter half of 1896 the gulf between the independence party and the conservatives kept widening. The latter grew more and more confident and the former more and more determined. Dr. Jaisohn, in his capacity of Adviser to the Council of State, was blunt and outspoken in his advice to his iMajesty, and it was apparent that the latter listened with grow- ing impatience to suggestions which, however excellent in them- selves, found no response in his own inclinations. The Minister of Education voiced the growing sentiment of the retrogressive faction in a book called “ The \\"arp and Woof of Confucian- ism,” in which such extreme statements were made that several of the foreign representatives felt obliged to interfere and call him to account. A chief of police was appointed who was vio- lently anti-reform. The assassin of Kim Ok-kyun was given an important position under the government. A man who had attempted the life of Pak Yong-hyo was made ^Minister of Law, and on all sides were heard contemptuous comments upon the “ reform nonsense ” of the liberal faction. And yet in spite of this the momentum of the reform movement, though somewhat retarded, had by no means been completely stopped. The sum- mer and autumn of this 3^ear, 1896, saw the promulgation of a large number of edicts of a salutary nature, relating to the more systematic collection of the national revenues, the reorganisation of gubernatorial and prefectural systems, the definition of the powers and privileges of provincial officials, the further regula- tion of the postal system, the definition of the powers of the superintendents of trade in the open ports, the abolition of illegal taxation, and the establishment of courts of law in the various provinces and in the open ports. As many of these reforms survived the collapse of the liberal part)’, they must be set down as definite results which justify the existence of that party and make its overthrow a matter of keen regret to those who have at heart the best interests of the country. All this time Russian interests had been cared for sedulously. The King remained in close touch with the legation, and Colonel THE INDEPENDEXCE CLUB 155 Potiata and three other Russian officers were put in charge of the palace guard, while Kim Hong-nyuk, the erstwhile water- carrier, continued to absorb the good things in the gift of his IMajesty. And yet the Russians with all their power did not attempt to obstruct the plans of the subjects of other powers in Korea. Mr. Stripling, a British subject, was made Adviser to the Police Department ; a mining concession was granted to a German syndicate; an American was put in charge of a normal school; Dr. Brown continued to direct the work of the Finance Department, and the work on the Seoul Chemulpo Railway was pushed vigorously by an American syndicate. The Russians held in their hands the power to put a stop to much of this, but they appeared to be satisfied with holding the power without exercising it. The first half of 1897 was characterised by three special features in Korea. The first was a continuance of so-called reforms, all of which were of a utilitarian character. A gold- mine concession was given to a German syndicate, a Chinese Language School and other schools were founded and the difficult w’ork of cleaning out the Peking Pass was completed. It was announced that Chinnampo and Mokpo would be opened to trade in the autumn. The second feature was the steady growth of the conservative element which was eventually to resume com- plete control of the government. As early as May of this year the editor of the Korean Repository said, with truth : “ The collapse is as complete as it is pathetic. After the King came to the Russian legation the rush of the reform movement could not be stayed at once nor even deflected. But soon there came the inevitable reaction. Reforms came to be spoken of less and less frequently. There was a decided movement backwards toward the old, well-beaten paths. But it was impossible to re-establish the old order of things entirely. We come then to the period of the revision of laws. Shortly after the King removed to the new palace an edict was put forth ordering the appointment of a Commission for the revision of the laws. This 156 THE PASSING OF KOREA was received with satisfaction by the friends of progress. This Commission contained the names of many prominent men, such as Kim Pyung-si, Pak Chong-yang and Yi Wan-yong, as well as the names of Dr. Brown, General Greathouse, Mr. Legendre and Dr. Jaisohn.” But by the 12th of April the whole thing was dropped, and the strong hopes of the friends of Korea were again dashed to the ground. The third feature of this period is the growing importance of Russian influence in Seoul. The training of the Korean army had already been taken out of Japanese hands and given to Russians, and in August thirteen more Russian military instructors were imported. It was plain that Russia meant to carry out an active policy in Korea. Rus- sian admirals, including Admiral Alexeieff, made frequent visits to Seoul, and at last Russia made public avowal of her purposes when she removed Mr. Waeber, who had serv^ed her so long and faithfully here, and sent Air. A. de Speyer to take his place. There was an immediate and ominous change in the tone which Russia assumed. From the very first, De Speyer showed plainly that he was sent here to impart a new vigour to Russo-Korean relations ; that things had been going too slow. It is probable that complaints had been made because in spite of Russia’s pre- dominating influence at the Korean court concessions were being given to Americans, Germans and others outside. De Speyer soon showed the colour of his instructions and began a course of browbeating, the futility of which must have surprised him. It was on the 7th of September that he arrived, and within a month he had begun operations so actively that he attracted the atten- tion of the world. In the first place he demanded a coaling station at Fusan on Deer Island, which commands the entrance to the harbour. This was a blow aimed directly at Japan and sure to be resented. It came to nothing. Then Air. Kir Alexeieft arrived from Russia, an agent of the Finance Department in St. Petersburg. In the face of the fact that Dr. Brown was Chief Commissioner of Custom and Adviser to the Finance Depart- ment, Air. Alexeieff was appointed by the Foreign Office as THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 157 Director of the Einance Department. But the policy of bluff which De Speyer had inaugurated was not a success ; he carried it so far that he aroused the strong opposition of other powers, notably England, and before the end of the year, after only three months of incumbency, De Speyer was called away from Seoul. As we shall see, the whole of his work was overthrown in the following spring. But we must retrace our steps a little and record some other interesting events that happened during the closing months of 1897. It was on the 17th of October that the King went to the Imperial Altar and there was crowned Emperor of Taihan. This had been some time in contemplation, and as Korea was free from foreign suzerainty she hastened, while it Avas time, to declare herself an empire. This step was recognised by the treaty powers within a short period, and so Korea took her place on an equality with China and Japan. On the 2 1st of November the funeral ceremony of the late Queen was held. It was a most imposing pageant. The funeral procession passed at night out of the city to the tomb, where elaborate preparations had been made, and a large number of foreigners assembled to witness the obsequies. The situation in Korea as the year 1898 opened was some- thing as follows. The Conservatives had things well in hand, and the Independence Club was passing on to its final effort and its final defeat. The Avork of such men as Dr. Jaisohn was still tolerated; but the King and the most influential officials chafed under the wholesome advice that they received, and it Avas evident that the first pretext Avould be eagerly seized for terminating a situation that Avas getting very aAvkAvard for both sides. The reaction was illustrated in an attack on the “ Independent,” by which the Korean postal department refused to carry it in the mails. The Russians had taken the bull by the horns, and Avere finding that they had undertaken more than they could carry through without danger of serious complications. The Russian government saw this, and recalled De Speyer in time to preserve 158 THE PASSING OF KOREA much of their influence in Seoul. The Emperor, being now in his own palace, but with easy access to the Russian legation, seems to have lent his voice to the checking of the reform propaganda, and in this he was heartily seconded by his leading officials. The most promising aspect of the situation was the determined atti- tude of the British government relative to the enforced retire- ment of Dr. Brown. When it became evident that a scarcely concealed plan was on foot to oust British and other foreigners in Korea, Great Britain by a single word and by a concentration of war-vessels at Chemulpo changed the whole programme of the Russians; but, as it appeared later, the Russian plans were only changed, not abandoned. So the year opened with things polit- ical in a very unsettled state. Everything was in transition. The Independents and the Russians had some idea of what they wanted, but seemed to be at sea as to the means for accomplish- ing it. The Conservatives alone sat still and held on, sure that in the long run they would triumph even if they could not stop the march of material progress in the cleaning of the streets and tlie building of railways. February of 1898 saw the taking off of the most commanding figure in Korean public life during the nineteenth century, in the person of Prince Taiwun, the father of the Emperor, formerly regent. For almost forty years he had been more or less inti- mately connected with the stirring events which have marked the present reign. The things which specially marked his career are (i) the Roman Catholic persecution of 1866, (2) the deter- mined opposition to tlie opening of the country to foreign intercourse, (3) the building of the Kyongbok Palace, (4) the debasing of Korean currency, (5) the feud with the Queen's party, (6) the temporary exile in China, (7) the assassination of the Queen, ^^'hate^'er may be said for or against the prince because of his policy, he remains in the minds of the people a strong, independent character, and they cannot fail to admire the man e^■en though they have to condemn his policy. His adherents stood by him with splendid loyalty even in the THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 159 liours of his disgrace, because he was in some sense really great. This time was characterised by curious inconsistencies. At the same time that an edict was promulgated stating that no more concessions would be granted to foreigners, the Seoul Elec- tric Company was organised to construct a tramway and a light- ing plant in Seoul. Material improvements continued parallel with, but in the opposite direction from, the policy of the gov- ernment. An agreement was even entered into with an American firm for the construction of a system of water-works for Seoul at a cost of some seven million yen. The failing hopes of the Independence Club drove it to its final place, that of protest. Memorials began to pour in, pro- testing against this and that. In February it complained of foreign control in Korea, directing the attack apparently upon the Russian pretensions ; but if so, it was unnecessary, for by the 1st of March the Russians decided that their position was untenable, or that a temporary withdrawal of pressure from Seoul would facilitate operations in other directions, and so, under cover of a complaint as to the vacillating policy of the Korean government, they proposed to remove Mr. Alexeieff from his uncomfortable position vis-a-vis Dr. Brown and also take away all the military instructors. Perhaps they were under the impression that this startling proposal would frighten the gov- ernment into making protestations that would increase Russian influence here ; but if so, they were disappointed, for the govern- ment promptly accepted their proposition and dispensed with the services of these men. No doubt the government had come to look with some anxiety upon the growing influence of Russia here, and with the same oscillatory motion as of yore made a strong move in the opposite direction when the opportunity came. The Korean government has been nearly as astute as Turkey in playing off her “ friends ” against each other. Just one month later, the 12th of April, N. Matunine relieved Mr. de Speyer, the Russo-Korean bank closed its doors, the Rus- i6o THE PASSING OF KOREA sian military and other officers took their departure, and a very strained situation was relieved for the time being. The summer of this year furnished Seoul with some excite- ment in the shape of a discovered conspiracy to force the King to abdicate, place the Crown Prince on the throne, and institute a new era in Korean history. The plot, if such it may be called, was badly planned and deservedly fell through. It was one of the foolish moves called out by the excitement engendered in the Independence movement. An Kyung-su, ex-president of the Independence Club, was the party mainly implicated, and he saved himself only by promptly decamping and putting himself into the hands of the Japanese. August saw the fall of Kim Hong-nyuk, the former Russian interpreter, who ruffled it so proudly at court on account of his connection with the Russian legation. For a year he had a good time of it and amassed great wealth ; but when the Russians withdrew their influence in March of this year, Kim lost all his backing, and thenceforward his doom was as sure as fate itself. The genuine noblemen whose honours he had filched were on his track, and in August he was accused, deposed and banished. This did not satisfy his enemies, however ; but an opportunity came when, on the loth of September, an effort was made to poison the Emperor and the Crown Prince. The attempt came near succeeding, and in the investigation which followed one of the scullions deposed that he had been instructed by a friend of Kim Hong-nyuk to put something into the coffee. How Kim, away in banishment, could have had anything to do with it would be hard to tell. He may have conceived the plan, but the verdict of a calm and dispassionate mind must be that he probably knew nothing about it at all. However, in such a case someone must suffer. The criminal must be found; and it is more than prob- able that those who hated Kim Hong-nyuk thought he would make an excellent scapegoat. He was tried, condemned and executed. The month of September witnessed better things than these, however. The Japanese obtained their concession for the Seoul- THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB i6i Fusan Railway, — an event of great importance every way, and one that will mean much to Korea. In September the Independence Club determined that it would be well to put forward a programme of work in place of the merely destructive criticism which had for some time character- ised its policy. An appeal was made to the general public to assemble, in order to suggest reforms. Whether this was wise or not is a question. A popular assembly in Korea is hardly capable of coming to wise conclusions or to participate in plans for constructive statesmanship. In addition to this an appeal to the people was inevitably construed by the Conservatives as a des- perate measure which invited revolution. In a sense they were justified in so thinking, for the general populace of Korea never have risen in protest imless the evils under which they are suffer- ing have driven them to the last court of appeal, mob law. The move was in the direction of democracy, and no one can judge that the people of Korea are ready for any such thing. However this may be, a mass meeting was held at Chong-no, to which representatives of all classes were called. The following articles were formulated and presented to the Cabinet for imperial sanction : 1. Neither officials nor people shall depend upon foreign aid, but shall do their best to strengthen and uphold the imperial power. 2. All documents pertaining to foreign loans, the hiring of foreign soldiers, the granting of concessions, etc., in fact every document drawn up between the Korean government and a foreign party or firm, shall be signed and sealed by all the Min- isters of State and the President of the Privy Council. 3. Important offenders shall be punished only after they have been given a public trial and ample opportunity. to defend themselves. 4. To his Majesty shall belong the power to appoint Min- isters, but in case a majority of the Cabinet disapproves of the Emperor’s nominee he shall not be appointed. THE PASSING OF KOREA 162 5. All sources of revenue and methods of raising taxes shall be placed under the control of the Finance Department, no other department, officer or corporation being allowed to inter- fere therewith ; and the annual estimates and balances shall be made public. 6. The existing laws and regulations shall be enforced with- out fear or favour. It will be seen that several of these measures strike directly at powers which have been held for centuries by the King him- self, and it cannot be supposed that his IMajesty would listen will- ingly to the voice of the common people when they demanded such far-reaching innovations. The whole thing was utterly dis- tasteful to him, but the united ?aice of the people is a serious matter. These demands were not such as would involve any immediate changes ; they all looked to the future. So it was an easy matter simply to comply with the demands and wait for the public feeling to subside. On the last day of September his Majesty ordered the carrying out of these six propositions. The trouble was that the Conservatives felt that they had not sufficient physical power to oppose a popular uprising. The tem- porary concession was made with no idea of real compliance, and was immediately followed by measures for securing a counter demonstration. The instrument selected for this purpose was the old-time Peddlers’ Guild. This was a defunct institution,, but the name survived, and the Conservatives used it to bring together a large number of men who were ready for any sort of work that would mean pay. These were organised into a com- pany whose duty it was to run counter to all popular demonstra- tions like those which had just been made. No sooner Avas this hireling band organised than his IMajesty, in pursuance of the hint dropped some months before by the president of the Inde- pendence Club, ordered the disbanding of the club. From this time on the Independence Club was no longer recognised by the government, and was an illegal institution, by the very terms of the unfortunate admission of its president that the Emperor THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 163; could at any time disband it by imperial decree. Mr. Yun Chi-hO' had by this time come to see that the club was running to dan- gerous extremes, and was likely to cause serious harm ; and he and others worked with all their power to curb the excitement and secure rational action on the part of the members of the club. But the time when such counsels could prevail had already passed. The club knew that the principles it advocated were correct, and it was angry at the stubborn opposition that it met. It was ready to go to any lengths to secure its ends. Passion took the place of judgment, and the overthrow of the opposition loomed larger in its view than the accomplishment of its rational ambitions. Instead of dispersing in compliance with the imperial order, the assembled Independents went in a body to the police head- quarters and asked to be arrested. This is a peculiarly Korean mode of procedure, the idea being that if put on trial they would be able to shame their adversaries ; and incidentally it embar- rassed the administration, for the prisons would not suffice to hold the multitude that clamoured for incarceration. The crowd was altogether too large and too determined for the peddlers to- attack, and another concession had to be made. The Inde- pendents, for it can no longer be called the Independent Club, offered to disperse on condition that the}^ be guaranteed freedom of speech. The demand was immediately complied with ; any- thing to disperse that angry crowd which under proper leader- ship might at any moment do more than make verbal demands. So on the next day an imperial decree granted the right of free speech. This concession, likewise, was followed by a hurried muster of all the peddlers and their more complete organisation. Backed by official aid and imperial sanction, they were prepared to come to blows with the people who should assemble for the purpose of making further demands upon the Emperor. The Conservatives now deemed themselves strong enough to try conclusions with the outlawed club, and before daylight of the 5th of November seventeen of the leading men of the Inde- pendence Club were arrested and lodged in jail. Mr. Yun, the- 164 THE PASSING OF KOREA president, narrowly escaped arrest. It was afterAvards ascer- tained that the plan of the captors was to kill the president of the club before he could receive aid from the enraged people. When morning came and the arrest became known, the city hummed like a bee-hive. A surging crowd was massed in front of the Supreme Court, demanding loudly the release of the prisoners who had been accused, so the anonymous placards announced, of conspiring to establish a Republic ! Again the pop- ular feeling was too strong for the courage of the peddler thugs, and they remained in the background. The agitation continued all that day and the next and the next, until the authorities were either frightened into submission or, deeming that they had shown the Independents a glimpse of what they might expect, released the arrested men. But the Independents, so far from being cowed, hailed this as a vindication of their policy, and attempted to follow up the defeat of the Conservatives by demand- ing the arrest and punishment of the people Avho had played the trick upon the club. As these men were very prominent officials and had the ear of the Emperor, it was not possible to obtain the redress demanded. So the month of November wore away in a ferment of excitement. Popular meetings were frequent, but the crowd had not the determination to come to conclusions with the government. The Conservatives saw this, and with utmost nicety gauged the resisting power of the malcontents. The offensive tactics of the latter were confined merely to free speech, and the Conservatives determined to see what they would do when on the defensive. Accordingly on the morning of the 21st of November a band of ruffians, the so-called peddlers, attacked the people who had gathered, as usual, to discuss the stirring ques- tions of the times. Weapons were used, and a number of people were injured. The Independents had never contemplated the use of force, and this brutal assault aroused the ire of the whole people, most of whom had not as yet taken sides. Serious hand- to-hand fights occurred in various parts of the city, and the peddlers, conscious that even their most murderous attacks would THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 165 be condoned in high places, attempted to whip the people into something like quietude. On the 26th of November, in the midst of this chaotic state of things, the Emperor granted a great general audience outside the great gate of the palace. The Independence Club was there in force, and foreign representatives and a large number of other foreign residents. It was a little Runnymede, but with a different ending. Yun Chi-ho was naturally the spokesman of the Inde- pendence party. He made a manly and temperate statement of the position of his constituents. He denounced the armed attacks of the peddlers upon people who intended no violence but only desired the fulfilment of solemnly made pledges. He called to account those who imputed to the Independence Club traitorous designs. He urged that the legal existence of the club should be again established by imperial decree, and that the six measures so definitely and distinctly promised by his Majesty should be carried out. There was no possible argument to oppose to these requests, and the Emperor promised to shape the policy of the government in line with these suggestions. Again it was mere promise, made to tide over an actual and present difficulty. The Independence party should have recognised this. The Emperor was surrounded by men inimical to the reform programme ; they had the police and the army back of thejn as well as the peddlers. The Independence party had not a single prominent representa- tive in any really responsible and influential government office. They simply had right and the precarious voice of Korean popu- lar feeling behind them. What was necessary was a campaign of education. The programme advocated was one that could be carried out only under a government whose personnel was at least approximately up to the standard of that programme. This could be claimed of only two or three members of the Independence Club. Having secured this public promise of his Majesty, the club should have waited patiently to see what would happen, and if the promises were not kept they should have waited and worked for a time when public sentiment among the leading men would THE PASSING OF KOREA 1 66 compel reform. But as Mr. Yun himself confesses, “ The popu- lar meetings had gone beyond the control of the Independence Club, and in the face of strong advice to the contrary, they were resumed on the 6th of December, and their language became care- less and impudent. On the i6th of December the Privy Council recommended the recall of Pak Yong-hyo from Japan. The popular meeting had the imprudence to indorse this action. The more conservative portion of the people revolted against the very- mention of the name. Suspicion was excited that the popular agitations had been started in the interests of Pak Yong-hyo, and they instantly lost the sympathy of the people.” The enemies of the liberal party had probably used this argument to its fullest extent, and when it was seen that the Independence movement had at last been deprived of its strongest support, the popular voice, its enemies came down upon it with cruel force. In spite of voluble promises to the contrary, large numbers of the reform party were arrested and thrown into prison ; not, to be sure, on the charge of being members of this party, but on trumped-up charges of various kinds, especially that of being accessory to the plan of bringing back Pak Yong-hyo. And thus came to an end a political party whose aims were of the highest character, whose methods were entirely peaceable, but whose principles were so far in advance of the times that from the very first there was no human probability of success. The year 1899 opened with political matters in a more quiet state than for some years past, owing to the violent repression of the Independence Club and the liberal mo\ ement. The judg- ment of the future will be that at this point Japan made a serious mistake of omission. The aims and purposes of the Independence party were directly in line with Japanese interests here, and if that powerful government had actively interested itself in the success of the movement, and had taken it for granted that the plan was to be definitely carried out, the succeeding years would have made very different history than they did. But during all this time Japan seems to have retired into comparative quietude. THE INDEPENDENCE CLUB 167 perhaps because she saw the approach of her inevitable struggle with Russia, and was not willing to hasten matters by coming into premature conflict with the northern power in Korea, pend- ing the completion of her preparations for the supreme struggle. Through all this period Russian influence was quietly at work securing its hold upon the Korean court and upon such members of the government as it could win over. The general populace was always suspicious of her, however, and always preferred the rougher hand of Japan to the soft but heavy hand of Russia. The progress of the Russian plans was illustrated when, in January of 1899, a Mission of the Greek Church was established in Seoul. Before going forward into the new century we should note some of the more important material advances that Korea had made. Railway concessions for some six hundred miles of track had been granted, half to Japanese and half to a French syndi- cate ; several new and important ports had been opened, bringing the total number up to ten, inclusive of Seoul and Pyeng-yang; mining concessions bad been given to Americans, English, Ger- mans, French and Japanese, two of which had proved at least reasonably successful ; timber and whaling concessions had been given to Russians on the east side of the peninsula, and impor- tant fishing rights had been given to the Japanese ; an attempt at a general system of education had been made throughout the country, and the work of publishing text-books was being pushed ; students were sent abroad to acquire a finished education, and legations at all the most important political centres were estab- lished; an attempt at a better currency had been made, though it was vitiated by official corruption and tbe operations of coun- terfeiters ; trade had steadily increased, and the imports and exports of Korea passed beyond the negligible stage ; an excel- lent postal system had been inaugurated under foreign super- vision, and Korea had entered the Postal Union. Thus it will be seen that, in spite of all domestic political complications and discouragements, the country was making i68 THE PASSING OF KOREA definite advance along some lines. The leaven had begun to work, and no conservatism on the part of the public leaders could stop the ferment. The necrology of the closing year of the century contains the names of Mr. Legendre and Mr. Greathouse, the latter of whom, as Legal Adviser to the government, did excellent work in his department, and was recognised by his employers as an able and efficient man in his official capacity. CHAPTER XI RUSSIAN INTRIGUE T he return to Seoul of M. Pavlow on the 15th of Jan- uary, 1900, marked the definite beginning of that train of events which led up to the declaration of war by the Japanese in 1904. The Russians had been induced, two years previously, to remove the heavy pressure which they had brought to bear upon the government, but it was only a change of method. They were now to adopt a policy of pure intrigue, and, by holding in power Koreans who were hostile to the Japanese, to harass and injure Japanese interests in every way possible. At this same time we see a clear indication of the trend of events in the return to Korea of An Kyung-su and Kwan Yung- jin, two of the best men that late years had developed in Korea. They had been charged with connection with the plot to compass the abdication of his Majesty, and had taken refuge in Japan. Now, on the promise of the government that they should have a perfectly fair trial, and on the guarantee of protection by the Japanese, they returned boldly to Korea and presented them- selves for trial. They were strong men and they had to be reckoned with. They openly favoured Japanese influence and the reforms that that influence was supposed to embody. In fact, they were thoroughly in sympathy with the best motives of the defunct Independence Club. An Kyung-su returned on the 15th of January and was held in detention until the i6th of May, when Kwan Yung- jin returned. They were to stand a fair trial, but on the night of the 27th of May they were both strangled secretly in the prison. No more dastardly crime ever stained the annals of this or any other government. Induced to return I/O THE PASSING OF KOREA on the promise of a fair trial, they were trapped and murdered. The reactionists looked upon this as a signal victory, and indeed it was such, for it indicated clearly that a man was not safe even when he had the guarantee of the Japanese authorities. Nor would it be difficult to indicate the source from which the government obtained the courage thus to flout the Japanese. As the summer came on, all interest in things Korean was held in suspension, while the great uprising in China swelled to such monstrous proportions, and the investment of Peking and the siege of the foreign legations there left the world no time to care for or think of other things. There were fears that the Boxer movement would be contagious and that it would spread to Korea. Indeed it was reported in the middle of July that the infection had reached northern Korea ; but fortunately this proved false. In spite of the reactionary policy of the government, progress continued to be made on certain lines, just as the momentum of a railway train cannot be checked the moment the brakes are applied. A distinguished French legalist was employed as Adviser to the Law Department ; mining concessions were granted to British, French and Japanese syndicates; the Gov- ernment Middle School was established; the Seoul-Chemulpo Railway was formally opened; a French teacher was engaged to open a School of Mines; a representative was sent to the great Paris Exposition. This year, 1900, was the heydey of another paroenu in the person of Kim Yung-jun. He was a man without any backing except his own colossal effrontery. He had acquired influence by his ability to get together considerable sums of money irre- spective of the methods emplo}^ed. Scores of wealthy men were haled to prison on one pretext or another, and were released only upon the payment of a heavy sum. He was a man of considerable force of character, but, like so many adventurers in Korea, was lured by his successes into a false feeling of security. He forgot that the history of this country is full RUSSIAN INTRIGUE 171 of just such cases, and that they inevitably end in violent death. Even the fate of Kim Hong-nyuk did not deter him, though his case was almost the counterpart of that victim of his own over- weening ambitions. Against Kim Yung-jun was ranged the whole nobility of the country, who waited with what patience they could until his power to extort money began to wane, and then fell upon him like wolves upon a belated traveller at night. But it was not until the opening of the new year, 1901, that he was deposed, tried and killed in a most horrible manner. After excruciating tortures, he was at last strangled to death. But even as this act was perpetrated, and the fate of all such adventurers was again illustrated, another man of the same ilk was pressing to the fore. This was Yi Yong-ik, who had once been the major donio of one of the high officials, and in that capacity had learned how to do all sorts of interesting, if unscrupulous, things. He was prominent in a felonious attempt to cheat the ginseng farmers of Song-do out of thousands, back in the eighties. He was an ignorant boor, and, even when rolling in opulence, failed to make himself presentable in dress or manner. He was praised by some for his scorn of luxury, and because he made no attempt to hoard the money that he bled from the veins of the people. The reason he did not hoard it was the same that makes the farmer sow his seed, that he may reap a hundred-fold. Yi Yong-ik sowed his golden seed in fertile soil, and it yielded him a thousand-fold. One of his favourite methods of obtaining money for his patron was to cause the arrest of shoals of former prefects who, for one cause or another, had failed to turn into the public treasury the complete amount nominally levied upon their respective districts. These arrears went back several years, and many of them were for cause. Either famine or flood or some other calamity had made it impossible for the people to pay the entire amount of their taxes. There were many cases, without doubt, in which it was right to demand the money from the ex-prefects, for they had “eaten” it themselves; but there 172 THE PASSING OF KOREA were also many cases in which it was a genuine hardship. Lit- erally, hundreds of men were haled before a court and made to pay over large sums of money, in default of which their prop- erty was seized as well as that of their relatives. In exact pro- portion as the huge sums thus extorted paved his way to favour in high places, in that same proportion it drove the people to desperation. The taking off of Kim Yung-jun, so far from warning this man, only opened a larger door for the exercise of his peculiar abilities, and it may be said that the official career of Yi Yong-ik began with the opening of 1901. In March a Japanese resident of Chemulpo claimed to have purchased the whole of Roze Island in the harbour of Chemulpo. The matter made a great stir, for it was plain that someone had assumed the responsibility of selling the island to the Japanese. This was the signal for a sweeping investigation, which was so manipulated by powerful parties that the real perpetrators of the outrage were dismissed as guiltless, br;t a side issue which arose in regard to certain threatening letters that were sent to the foreign legations was made a peg upon which to hang the seizure, trial and execution of Kim Yung-jun, as before men- tioned. Min Yung-ju was the man who sold the island to the Japanese, and he finally had to put down thirty-five thousand yen and buy it back. Russia made steady advances toward her ultimate goal dur- ing the year 1901. In the spring some buildings in connection ■with the palace were to be erected, and the Chief Commissioner of Customs, J. McLeavy Brown, C. AI. G., was ordered to vacate his house on the customs compound at short notice. Soldiers even forced their way into his house. This affront was a serious one, and one that the Koreans would never have dared to give had they not felt that they had behind them a power that would see them through. The British authorities soon convinced the government that such tactics could be easily met, and it had to retreat with some loss of dignity. Many of the French gentlemen employed by the govern- RUSSIAN INTRIGUE 173 ment were flioroughly competent and rendered good service,' but their presence tended to add to the tension between Japan and Russia, for it was quite plain that all their influence would be thrown in the scale on Russia’s side. The attempt to loan the Korean, government five million yen was pushed with des- perate vigour for many months by the French, but divided counsels prevented the final consummation of the loan, and the French thus failed to secure the strong leverage which a heavy loan always gives to the creditor. Yi Yong-ik, who had become more or less of a Russian tool, was pointedly accused by the Japanese of being in favour of the French loan, but he vigor- ously denied it. It is generally admitted that Yi Yong-ik was something of a mystery even to his most intimate acquaintances, and just how far he really favoured the Russian side will never be known, but it is certain that he assumed a more and more hostile attitude toward the Japanese as the months went by, — ■ an attitude which brought him into violent conflict with them, as we shall see. Yi Yong-ik posed as a master in finance, whatever else he may or may not have been, and in 1901 he began the minting of the Korean nickel piece. No greater monetary disaster ever overtook this country. Even the desperate measures taken by the regent thirty years before had not shaken the monetary system as this did. The regent introduced the wretched five- cash piece, which did enormous harm, but that five-cash piece was of too small face value to be worth counterfeiting. The nickel was the ideal coin to tempt the counterfeiter, for its intrin- sic value was not so great as to require the employment of a large amount of capital, and yet its face value was sufficient to pay for the labour and time expended. The effects of this departure will be noted in their place. ' In the summer of 1901 Yi Yong-ik performed one act that, in the eyes of the people, covered a multitude of other sins. It was a year of great scarcity. The Korean farmers raised barely enough grain for domestic consumption, and in order to pre- 174 THE PASSING OF KOREA vent this grain from being taken out of the country the govern- ment proclaimed an embargo on its export. In spite of the fact that Japan was enjoying an unusually good crop and did not really need the Korean product, the Japanese authorities, in the interest of the Japanese exporters in Korea, brought pressm'e to bear upon the Korean government to raise the embargo, utterly regardless of the interests of the Korean people. As it turned out, however, the enhanced price in Korea, due to the famine, and the cutting of a full crop in Japan, prevented the export of rice. But Yi Yong-ik saw that there would inevitably be a shortage in Seoul, and with much forethought he sent and imported a large amount of Annam rice, and put it on the market at a price so reasonable that the people were highly gratified. From that time on whenever the mistakes of Yi Yong-ik were ■cited there was always someone to offer the extenuation of that Annam rice. It was a most clever and successful appeal to popular favour. As the year 1901 came to a close, the tension was beginning to be felt. People were asking how much longer Japan would acquiesce in the insolent encroachments of Russia. But the time was not yet. As for material advances, the year had seen not a few. Seoul had been supplied with electric light. The Seoul- Fusan Railway had been begun. Plans for the Seoul-Wiju Rail- way had been drawn up. Mokpo had been supplied with a splendid sea-wall. Building had gone on apace in the capital, and •even a scheme for a system of water-works for the city had been worked out and had received the sanction of the government. Education had gone from bad to worse, and at one time, when retrenchment seemed necessary, it was even suggested to close some of the schools, but better counsels prevailed, and this form of suicide was rejected. With the opening of the year 1902 there were several indi- cations that the general morale of the government was deteri- orating. The first was a very determined attempt to revive the Buddhist cult. The Emperor consented to the establishment of RUSSIAN INTRIGUE • 1/5 a great central monastery for the whole country in the vicinity of Seoul, and in it was installed a Buddhist High Priest in Chief, who was to control the whole Buddhist Church in the land. It was a ludicrous attempt, for Buddhism in Korea is dead so far as any specific influence is concerned. Mixed with the native spirit-worship, it has its millions of devotees, but it is entirely unlikely that it could ever again become a fashionable cult. Another evidence was the constant and successful attempt to centralise the power of the government in the hands of the Emperor. The overthrow of the Independence party, whose main tenet was curtailment of the imperial prerogative, gave a new impulse to the enlargement of that prerogative, so that in the year 1902 we find almost all the government business trans- acted in the palace itself. The various ministers of state could do nothing on their own initiative. Everything was centred in the throne and in two or three favourites who stood near the throne. Of these Yi Yong-ik was the most prominent. A third evidence of deterioration was the methods adopted to fill the coffers of the household treasury. The previous year had been a bad one. Out of a possible twelve million dollars of revenue only seven million could be collected. There was great distress all over the country, and the pinch was felt in the palace. Special inspectors and agents were therefore sent to the country armed with authority from the Emperor to collect money for the household treasury. These men adopted any and every means to accomplish their work, and this added very materially to the discontent of the people. The prefects were Aery loath to forego a fraction of the taxation, because they saw how previous prefects were being mulcted because of failure to collect the full amount, and so between the prefect and the special agents the people seemed to be promised a rather bad time. In fact, it caused such an outcry on every side that the government at last reluctantly recalled the special agents. Early in the year the fact was made public that Korea had 176 THE PASSING OF KOREA entered into an agreement with Russia whereby it was guaran- teed that no land at Masanpo or on the island of Ko-je, at its entrance, should ever be sold or permanently leased to any foreign power. Russia had already secured a coaling station there, and it was generally understood, the world over, that Russia had special interest in that remarkably fine harbour. Avowedly this was merely for pacific purposes, but the pains which Russia took to make a secret agreement with Korea, debarring other powers from privileges similar to those which she had acquired, naturally aroused the suspicions of the Jap- anese and of the Koreans themselves, those of them that had not been in the secret; and this step, inimical to Japan as it undoubtedly was, probably helped to hasten the final catastrophe. Meanwhile Russian subjects were taking advantage of the influ- ential position of their government in Seoul, and, through min- isterial influence, some glass-makers, iron-workers and weavers were employed by the government without the smallest prob- ability of their ever doing anything in any of these lines. In fact, at about this time the government was induced to take on quite a large number of Russians and Russian sympathisers, who never were able to render any service whatever in lieu of their pay. In many cases the most cursory investigation would have shown that such would inevitably be the result. It is diffi- cult to evade the conclusion that the government was deliberately exploited. But at this time another and a far greater surprise was in store for the world. It was the announcement of a defensive alliance between Japan and Great Britain. By the terms of this agreement Japan and Great Britain guaranteed to insure the independence of Korea and the integrity of the Chinese Empire. The tremendous influence of this historic document was felt at once in every capital of Europe and in every capital, port and village of the Far East. It stung the lethargic to life, and it caused the rashly enthusiastic to stop and think. There can be no manner of doubt that this alliance was one of the RUSSIAN INTRIGUE 177 necessary steps in preparing for the war which Japan already foresaw on the horizon. It indicated clearly to Russia that her continued occupation of Manchuria and her continued encroach- ments upon Korea would be called in question at some not dis- tant day. But she was blind to the warning. This convention bound Great Britain to aid Japan in defensive operations, and to work with her to the preservation of Korean independence and the integrity of China. It will be seen, therefore, that Japan gave up once and for all any thought that she might previously have had of impairing the independence of this country, and any move in that direction would absolve Great Britain from all obligations due to the signing of the agreement. The year had but just begun when the operations of counter- feiters of nickel coins became so flagrant as to demand the attention of all who were interested in trade in the peninsula. Japan had most at stake and Russia had least, and this explains why the Russian authorities applauded the work of Yi Yong-ik and encouraged him to continue and increase the issue of such coinage. In March matters had come to such a pass that the foreign representatives, irrespective of partisan lines, met and discussed ways and means for overcoming the difficulty. After careful deliberation they framed a set of recommendations, which were sent to the government. These urged the discontinuance of this nickel coinage, the withdrawal from circulation of spurious coins, and stringent laws against counterfeiting. But this was of little or no avail. The government was making a five-cent coin at a cost of less than two cents, and consequently the counterfeiters, with good tools, could make as good a coin as the government, and still realise enormously on the operation. It was impossible to detect the counterfeited coins in many cases, and so there was no possibility of withdrawing them from circulation. The heavy drop in exchange was not due merely to the counterfeiting but to the fact that the intrinsic value of the coin was nothing like as much as the face value, and by an immutable law of finance, as well as of human nature, it fell to 1/8 THE PASSING OF KOREA a ruinous discount. But e^'en this would not have worked havoc with trade if, having fallen, the discredited coinage would stay fallen, but it had the curious trick of rising and falling with such sudden fluctuations that business became a mere gamble, and the heavy interests of Japanese and Chinese merchants were nearly at a standstill. At this point the First Bank of Japan, called the Dai Ichi Ginko. brought up a scheme for putting out an issue of special bank notes that would not circulate outside of Korea. Korea was importing much more than she exported, and the balance of trade being against her it was impossible to keep Japanese l)aper in the country in sufficient quantities to carry on ordinary local trade. For this reason the bank received the sanction of the Korean government to put out this issue of bank paper, which could not be sent abroad, but would be extremely useful as a local currency. This was done, and it was found to work admirably. The Koreans had confidence in this money, and it circulated freely. It had two advantages not enjoyed by any form of Korean currency, namely, it was a stable currency and suffered no fluctuations, and it was in large enough denomina- tions to make it possible to transfer a thousand dollars from one man's pocket to that of another without employing a string of pack-ponies to carry the stuff. The one important material improvement of the year was the adoption of a plan for the building of some thirty light- houses on the coast of Korea. Ever since the opening up of foreign trade, the lack of proper lights, especially on the western coast, had been a matter of growing concern to shipping com- panies. This concern was warranted by the dangerous nature of the coast, where high tides, a perfect network of islands and oft-prevailing fogs made navigation a most difficult and danger- ous matter. The fact that lighthouses ought to have been built ten years ago does not detract from the merit of those who at last took the matter in hand and pushed it to an issue. The month of May witnessed a spectacular event in the cere- RUSSIAN INTRIGUE 179* mony of the formal opening of work on the Seoul-Wiju Rail- way. The spirit was willing, but the flesh was weak. Neither French nor Russian money was forthcoming to push the work, and so the Korean government was invited to finance the scheme, Yi Yong-ik was made president of the company, and, if there- had been a few thousand more ex-prefects to mulct, he might have raised enough money to carry the road a few miles ; but it is much to be feared that his financial ability, so tenderly touched upon by the Japanese minister in his speech on that “ auspicious occasion,” was scarcely sufficient for the work, and the plan was not completed. There is much reason to believe that this whole operation was mainly a scheme on the part of the Russians to pre-empt the ground in order to keep the Jap- anese out. As the year wore toward its close, the usurpation of numerous- offices by Yi Yong-ik, and his assumption of complete control in the palace, bore its legitimate fruit in the intense hatred of four-fifths of the entire official class. He was looked upon as but one more victim destined to the same fate which had over- taken Kim Hong-nyuk and Kim Yung-jun. But in his case the difficulties were much greater. Yi Yong-ik had put awa}^ in some safe place an enormous amount of government money, and he held it as a hostage for his personal safety. Until that money was safely in the imperial treasury even the revenge would not be sweet enough to make it worth the loss. Not onl}^ so, but the whole finances of the household were in his hands, and his sudden taking off would leave the accounts in such shape that no one could make them out, and enormous sums- due the department would be lost. Yi Yong-ik had fixed him- self so that his life was better worth than his death, however much that might be desired. But the officiary at large cared little for this. There was no doubt that the one person who should accomplish the overthrow of the favourite, and thus bring embarrassment to the imperial purse, would suffer for it, but Korean intrigue was quite capable of coping with a little THE PASSING OF KOREA I So difficulty like this. The result must be brought about by a combination so strong and so unanimous that no one would ever know who the prime mover was. This at least is a plau- sible theory, and the only one that adequately explains how and why the scheme miscarried. The whole course of the intrigue is so characteristically Korean, and includes so many elements of genuine humour, in spite of its object, that we will narrate it briefly. It must of course be understood that the officials were keenly on the lookout for an opportunity to get the hated favourite on the hip, and in such a manner that even his finan- cial value to the Emperor would not avail him. One day, while in conversation with Lady Om, the Emperor’s favourite concubine, who has been mistress of the palace since the death of the Queen, Yi Yong-ik compared her to Yang Kwi-bi, a concubine of ffie last Emperor of the Tang dynasty in China. He intended this as a compliment, but, as his education is very limited, he was not aware that he could have said nothing more insulting; for Kwi-bi by her meretricious arts is believed to have brought about the destruction of the Tang dynasty. In some way the Prime Minister and the Foreign ^Minister heard a rumour that something insulting had been said. They called up the nephew of Lady Om, and from him learned the damning facts. They also knew well enough that no insult had been intended, but here was a “ case ” to be worked to its fullest capacity. The most sanguine could not hope that the hated favourite would give them a better hold upon him than this : for the position of Lady Om was a very delicate one, and there had been a dispute on for years between the Emperor's coun- sellors as to the advisability of raising her to the position of Eriipress. A word against her was a most serious matter. E^'erything was now ready for the grand coup, and on the 27th of November fourteen of the highest officials memorial- ised the throne declaring that Yi Yong-ik was a traitor and must be condemned and executed at once. His iMajesty sug- gested a little delay, but on the evening of that day the same RUSSIAN INTRIGUE i8i men presented a second memorial couched in still stronger language, and they followed it up the next morning with a third. To their urgent advice was added that of Lady Om herself and of many other of the officials. A crowd of officials gathered at the palace gate, and on their knees awaited the decision of the Emperor. There was not a single soul of all that crowd but knew that the charge was a mere excuse, and yet it was nominally valid. It was the will of that powerful company against the will of the Emperor. The tension was too great, and his Majesty at last reluctantly consented, or at least expressed consent ; but he first ordered the accused to be stripped of all his honours and to render all his accounts. This was nominally as reasonable as was the charge against the man. It was a case of “ diamond cut diamond,” in which the astuteness of the Emperor won. The accusers could not object to having the accused disgorge before being executed, but it was at this very point that they were foiled. Yi Yong-ik’s accounts were purposely in such shape that it would have taken a month to examine them, for he alone held the key. Nothing can exceed the desperate coolness of the man under the awful ordeal. At one point, just after the acquiescence of the Emperor, the written sentence of death is said to have gone forth, but was recalled just as it was to have gone out of the palace gates, after which there would have^been no recall. No man ever escaped by a narrower margin. When Yi Yong-ik presented his accounts the Emperor announced that it would take some days to straighten matters out since the accused was the only man to unravel the skein. Here was probably the crucial point in the intrigue. If the white heat of the day before had been maintained and the officials had demanded instant punishment, accounts or no accounts, the thing would have been done, but as it happened the consciousness of having won relaxed the tension to such a degree that the accused gained time. This time was utilised by calling in a Russian guard and spiriting the accused away to the Russian legation. This accomplished, his Majesty suavely THE PASSING OF KOREA 182 announced that the case would be considered, but that mean- while the officials must disperse. There were further memorials, resignations cn masse, passionate recriminations, until at last two or three officials who had held their peace saw that the game was up, and, in order to curry favour themselves, offered a counter memorial charging Yi Yong-ik’s accusers with indi- rection. This was listened to, and the Prime ^linister was deprived of his official rank. This made possible a compromise whereby both Yi Yong-ik and the Prime ^Minister were restored to all their former honours, and all went “ merry as a marriage bell.” But it was thought best to let Yi Yong-ik travel for his own and his country’s good, so he was made Commissioner to buy Annam rice, which was itself a pretty piece of diplomacy, since it recalled prominently to the people the one phase of the injured man’s career which they could unhesitatingly applaud. He was taken off in a Russian cruiser to Port Arthur — to buy Annam rice ! When he returned to Seoul a few weeks later, the Japanese lodged a strong protest against his return to political power, but the Russian authorities made a counter-proposition urging that he was the only man capable of handling the finances of the country. Under existing circumstances the ^•ery protest of the Japanese was an argument in his favour, and he came back into power on the flood tide, backed, as he had never been before, by the full favour of the Russian party. They naturally expected substantial payment for ha^■ing saved him, and so far as he was able he liquidated the debt. IMeanwhile another man, Yi Keun-tak, had risen to power through servile adherence to Russian interests. The somewhat enigmatical character of Yi Yong-ik made him to a certain extent an unknown quantity. Not even the Japanese considered him wholly given over to Russia; but this new man was defi- nitely committed to Russian interests, and with his rise to impor- tant position it became evident for the first time that the Korean government had decided to rely upon Russia and to reject the RUSSIAN INTRIGUE 183 aid or the advice of Japan. The end of the year 1902 may be said to have been the approximate time when Japan first realised that all hope of a peaceful solution of the Korean problem was gone. One naturally asks why Korea took this step, and, while we are still too near the event to secure an entirely dispassionate estimate or opinion, there seems to be little doubt that it was because Russia made no pretensions and expressed no desire to reform the administration of the government. She was per- fectly content to let things go along in the old way in the peninsula, knowing that this would constantly and increasingly jeopardise the interests of Japan, while she herself had practi- cally no commercial interests to suffer. The immemorial policy of Russia in Asia sufficiently accounts for her work in Korea. Her policy of gradual absorption of native tribes has never held within its purview the civilising or the strengthening of those tribes, until they have been gathered under her aegis. On the other hand, until that has been accom- plished she has either waited patiently for the disintegration of the native tribes or has actually aided in such disintegration. History shows no case in which Russia has strengthened the hands of another people for the sake of profiting by the larger market that would be opened up; for until very recently the commercial side of the question has scarcely been considered, and even now the commercial interests of Russia depend upon an exclusive market. So that in any case a dominant political influence is the very first step in every move of Russia in the East. Why then should Russia have advised administrative or monetary or any other reform, since such action would inevi- tably form a bar to the success of her own ultimate plans? The historian of the future, taking his stand above and out of the smoke of battle, will take a dispassionate view of the whole situation. He will mark the antecedents of these two rival powers ; he will compare their domestic and foreign poli- cies, he will weigh the motives that impelled them, he will mark the instruments wielded by each and the men whom they employed 184 THE PASSING OF KOREA as their intermediaries and agents. Then, and not till then, will it be possible to tell whether the present recorders of events are right in asserting that while the policies of both powers are essentially selfish the success of Russia’s policy involves the dis- integration and national ruin of the peoples she comes in contact with, while the success of Japan’s policy, if she only could see it, demands the rehabilitation of the Far East. Much depended upon the attitude which Korea should finally assume toward these two mutually antagonistic policies. If she had sided with Japan and had shown a fixed determination to resist the encroachments of Russia by adopting a policy of internal renovation which would enlist the interest and command the admiration of the world, the war might have been indefinitely postponed. Whether it could have been finally avoided would depend largely upon the changes that are taking place in Russia herself, where in spite of all repressive agencies education and enlightenment are filtering in and causing a gradual change. Time alone will tell whether the outcome of the war was a bless- ing or not, for it is not yet certain whether Japan is bent upon territorial e.xpansion or not. Her action in Korea is far from reassuring. The year 1903 beheld the rapid culmination of the difficulties between Japan and Russia. It had already become almost sure that war alone would cut the Gordian knot, and if any more proof was necessary this year supplied it. CHAPTER XII THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR E arly in the year it transpired that the Russians had obtained from the Korean Emperor a concession to cut timber along the Yalu River. The thing was done secretly and irregularly, and the government never received a tithe of the value of the concession. By this act the government dispossessed itself of one of its finest sources of wealth, and sacrificed future millions for a few paltry thousand in hand, and a promise to pay a share of the profits, though no provision was made for giving the government an opportunity of watching the work in its own interests. Soon after the Russians had opened up the concession they began to make ad- vances for the obtaining of harbour facilities in connection with it. The port of Yongampo was decided upon, and the Korean government was asked to allow the Russians the use of it for this purpose. This created a very profound impression upon Japan and upon the world at large. It was felt that this was giving Russia a foothold upon the soil of Korea, and Russia’s history shows that, once gained, the point would never be given up. The activity of Russia in the north gave rise to the notion that Japanese influence was predominant in the southern half of the peninsula and Russia in the northern half. This gave birth to all sorts of rumours among the Korean people, and the ancient books were ransacked for prophecies that would fit the situation. As a whole, the attitude of the Korean has always been a rational and consistent one as between Russia and Japan. He has a C greater personal antipathy for the latter because they have come into closer contact ; but t here is a mysterious dread in his heart Avhich warns him of the Russian. He will never say which he i86 THE PASSING OF KOREA would rather have in power here, but always says, “ I pray to be delivered from them both.” Japan began to urge upon the government the necessity of opening Yongampo to foreign trade, but Russia, of course, opposed this with all her powers of persuasion. Great Britain and the United States joined in urging the opening of the port. The United States had already arranged for the opening of the port of Antung, just opposite Yongampo, and for the sake of trade it was highly desirable that a port on the Korean side of the Yalu should be opened. It had no special reference to the Russian occupation of the port, but as pressure was being brought to bear upon the government to throw open the port, it was con- sidered an opportune time to join forces in pushing for this desired end. And it was more for the interest of Korea to do this than for any of the powers that were urging it. Such an act would have been a check to Russian aggression, and would have rendered nugatory any ulterior plan she might have as regards Korea. But the Russian power in Seoul was too great. It had not upheld the cause of Yi Yong-ik in vain, and the gov- ernment, while using very specious language, withstood every attempt to secure the opening of the port. At last the American government modified its request, and asked that Wiju be opened; but to this Russia objected almost as strongly as to the other. There can be little doubt that this uncompromising attitude of Russia on the Korean border confirmed Japan in the position she had already assumed. It was quite evident that the force of arms was the only thing that would make Russia retire from Korean soil. All through the summer complaints came in from the north that the Russians were working their own will along the northern border, and taking every advantage of the loose language in which the agreement had been worded. Again and again infor- mation came up to Seoul that the Russian agents were going outside the limits specified in the bond, but there was no one to check it. It was impossible to police the territory encroached THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 187 upon, and there is reason to believe that the government chafed under the imposition. At least the telegraph lines which the Russians erected, entirely without warrant, were repeatedly torn down by emissaries of the government, and apparently without check from the central authorities. In the summer, when the text of the proposed agreement Retween Russia and Korea anent Yongampo became public, the Japanese government made a strong protest. She probably knew that this was a mere form, but she owed it to herself to file a protest against such suicidal action on the part of Korea. The insolence of the Russians swelled to the point of renaming Yong- ampo Port Nicholas. In October the Japanese merchants in Seoul and other com- mercial centres began calling in all outstanding moneys, with the evident expectation of war. All brokers and loan associations closed their accounts and refused to make further loans. It is more than probable that they had received the hint that it might be well to suspend operations for the time being. From this time until war was declared, the people of Korea waited in utmost suspense. They knew war only as a universal desolation. They had no notion of any of the comparative amenities of modern warfare or the immunities of non-combatants. War meant to them the breaking up of the very foundations of society, and many a time the anxious inquiry was put as to whether the war would probably be fought on Korean soil or in Manchuria. Once more Korea found herself the “ shrimp between two whales,” and doubly afflicted in that whichever one should win she would in all probability form part of the booty of the victor. The year 1904, which will be recorded in history as one of the most momentous in all the annals of the Far East, opened upon a very unsatisfactory state of things in Korea. It had become as certain as any future event can be that Japan and Russia would soon be at swords’ points. The negotiations between these two powers were being carried on in St. Peters- burg, and, as published later, were of the most unsatisfactory THE PASSING OF KOREA 1 88 nature. Japan was completing her arrangements for striking the blow which fell on the 9th of February. Of course these plans were not made public, but there was conflict in the very air, and all men were bracing themselves for the shock that they felt must soon come. The action of Japanese money-lenders in sus- pending operations was followed in January by the Korean pawn- brokers, and at a season when such action inflicted the greatest possible harm upon the poor people of the capital, who find it impossible to live without temporarily hypothecating a portion of their personal effects. This, together with the excessive cold, aroused a spirit of unrest which came near assuming dangerous proportions. Some of the native papers were so unwise as to fan the embers by dilating upon the hard conditions under which the Koreans laboured. Their sharpest comments were directed at the government, but their tendency was to incite the populace against foreigners. All through the month the various foreign legations were bringing in guards to protect their legations and their respective nationals, and this very natural and entirely justifiable action was resented by the government. It protested time and again against the presence of foreign troops, as if their coming were in some way an insult to Korea. The officials in charge thereby showed their utter incompetence to diagnose the situation correctly. It was well known that the disaffection among the Korean troops in Seoul was great, and that the dangerous element known as the Peddlers’ Guild was capable of any excesses. The unfriendly attitude of Yi Yong-ik and Yi Keun-tak towards western for- eigners, excepting Russians and French, together with their more or less close connection with the Peddlers, was sufficient reason for the precautionary measures that were adopted. But the native papers made matters worse by ridiculing both the gov- ernment and the army. At one time there was considerable solicitude on the part of foreigners, not lest the Korean populace itself would break into open revolt, but lest some violent faction would be encouraged by the authorities to make trouble, so little THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 189 confidence had they in the good sense of the court favourite. It was fairly evident that in case of trouble the Japanese would very soon hold the capital, and it was feared that the violently pro- Russian officials, despairing of protection at the hands of Russia, would cause a general insurrection, hoping in the tumult to make good their escape. It was felt that great precautions should be taken by foreigners not to give any excuse for a popular uprising. The electric cars diminished their speed so as to obviate the pos- sibility of any accident, for even the smallest casualty might form the match which would set the people on fire. About the 20th of January the report circulated that Russia had proposed that northern Korea be made a neutral zone and that Japan exercise predominant influence in the south. This was only an echo of the negotiations which were nearing the break- ing point in St. Petersburg, and it confirmed those who knew Japan in their opinion that war alone could settle the matter. On the following day the Korean government issued its proclama- tion of neutrality as between Russia and Japan. This curious action, taken before any declaration of war or any act of hos- tility, was a pretty demonstration of Russian tactics. It was evident that in case of war Japan would be the first in the field, and Korea would naturally be the road by which she would attack Russia. Therefore, while the two were technically at peace with each other, Korea was evidently induced by Russia to put forth a premature declaration of neutrality in order to anticipate any use of Korean territory by Japanese troops. At the time this was done the Foreign Office was shorn of all real power, and was only the mouthpiece through which these friends of Russia spoke in order to make their pronouncements official. It was already known that two of the most powerful Koreans at court had strongly urged that Russia be asked to send troops to guard the imperial palace in Seoul, and the Japanese were keenly on the lookout for evidences of bad faith in the matter of this declared neutrality. When, therefore, they picked up a boat on the Yellow Sea a few days later. and found on it a Korean bearing 190 THE PASSING OF KOREA a letter to Port Arthur asking for troops, and that, while unofficial in form, it came from the very officials who had promulgated the declaration of neutrality, it became abundantly clear that the spirit of neutrality was non-existent. It must be left to the future historian to declare whether the Japanese were justified in impairing a declared neutrality that existed only in name, and under cover of which the Korean officials were proved to be acting in a manner distinctly hostile to the interests of Japan. All through January the Japanese were busy making military stations every fifteen miles between Fusan and Seoul. All along the line small buildings were erected, sufficiently large to house twenty or thirty men. On the 22nd of January General Ijichi arrived in Seoul as Alilitary Attache of the Japanese Legation. The appointment of a man of such rank as this was most signifi- cant and should have aroused the Russians to a realising sense of their danger; but it did not do so. Four days later this general made a final appeal to the Korean government, asking for some •definite statement as to its attitude toward Russia and Japan. The foreign office answered that the government was entirely neutral. Two days later the Japanese landed a large amount of barley at the port of Kunsan, a few hours’ run south of Chemulpo, and a light railway of the Decauville type was also landed at the same place. On the 29th all Korean students were recalled from Japan. On the I St of February the Russians appeared to be the only •ones who did not realise that trouble was brewing, otherwise why should they have stored fifteen hundred tons of coal and a quantity of barley in their godowns on Roze Island in Che- mulpo harbour on the 2nd of that month? On the yth the government received a despatch from Whju saying that sev- eral thousand Russian troops were approaching the border, and that the Japanese merchants and others were preparing to retire from that place. The same day the foreign office sent to all the open ports ordering that news should be immediately telegraphed ■of any important movements. THE JAPANESE LEGATION THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 191 On the 8th of February the Japanese posted notices in Seoul .and vicinity that what Japan was about to do was dictated by motives of right and justice, and that the property and per- sonal rights of Koreans would be respected. Koreans were urged to report any cases of ill-treatment to the Japanese author- ities and immediate justice was promised. From this day the port of Chemulpo was practically blockaded by the Japanese, and ■only by their consent could vessels enter or clear. Having arrived at the point of actual rupture between Japan and Russia, it is necessary, before entering into any details of the struggle, to indicate the precise bearing of it upon Korea. Japan has always looked upon Korea as a land whose political status and affinities are of vital interest to herself, just as England once looked upon the Cinque ports, namely, as a possible base •of hostile action, and therefore to be carefully watched. One ■of two things have therefore been deemed essential, either that Korea should be thoroughly independent or that she should be under a Japanese protectorate. These two ideas have animated ■different parties in Japan and have led to occasional troubles. There is one radical faction which has consistently and persist- ently demanded that Japan’s suzerainty over Korea should be ■established and maintained, and it was the unwillingness of the Japanese authorities to adopt strong measures in the peninsula which led to the Satsuma Rebellion. Another large fraction of the Japanese, of more moderate and rational view, are committed to the policy of simply holding to the independence of Korea, arguing very rightly that if such independence is maintained .and the resources of the country are gradually developed, Japan will reap all the material advantages of the situation without shouldering the burden of the Korean administration or meeting the violent opposition of the Koreans, which seizure would inevitably entail. It is this latter policy which has prevailed, and according to which Japan has attempted to work during the past three decades. It is this which actuated her during the period of China’s active claim to suzerainty and at last caused the War of 192 THE PASSING OF KOREA 1894, which supposedly settled the question of Korea’s independ- ence. But following upon this came the encroachments of Russia in Manchuria and the adoption of a vigorous policy in Korea. Japan’s efforts to preserve the intrinsic autonomy of Korea were rendered abortive partly through mistakes which her own repre- sentatives and agents made, but still more through the supineness and venality of Korean officials. The subjects of the Czar at the capital of Korea made use of the most corrupt officials at court, and through them opposed Japanese interests at every point. Furthermore, they made demands for exclusive rights in different Korean ports, and succeeded in encroaching upon Korean sovereignty in Yongampo. The evident policy of Russia was to supplant Japan in the peninsula, and no reasonable person ca^fail to see that it was their ultimate plan to add Korea to the niap---QTjRussia. The cause of the war was, therefore, the necessity laid upon Japan of safeguarding her vital interests, nay, her very existence, by checking the encroachments of Russia upon Korean territory. But before submitting the matter to the arbitrament of the sword, Japan exerted ei'ery effort to make Russia define her intentions in the Far East. With a patience that elicited the admiration of the world she kept plying Russia with pertinent questions, until at last it was revealed that Russia intended to deal with Manchuria as she wished, and would concede Japanese interests in southern Korea only, and not even this unless Japan would engage not to act in that sphere as Russia was acting in IManchuria. All this time the Japanese people were ‘clamouring for war. They wanted to get at the throat of their manifest foe ; but their government in a masterly way held them in check and kept its own secrets so inviolable as to astonish the most astute diploma- tists of the day. At last, when the hour struck, Japan declared for war Avithout having weakened the enthusiasm of her people, and without giving occasion to adverse critics to say that she had yielded to popular importunity. Y’hen she communicated to THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 193 Russia her irreducible minimum, one would think that even the blind could see that war was certain to follow soon. But even then, if there is any truth in direct evidence, the great majority of the Russians laughed the matter aside as impossible. The moderation and self-control of Japan was counted to her for hesitation, so that when the moment for action came, and Japan sprang upon her like a tigress robbed of her whelps, Russia cried aloud that she had been wronged. Already on the morning of the 7th Baron Rosen’s credentials had been handed back to him in Tokyo. The evening before this the Japanese Minister had left St. Petersburg. This in itself was a declaration of war, but forty hours elapsed before Japan struck the first blow. Dur- ing those hours Russia had ample time in which to withdraw her boats from Chemulpo, even though the Japanese refused to trans- mit telegrams to Seoul. A fast boat from Port Arthur could easily have brought the message. It was on the 6th and 7th that reports circulated in Seoul that the Japanese were landing large bodies of troops at Kunsan or Asan or both. These rumours turned out to be false, but beneath them was the fact that a fleet was approaching Chemulpo. The question has been insistently asked why the Russian Minister did not inform the commanders of these Russian vessels, and see to it that they were clear of the harbour before these rumours were realised. The answer as given is that the Russian Minister had no control over these boats. They had their orders to remain in Chemulpo and they must stay. One w'ould think that there would be at least enough rapport between the civil and military (or naval) authorities to use the one in forwarding the interests of the other. Even yet the Russians did not appreciate the seriousness of the situation ; but they decided that it was time to send notice to their authorities in Port Arthur of what was rumoured at Chemulpo. So the small gunboat Koryeta made ready to move out. Her captain, Belaieff, proposed to the Russian Consul that the Russian steamship Sungari, which was in port, should go 194 THE PASSING OF KOREA with the Koryetz and thus enjoy her protection, but the agent of the company which owned the steamship strongly objected to her leaving the neutral port at sv;ch a time. He evidently realised in part the acuteness of the situation. So the Sungari remained at her anchorage and the Koryctz steamed out of port at two o’clock in the afternoon. Now, the harbour of Chemulpo is a somewhat peculiar one, for in one sense it is landlocked and in another it is not. It is formed by islands between which there are many openings to the open sea, but most of these are so shallow that ships of medium draught do not dare attempt them. There is but one recognised entrance, and that is from the south- west, or between that and the sortth. This entrance is several miles wide, and in the centre of it lies Round Island. When the Koryctz arrived at the exit of the harbour, she suddenly found herself surrounded by torpedo-boats. The only witnesses of what occurred at this point are the Japanese and the Russians, and we can only give their accounts. The Russians say that the Japanese launched four torpedoes at the Koryetz, and when within ten feet of her side they sank. Another statement is that a shot was fired on board the Koryctz, but it was a mere acci- dent. The Japanese claim that the Koryctz fired first. If we try to weigh the probabilities it seems impossible that the tor- pedoes of the Japanese should have missed the Koryctz if the torpedo-boats were as near as the Russians claim. On the other hand, the admission on the part of a single Russian that the first gun was fired on the Koryctz, even though by accident, is rather damaging, for it is more than singular that an accident should ha\'e happened at that precise time. It is a tax on the credulity of the public to give this lame excuse. In any case it makes little difference who began the firing. The Japanese had already seized the Russian steamer Mukden in the harbour of Fusan, and the war had begun. The Japanese doubtless held with Polonius, that if it is necessary to fight, the man who strikes first and hardest will have the advantage. The Koryctz turned back to her anchorage and the Russians became THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 195. aware of the extreme precariousness of their position. Whatever attitude one may take toward the general situation, it is impos- sible not to extend a large degree of sympathy to these Russians personally. Through no fault of their own they were trapped in the harbour, and found too late that they must engage in a hopeless fight in order to uphold the honour of the Russian flag. But even yet it was not sure that the neutrality of the port would be ignored by the Japanese. Lying at anchor among neutral vessels in a neutral harbour, there was more or less reason to believe that they were safe for the time being. About four o’clock in the afternoon of the 8th of February, which fell on Monday, three Japanese transports entered Che- mulpo harbour from the south, convoyed by cruisers and torpedo- boats. They seemingly took no notice of the two Russian boats- lying at anchor, and were evidently sure that the Russians would not fire upon the transports. It would be interesting to know whether the Japanese were relying upon the declared neutrality of the port in thus venturing, or whether they felt sure that their own superior strength would keep the Russians still, or whether, again, they were certain that the Russians had orders not to fire the first gun. But it is bootless to ask questions that can never be answered. Here is where the assailant has the advantage. He can choose the time and method of his attack. We may surmise that, had the Russians divined the intentions- of the Japanese and had foreseen the outcome, they would have acted differently, but divination of Japanese intentions does- not seem to be Russia’s strong point. As soon as the Japanese came to anchor, preparations were made for the immediate landing of the troops, and the cruisers and torpedo-boats that had convoyed them in left the port and joined the fleet outside. This fleet consisted of six cruisers and several torpedo-boats. The Asarna and the Chiyoda were the most powerful of the cruisers, the former being nearly half as large again as the Variak. Night came on, and throughout its long hours the Japanese 196 THE PASSING OF KOREA troops, by the light of huge fires burning on the jetty, were landed and marched up into the town. When morning came, everyone was in a state of expectancy. If there was a Japanese fleet outside, they doubtless had other work on hand than simply watching two Russian boats. Nor could they leave them behind, for one of them was Russia’s fastest cruiser, and might steam out of the harbour at any time and destroy Japanese transports. Knowing, as we do now, that an immediate attack on Port Arthur had been decided upon, we see that it was impossible to leave these Russian boats in the rear. Japan had never recognised the neutrality of Korea, for she knew that the dec- laration was merely a Russian move to embarrass her, and she never hesitated a moment to break the thin shell of pretence. About ten o’clock a sealed letter was handed to Captain Rudnieff of the Variak. It was from the Japanese Admiral, and had been sent through the Russian Consulate. It was delivered on board the Variak by the hand of IMr. N. Krell, a Russian resident of the port. This letter informed the Russian commander that unless both Russian boats should leave the anchorage and steam out of the bay before twelve o’clock the Japanese would come in at four o’clock and attack them where they lay. Captain Rudnieff immediately communicated the startling intelligence to Captain Belaieff of the Korycts and to the commanders of the British, American, French and Italian war-vessels. We are informed that a conference of the various commanders took place, and that the Russians were advised to lie where they were. The British commander was deputed to confer with the Japanese. This was done by signal, and it is said that a protest was made against the proposed violation of neutrality of the port and that the neutral boats refused to shift their anchorage. But all complications of this nature were avoided by the determination of the Russians to accept the challenge. This they deemed to be due their flag. It is not improbable that they now foresaw that the neutrality of the port THE JAPAN-RUSSIA WAR 197 would not avail them against the enemy. By remaining at anchor they could only succeed in involving France, Italy, Great Britain and the United States, and there would be sure to be those who would charge the Russians with cowardice. If this was to begin the war, it must at least prove the dauntless cour- age of the servants of the Czar. So the commander of the Variak ordered the decks cleared for action. It has been stated that he would have preferred to have the Koryetz stay at her anchorage, for by a quick dash it was just possible that the swift Variak alone might be able to evade the Japanese and run the gauntlet successfully. But the commander of the Koryetz refused to listen to any such proposition. If the only honour to be gotten out of the affair was by a desperate attack, he was not going to forego his share of it. He would go out and sink with the Variak. So the Koryetz also cleared for action. It was done in such haste that all movables that were unnecessary were thrown overboard, a topmast that would not come down in the usual manner was hewn down with an axe, and by half-past eleven the two vessels were ready to go out to their doom. It was an almost hopeless task — an entirely hope- less one unless the Japanese should change their minds or should make some grave mistake, and neither of these things was at all probable. The Russians were going to certain destruction. Some call it rashness, not bravery, but they say not well. The boats were doomed in any case, and it was the duty of their officers and crews to go forth and in dying inflict what injury they could upon the enemy. To go into battle with chances equal is the act of a brave man, but to walk into the jaws of death with nothing but defeat in prospect, is the act of a hero, and the Japanese would be the last to detract from the noble record that the Russians made. Time has not yet lent its glamour to this event, we are too near it to see it in proper proportions, but if the six hundred heroes of Balaclava, veterans of many a fight, gained undying honour for the desperate charge they made, how shall not the future crown these men who. 198 THE PASSING OF KOREA having never been in action before, made such a gallant dash at the foe? And herein lies the intrinsic damnableness of war,, that causes which will not stand the test of abstract justice can marshal to their support the noblest qualities of which men are capable. CHAPTER XIII THE BATTLE OF CHEMULPO I T was a cloudless but hazy day, and from the anchorage the Japanese fleet was all but invisible, for it lay at least eight miles out in the entrance of the harbour and partly concealed by Round Island, which splits the offing into two channels. The two boats made straight for the more east- erly of the channels, their course being a very little west of south. When they had proceeded about half the distance from the anchorage to the enemy’s fleet, the latter threw a shot across the bows of each of the Russian boats, as a command to stop and surrender, but the Russians took no notice of it. The only chance the Russians had to inflict any damage was to reduce the firing range as much as possible, for the Variak’s guns were only six inches and four-tenths in calibre, and at long range they would have been useless. This was at five minutes before noon. The Japanese fleet was not deployed in a line facing the approaching boats, and it was apparent that they did not intend to bring their whole force to bear upon the Russians simul- taneously. We are informed that only two of the Japanese vessels, the Asama and the Chiyoda, did the work. It was not long after the warning shots had been fired that the Japanese let loose, and the roar that went up from those terrible machines of destruction tore the quiet of the windless bay to tatters and made the houses of the town tremble where they stood. As the Variak advanced, she swerved to the eastward and gave the Japanese her starboard broadside. All about her the sea was lashed into foam by striking shot, and almost from the begin- ning of the fight her steering-gear was shot away, so that she had to depend on her engines alone for steering. It became 200 THE PASSING OF KOREA evident to her commander that the passage was impossible. He had pushed eastward until there was imminent danger of running aground. So he turned again toward the west, and came around in a curve which brought the Variak much nearer to the Japanese. It was at this time that the deadly work was done upon her. Ten of her twelve gun-captains were shot away. A shell struck her fo’castle, passed between the arm and body of a gunner who had his hand upon his hip and, bursting, Tilled every other man on the fo’castle. Both bridges were destroyed by bursting shells, and the captain was seriously wounded in the left arm. The watchers on shore and on the shipping in the harbour saw flames bursting out from her quarter-deck, and one witness plainly saw shells drop just beside her and burst beneath the water-line. It was these shots that did the real damage, for when, after three-quarters of an hour of steady fighting, she turned her prow back toward the anchorage it was seen that she had a heavy list to port, which could have been caused only by serious damage below the water-line. As the two boats came slowly back to port, the Variak so crippled by the destruction of one of her engines that she could make only ten knots an hour, the Japanese boats followed, pouring in a galling fire, until the Russians had almost reached the anchor- age. Then the pursuers drew back and the battle was over. The Koryctz was intact. The Japanese had resen'ed all their fire for the larger vessel. The Variak was useless as a fighting machine, for her heavy list to port would probably have made it impossible to train the guns on the enemy, but all knew that the end had not yet come. The Russians had neither sunk nor surrendered. The threat of the Japanese to come in at four o’clock was still active. As soon as the Variak dropped anchor the British sent off four hospital boats to her Avith a surgeon and a nurse. Other vessels also sent offers of aid. But it was found that the Russians had decided to lie at anchor and fight to the bitter end, and at the last moment blow up their A’essels with all on board. What else was there for them to do? They THE BATTLE OF CHEMULPO 201 would not surrender, and they could not leave their ships and go ashore only to be captured by the enemy. They would play out the tragedy to a finish, and go down fighting. Upon learn- ing of this determination, the commanders of the various neu- tral vessels held another conference, at which it was decided that the Russians had done all that was necessary to vindicate the honour of their flag, and that, as it was a neutral port, the survivors should be invited to seek asylum on the neutral vessels. The invitation was accepted, and the sixty-four wounded on board the Variak were at once transferred to the British cruiser Talbot and the French cruiser Pascal. As the commanders of the neutral vessels knew that the Variak and Koryctz were to be sunk by the Russians, they paid no particular attention to the reiterated statement of the Japanese, that they would enter the harbour at four and finish the work already begun. The passengers, crew and mails on board the steamship Sungari had already been transferred to the Pascal, and an attempt had been made to scuttle her, but she was filling very slowly indeed. It was about half-past three in the afternoon that the officers and crew of the Koryefz went over the side and on board the Pascal. A train had been laid by which she would be blown up, and it is supposed that she was entirely abandoned, but some spec- tators assert that they saw several men on the forward deck an instant before the explosion took place. It was generally known throughout the town that the Koryets would be blown up before four o’clock, and everyone sought some point of vantage from which to witness the spectacle. Scores of people went out to the little island on which the lighthouse stands, for this was nearest to the doomed ship. It was thirty-seven minutes past three when the waiting multitude saw two blinding flashes of light, one following the other in quick succession. A terrific report followed, which dwarfed the roar of cannon to a whisper and shook every house in the town as if it had been struck by a solid rock. The window-fastenings of one house at least were torn off, so great was the concussion. 202 THE PASSING OF KOREA An enormous cloud of smoke and debris shot toward the sky and at the same time enveloped the spot where the vessel had lain. A moment later there began a veritable shower of splin- tered wood, torn and twisted railing, books, clothes, rope, uten- sils and a hundred other belongings of the ship. The cloud of smoke expanded in the upper air and blotted out the sun like an eclipse. The startled gulls flew hither and thither, as if dazed by this unheard-of phenomenon, and men instinctively raised their hands to protect themselves from the falling debris, pieces of which were drifted by the upper currents of air for a distance of three miles landward, where they fell by the hun- dreds in people's yards. Wflien the smoke was dissipated, it was discovered that the Koryctz had sunk, only her funnel and some torn rigging appearing above the surface, if we except her forward steel deck, which the force of the explosion had bent up from the prow so that the point of it, like the share of a huge plough, stood several feet out of water. The surface of the bay all about the spot was covered thickly with smoking debris, and several of the ship’s boats were floating about intact upon the water. The Variak was left to sink where she lay. The forty-one dead on board were placed together in a cabin and went down with her. She burned on till evening and then, inclining more and more to port, her funnels finally touched the water, and with a surging, choking groan, as of some great animal in pain, she sank. As the water reached the fires a cloud of steam went up which, illuminated by the last flash of the fire, formed her signal of farewell. It was arranged that the British and the French boats should carry the Russians to a neutral port and guarantee their parole until the end of the war. This wholly unexpected annihilation of the Russian boats naturally caused consternation among the Russians of Chemulpo and Seoul. The Russian Consulate was surrounded by the Jap- THE FRENCH LEGATION BUILDING p^c-x“i-C> Ot KOH-Ji-A. It was believf '^ Japanese guard, withdrew. This was the first point at . i^^nich the two belligerents came in touch with each other. It was on the night of the 23rd of February that Korea signed with Japan a protocol, by the terms of which Korea practically allied herself with Japan and became, as it were, a silent partner in the war. Korea granted the Japanese the right to use Korea as a road to Manchuria, and engaged to give them every pos- sible facility for prosecuting the war. On the other hand, Japan guaranteed the independence of Korea and the safety of the imperial family. It is needless to discuss the degree of spon- taneity with which Korea did this. It was a case of necessity, but if rightly used it might have proved of immense benefit to Korea, as it surely did to Japan. It formally did away with the empty husk of neutrality which had been proclaimed, and made every seaport of the peninsula belligerent territory, even as it did the land itself. March saw the end of the Peddlers’ Guild. They had been organised in Russian interests, but now they had no longer any raison d’etre. As a final flurry, one of their number entered the house of the Foreign Minister with the intent to murder him, but did not find his victim. Other similar attempts were made, but did not succeed. The Japanese handled the situation in Seoul with great cir- cumspection. The notion that they would attack the pro-Russian officials proved false. Everything was kept quiet, and the per- turbation into which the court and the government were thrown by these startling events was soon soothed. Marquis Ito was sent from Japan with a friendly message to the Emperor of Korea, and this did much to quiet the un- settled state of things in Korea. At about the same time the northern ports of Wiju and Yongampo were opened to foreign trade. This was a natural result of the withdrawal of Russian influence. It was not long before Yi Yong-ik, who had played such a leading role in Korea, was invited to go to Japan, and thus an element of unrest was removed from the field of action. THE 'BATTLE OF CHEMUi.. anese troops, and the Consul was held practically a p The Japanese Minister in Seoul suggested to the Russian i\Iin- ister, through the French Legation, the advisability of his removing from Seoul with his nationals, and every facility was given him for doing this with expedition and with comfort. A few days later all the Russians were taken by special train to Chemulpo, and there, being joined by the Russian subjects in Chemulpo, they went on board the Pascal. This vessel must have been crowded, for it is said that when she sailed she had on hoard six hundred Russians, both civilians and military men. Twenty-four of the most desperately wounded men on board the neutral ships were sent ashore and placed in the Provisional Red Cross Hospital. For this purpose the English Church i\lis- sion kindly put at the disposal of the Japanese their hospital at Chemulpo. Several of these wounded men were suffering from gangrene when they came off the Pascal, but with the most sedulous care the Japanese physicians and nurses pulled them through. After this battle at Chemulpo there was no more question about landing Korean troops further down the coast ; in fact, as soon as the ice was out of the Tadong River, Chinnampo became the point of disembarkation. But meanwhile the troops which had landed at Chemulpo were pushing north by land as rapidly as circumstances would permit, and within a few weeks of the beginning of the war Pyeng-yang was held by a strong force of Japanese. At the same time work was pushed rapidly on the Seoul-Fusan Railway and also begun on the projected railway line between Seoul and Wiju. As for the Russians, they ne^•er seriously in^-aded Korean territory. Bands of Cossacks crossed the Yalu and scoured the country right and left, hut their onl)^ serious purpose was to keep in touch with the enemy and report as to their movements. On the 28th of February a small hand of Cossacks approached the north gate of Pyeng-yang, and, after exchanging a few shots THE BATTLE OF CHEMULPO 205 It was believed that the Japanese would immediately introduce many needed reforms, but it seemed to be their policy to go very slowly, so slowly in fact that the better element among the Koreans was disappointed, and got the impression that Japan was not particularly interested in the matter of reform. It is probable that the energies of the Japanese were too much engaged in other directions to divert any to Korea at the time. They had been complaining bitterly about the monetary condi- tions, but when they suddenly stepped into power in Seoul on the 9th of February they seemed to forget all about this, for up to the end of 1904 they failed to do anything to correct the vagaries of Korean finance. But instead of this the Japanese merchants in Korea and other Japanese who were here for other reasons than their health immediately began to make requests and demands for all sorts of privileges. The Board of Trade in Fusan asked the Japanese government to secure control of the Maritime Customs service, permission for extra-territorial privi- leges, the establishment of Japanese agricultural stations and other impossible things. Meanwhile the Japanese were steadily pushing north. At Anju a slight skirmish occurred, but there was nothing that could be called a fight until the Japanese reached the town of Chong- ju, where a small body of Russians took a stand on a hill northwest of the town and held it for three hours, but even here the casualties were only about fifteen on either side. The Russians evidently had no notion of making a determined stand this side the Yalu. Already, a week before, the Russian troops had withdrawn from Yongampo and had crossed to Antung. This fight at Chong-ju occurred on the 28th of March, and a \Yeek later practically all the Russian forces had crossed the Yalu, and Korea ceased to be belligerent territory. It is not the province of this history to follow the Japanese across that historic river and relate the events which occurred at the beginning of May when the first great land battle of the war was fought. The whole north had been thrown into the greatest con- j 206 THE PASSING OF KOREA fusion by the presence of these two belligerents. Cossack bands Iiad scurried about the country, making demands for food and fodder, a part of which they were willing to pay for with Rus- sian currency cjuite unknown to the Korean. From scores of villages and towns the women had fled to the mountain recesses at a most inclement season, and untold suffering had been -entailed. But these are things that always come in the track of war, and the Koreans bore them as uncomplainingly as they 'could. Throughout the whole country the absorption of the attention of the government in the events of the war was taken advantage of by robbers, and their raids were frequent and ■destructive. As soon as the government found that the Jap- anese did not intend to rule with a high hand, it sank back into the former state of self-complacent lethargy', and things went along in the old ruts. It was perfectly plain that Korean official- dom had no enthusiasm for the Japanese cause. It is probable that a large majority of the people preferred to see Japan win rather than the Russians, but it was the fond wish of ninety-nine out of every hundred to see Korea rid of them both. Whichever one held exclusix'e power here was certain to become an object of hatred to the Korean people. Had the Russians driven out the Japanese, the Koreans would have hated them as heartily. Whichever horn of the dilemma Korea became impaled upon, she was sure to think the other would have been less sharp. Few Koreans looked at the matter from any large standpoint or tried to get from the situation anything but personal advantage. This is doubtless the reason why it was so difficult to gain an opinion from Korean officials. They' did not want to go on record as ha^•ing any decided sympathies either way’. The people of no other land were so nearly’ neutral as were those 'of Korea. The temporary effect of the war upon the Korean currency was to enhance its value. Imports suddenly came to a stand- still because of the lack of steamships and the possible dangers ■of navigation. This stopped the demand for yen. The Japanese THE BATTLE OF CHEMULPO 207 army had to spend large sums in Korea, and this required the purchase of Korean money. The result was that the yen, instead of holding its ratio of something like one to two and a half of the Korean dollar, fell to the ratio of one to only one and four-tenths. When, however, the sea was cleared of the Rus- sians and import trade was resumed and the bulk of the Jap- anese crossed the Yalu, the Korean dollar fell again to a ratio ■of about two to one, which it has preserved up to the present time. From the time when the Russians retired beyond the Yalu, warlike operations between the two belligerents were confined to northeast Korea, though even there very little was doing. The Vladivostock squadron was still in being, and on the 25th of April it appeared at the mouth of Wonsan harbour. Only one small Japanese boat was at anchor there, the Goyo Maru, and this was destroyed by a torpedo-boat which came in for the express purpose. Of course this created intense excitement in the town, and there was a hurried exodus of women and children, but the Russians had no intention of bombarding the place, and soon took their departure. Only a few hours before the Kinshiu, a Japanese transport with upwards of one hundred and fifty troops on board, had sailed for Sung-ju to the north of Won- san, but meeting bad weather in the night the torpedo-boats that accompanied her were obliged to run for shelter, and the Kinshiu turned back for Wonsan. By so doing she soon ran into the arms of the Russian fleet, and, refusing to surrender, was sunk, but forty-five of the troops on board effected their escape to the mainland. CHAPTER XIV THE JAPANESE IN KOREA • W E must now go back and inquire into important civil matters. We have seen that no strong attempt was made by the Japanese to secure reforms in the administration of the Korean government, and for this reason many of the best Koreans were dissatisfied with the way things were going. Therefore it was doubly unfor- tunate that on the 17th of June the Japanese authorities should make the startling suggestion that all uncultivated land in the peninsula, as well as other national resources, should be thrown open to the Japanese. This appears to have been a scheme evolved by one Nagamori, and broached by him so speciously to the powers in Tokyo that they backed him in it; but there can be no question that it was a grave mistake. There is no other point on which the Korean is so sensitive as upon that of his land. He is a son of the soil, and agriculture is the basis of all his institutions. The mere proposal raised an instant storm of protest from one end of Korea to the other. The Koreans saw in this move the entering wedge which would rive the country. It was the beginning of the end. This excessive show of feeling Avas not expected by tlie Japanese, and it is probable that their intentions were by no means so black as the Koreans pictured them. The A’ery general terms in which the proposal Avas Avorded, and the almost entire lack of limiting particulars, gave occasion for all sorts of Avild conjectures and, it must be confessed, left the door open to A'ery Avide construc- tions. The time Avas unpropitious, the method Avas unfortunate, and the subject-matter of the proposal itself Avas questionable. The all-important matter of Avater supply and control, the diffi- THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 209 culties of jurisdiction on account of the extra-territorial rights implied in the proposal, and other allied questions immediately presented themselves to the minds of Koreans, and they recog- nised the fact that the carrying out of this plan would neces- sarily result in a Japanese protectorate, if not absolute absorption into the Empire of Japan. The Japanese do not seem to have followed the logic of the matter to this point, or else had not believed the Koreans capable of doing so. But when the storm of protest broke it carried everything before it. The Japanese were not prepared to carry the thing to extremes, and, after repeated attempts at a compromise, the matter was dropped, though the Japanese neither withdrew their request nor accepted the refusal of the Korean government. It is a matter of great regret that the Japanese did not quietly and steadily press the question of internal reforms, and by so doing hasten the time when the Korean people as a whole would repose such confi- dence in the good intentions of the neighbour country that even such plans as this of the waste lands could be carried through without serious opposition; for it is quite sure that there is a large area of fallow land in Korea which might well be put under the plough. During the weeks when the Japanese were pressing for a favourable answer to the waste-land proposition the Koreans adopted a characteristic method of opposition. A society calling itself the Po-an was formed. The name means “ Society for the Promotion of Peace and Safety.” It had among its member- ship some of the leading Korean officials. It held meetings at the cotton guild in the centre of Seoul, and a good deal of excited discussion took place as to ways and means for defeating the purpose of the Japanese. At the same time memorials by the same poured in upon the Emperor, beseeching him not to give way to the demands. The Japanese" determined that these forms of opposition must be put down; so on the i6th of July the meeting of the society was broken in upon by the Japanese police, and some of the leading members were forcibly carried 210 THE PASSING OF KOREA away to the Japanese police station. Other raids were made upon the society, and more of its members were arrested and its papers confiscated. The Japanese warned the government that these attempts to stir up a riot must be put down with a stern hand, and demanded that those who persisted in sending in me- morials against the Japanese be arrested and punished. If the Korean government would not do it, the Japanese threatened to take the law into their own hands. The Japanese troops in Seoul were augmented until the number was fully six thousand. The agitation was not confined to Seoul, for leading Koreans- sent out circular letters to all the country districts urging the people to come up to Seoul and make a monster demonstration, which should convince the Japanese that they were in dead earnest. Many of these letters were suppressed by the prefects, but in spite of this the news spread far and wide, and the society enrolled thousands of members in every province. The effect of this was seen when, early in August, the Jap- anese military authorities asked for the services of six thousand Korean coolies in the north at handsome wages. The number was apportioned among different provinces, but the results were- meagre. Disaffected persons spread the report that these coolies would be put on the fighting line, and it was with the greatest difficulty that two thousand were secured. There were san- guinary fights in many towns where attempts were made tO' force coolies to go against their will. It was perfectly right for the Japanese to wish to secure such labour, but the tide of public sentiment was flowing strong in the other direction, be- cause of the attempt to secure the waste land and because of the suspension of the right of free speech. The cessation of Japanese efforts to push the waste-land measure did not put an end to agitation throughout the country, and the Po-an Society continued to carry on its propaganda, until on the 22nd of August a new society took the field, named the- Il-chin Society. This was protected by the Japanese police, who> allowed only properly accredited members to enter its doors.. MARTIAL LAW I •j i THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 21 1 This looked as if it were intended as a counter-move to the Po-an Society, and, as the latter was having very little success,, a third society took up the gauntlet under the name of the Kuk-min, or “ National People’s ” Society. The platforms pro- mulgated by all these societies were quite faultless, but the institutions had no power whatever to carry out their laudable- plans, and so received only the smiles of the public. During tbe summer the Japanese suggested that it would be well for Korea to recall her foreign representatives. The idea was to have Korean diplomatic business abroad transacted through Japanese legations. Whether this was a serious attempt or only a feeler put out to get the sense of the Korean govern- ment we are unable to say, but up to the end of the year the- matter was not pushed. The various societies which had been formed as protests against existing conditions stated some things that ought to be accomplished, but suggested no means by which they could be done. The difficulty which besets the country is the lack of general education, and no genuine improvement can be looked for until the people are educated up to it. For this reason a number of foreigners joined themselves into the Educational Association of Korea, their aim being to provide suitable text- books for Korean schools and to help in other ways toward the solution of the great cpiestion. About the same time the Minister of Education presented the government with a recom- mendation that the graduates of the government schools be given the preference in the distribution of public offices. This had no apparent effect upon the government at the time, but this is what must come before students will flock to the gov- ernment schools with any enthusiasm. Later in the year a large number of Koreans also founded an educational society. It made no pretensions to political significance, but went quietly to work, gathering together those who are convinced that the education of the masses is the one thing needed to put Korea, firmly upon her feet. 212 THE PASSING OF KOREA In the middle of October the Japanese military authorities sent Marshal Hasegawa to take charge of military affairs in Korea. He arrived on the 13th, and shortly after went to Wonsan to inspect matters in that vicinity. The news of con- siderable Russian activity in northeast Korea seemed to need careful watching, and the presence of a general competent to do whatever was necessary to keep them in check. The laying of the last rail of the Seoul-Fusan Railway was an event of great importance to Korea. It adds materially to the wealth of the country, both by forming a means of rapid communication and by enhancing the value of all the territory through which it runs. It also gives Japan such a large vested interest here that it becomes, in a sense, her guarantee to pre- vent the country from falling into the hands of other powers. But, like all good things, it has its dangers as well. Mr. Megata, the new Adviser to the Finance Department, arrived in the autumn, and began a study of Korean monetary and financial conditions. This should have been an augury of good, for Korean finance has always been in a more or less chaotic condition, but, as we shall see, it spelled worse disaster than ever. Late in the year Air. Stevens, the newly appointed Adviser of the Foreign Department, took up his duties, which, though less important than those of Mr. Megata, nevertheless gave promise that the foreign relations of the government would be handled exclusively in the interests of Japan. The year 1905 gives us a complete picture of Japanese methods in handling an alien people. It has been said that Japan has much the same work to do in Korea that England has in Egypt. Let us see how far the methods of these two powerful governments coincide. It has been said, again, that up to the present time Japan has not been able to show what she can do in this line, because she has been so busy with tlie war, but we would ask the reader to note that an American gentle- man who has resided many years in Formosa made the remark THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 213 publicly that the methods used by Japan in Korea are precisely those that have been used in Formosa ever since the China- Japan war of 1894. The whole Japanese army is made up of men of the upper middle class. No man of the lower classes can stand in the ranks of that army. It is generally known that the relative social grade of the Japanese soldier is much higher than in any other country. These are men who have imbibed the old Samu- rai spirit and who in just that proportion hold themselves above the lower classes. It is for this reason that such a remark- able change came over the face of affairs in Korea after the Japanese armies had passed and the thousands of adventurers and self-seekers followed in its train. Unlawful action by a Jap- anese soldier was almost unknown, and the Koreans were con- strained to lay aside their old-time suspicion and receive them as harbingers of a new and better era. When, therefore, the heavy influx of low-class Japanese began, and they, on the strength of the prowess of Japanese arms, began to treat the Koreans as the very scum of the earth and to perpetrate all sorts of outrages, it was inevitable that a mighty reaction should take place. It has never been explained why the Jap- anese authorities did not hold back this tide of immigration until the war was over and proper steps could be taken to establish sufficient legal machinery to govern the ruffians properly. It will be asked what speciflc evidence is there that Koreans were ill-treated. This question must be met and answered. The following are a few of the cases that have come within the notice of the writer and of other American residents in Seoul and other parts of Korea, and which can be thoroughly attested. An American gentleman stood upon a railway station plat- form where a score or more of Japanese were waiting for a train. An aged Korean, leaning upon a staff, mounted the plat- form and looked about him with interest. It is likely that he had never before seen a railroad train. A half-naked Japanese employee of the road seized the old man by the beard and threw 214 THE PASSING OF KOREA him heavily upon the station platform. The Korean arose with difficulty and picked up his cane to go. The Japanese then threw him backwards off the platform on to the rails, and then stood back and laughed, as did all the other Japanese. Appar- ently there was not a single Japanese in all that company who saw in this event anything but a good joke. The old Korean was too severely hurt to rise, but some of his Korean friends came and picked him up and took him away. The reader will wonder why the American gentleman did not interfere. Well, the fact is, he knew he would be uselessly sacrificing his own life. If he had raised a finger in the Korean’s defence, the chances of his getting away without being killed would have been less than one in a hundred. At another station there is a little side-path where Koreans are forbidden to walk, but there is no sign whatever so to indicate. A Korean stepped out upon this walk, and was instantly attacked by three or four Japanese and pounded into insensibility. It was a day or more before he regained consciousness, and he was not able to leave his house for weeks. The Japanese look upon the Koreans as lawful game, and the latter, having no proper tribunals where they can obtain redress, do not dare to retaliate. If they complain at Korean courts, the magistrate lifts hands of horror and asks how in the world he is to get anything out of the Japanese, and if he applies to a Japanese court he is usually turned away without a hear- ing. This is hard to believe, but the following facts go far to prove it. A Korean brought in from the country some Korean money to exchange for Japanese money. He deposited his cash with the leading Japanese broker, taking the latter’s note of hand, payable at sight to bearer. Two days later he came to have the note cashed, and the broker said he had already paid it. but had failed in the hurry of the moment to take the note. The Korean tried three times to place the matter before the proper Japanese authorities, but was thwarted each time, and when at last, by THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 215 the aid of a foreigner, he got the case taken up, he was roundly scolded for obtaining foreign help, — but the money was paid. An American gentleman was served the same trick by the same broker, and, though the Japanese authorities granted that it was a perfectly clear case, he recovered the money only after nine months of hard work, and then without interest. A Korean bought a valuable business block from a Japanese, but when he went to claim it the Japanese tenant who had rented it from the former owner refused to leave, on the plea that he had no other place to go. Time and again the owner applied to the Japanese for redress, and it was only after a foreigner interfered and pressed the matter that the Japanese authorities were shamed into doing tardy justice. The trouble has been that, however good may have been the plans of the highest men in Japan, they have not a sufficient body of agents who are broad-minded enough to carry out the plans in the spirit they are given. To illustrate this: in the building and repairing of the railroad it is found cheaper to use Koreans than Japanese. The head office orders the work to be done and says that Koreans must be treated properly. There it ends. The Japanese headmen of the working gangs go into the villages all along the way, and at the point of the revolver or sword compel Koreans by the hundreds to go and work at one-third of a day’s wage. They have the option of making a money payment in lieu of work, but they have to pay, for each day that they get off, twice what they would have received. In this way one township handed over some twenty thousand dol- lars of blackmail, and for part of it they had to pay tzvelve per cent a month to money-lenders! The Koreans have suffered especially in the matter of real estate. On the strength of Korea’s promise to supply all the land necessary for Japanese military operations, the latter have gone in and seized the most valuable property in the vicinity of the largest towns in Korea. When the people ask for pay- ment, they are told to go to their own government for payment. 2i6 THE PASSING OF KOREA But the Japanese know that the government has no money and that the land is simply confiscated. But not only so ; men claim- ing to be connected with the Japanese army go out into the country districts and seize any land they like, repeating simply the formula “ This is for military purposes.” The writer has been repeatedly asked to interfere in such cases of fraud. Koreans have come hundreds of miles to sell their farms to a foreigner for a few cents each, simply that they might be under a foreigner’s name, and so escape wanton seizure. Dur- ing the year 1905 there was no such thing as justice for the Korean either from the private Japanese or from the officials. The military put their hands upon eight square miles of the most valuable land near Seoul simply for the building of bar- racks and parade grounds for twelve thousand men, when ex- perts affirm that one-sixteenth of that space would have been ample. That land could not be bought in open market for six million dollars, but the Japanese knew the government could not pay a proper price, so they gave two hundred thousand dollars, to cover the cost of removal only. And this is all the Koreans could ever hope to get. The most elementary laws of human right and justice have been daily and hourly trampled under foot. Hardly an effort has been made to carry out any reform that would better the condition of the Korean people. Mark the action of the man who controlled the finances of the country, — a Japanese. The country was flooded with coun- terfeit nickels, made largely by Japanese in Osaka, and brought over to Korea by the millions. The Korean currency fell to a ruinous discount, and Japanese merchants were suffering severely because of the rapid fluctuations of exchange. The Adviser determined that the Korean government should borrow several million yen from Japan, and with it make a new currency to substitute for the one in use. When it was learned that Korea was to pay six per cent for this money, Korean financiers came forward and said that they would lend their government the neces- sary money at a far lower rate. They did it to keep Korea out VIEWS OF PICTURESQUE KOREA (a) Pyeng-yang, looking down the Ta-dong River from the wall {b) A pleasure-house on the wall of Su-wiin V? i THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 217 of debt to Japan, but the Adviser refused to allow it. The money- must be borrowed from Japan at the higher rate. A few million dollars’ worth of nickels were made in Japan, where the Japanese enjoyed the profit, which amounted to over fifty per cent, and the nickels were sent to Korea. The Adviser announced that on the 1st of June, or about then, everybody who brought nickels would receive the new ones at par with the Japanese money, but would receive one new one for two of the old. As the old nickels were kt a discount of 240, this would mean that anyone with capital could buy up old nickels at 240, and exchange them at 200. Chinese and Japanese merchants leaped to do so, and the market was sucked dry of money. When the day of exchanging came, it was found that the supply of new nickels was entirely inade- quate. So the exchange was put off for two months ; then for two riior|.Y^^ /■ more. Meanwhile the Korean merchants were going wall because they could not meet their notes, owing to the t ingl’ 2SS of the money market. Some of them were try- ing to ; themselves by borrowing from Japanese usurers 'die m? ^ month. At this most painful juncture the - whoh ‘oposed to lend some three hundred thousand dollars what Ja-'^^^^ funds to his suffering merchants; but when he the Japanese bank, where his funds were - .■;po..xted, the Japanese Adviser ordered pa}TOent stopped, and would not let him draw out his private funa^ even to help the merchants in their desperate straits. There i^ no language too strong in which to denounce this outrage. In the northern city of Pyeng-yang the Jali)anese carried on enormous confiscations of land. They even eniplosed with their, stakes property belonging to American citizens, and when the owners complained to the Japanese Consul thejr were told that it would be all right, but that they had better ,not remove the stakes at present. Nor did the Americans dare to do so; for though they themselves would have been safe, their servants would have been seized by Japanese and cruelly beaten. A Korean in that town was ordered by a private Japanese to sell 2i8 THE PASSING OF KOREA his house for a quarter of its value. He deuiurred at this, but was seized, dragged away to a neighbouring Japanese barracks, and given a severe beating. In his shame and anger at this disgrace he took morphine and killed himself. Almost before his body was cold the Japanese came and demanded that his widow sell the house at the price suggested. She replied that she would die first. How it ended the wndter has never heard. A Korean boatman attempted to go under the bridge at Pyeng- yang while it was under construction. This w’a.s forbidden, but there was no proper sign to indicate the fact. The Japanese railway coolies threw* him out of his boat. He clung to some timbers in the water, but the Japanese beat his h, nds with rail- road bolts until his fingers were broken, and h fell off and drowned. Two days later the murdered man’s lather, having secured the body, brought it to the Japanese Consul ai ' ded justice. He was driven away with the statement th^ > tbe would have nothing to do with the case. The crii vgbtt^'ere well known and could have been captured with ease. In the city of Seoul, almost within a stone’s-thi the Japanese Consulate, a Korean widow came to the hoi the writer and begged him to buy her house for five cents his name on the door-post, because she had reason tc that unless she sold the house for half price to a Japanese next door he avould undermine the wall of her house and let it fall upon her head. The Koreans say deliberately that time and again naked Japanese have run into Korean houses and shocked the Korean women outrageously, simply in order to make the owner willing to sell out at any price. An American resident in one of the ports of Korea related to the writer the case of a Korean landowner who lost his property through the following piece of trickery. A Japanese employed a disreputable Korean to make out a false deed of the land and, armed w*ith this, went to take possession. The real owner exhibited the true and incontestable deeds; but when the matter was referred to the Japanese authorities, the false deeds THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 219 carried the day, and a man who had held the property for years was summarily ejected. A bishop of the Methodist Church in America was travelling with two missionaries through the country near Seoul. They had to cross a railroad embankment that was in construction. They walked a few rods along the embankment, and because of this ay were attacked by a gang of Japanese coolies, and the two lissionaries were severely hurt. It was only by the merest good luck that any of them escaped with their lives. No punish- ment at all commensurate with the crime was inflicted. A Japanese refused to pay his fare on the American electric cars and was put off. He ran into a near-by Korean rice shop, turned the rice out of a bag, placed it on the track and lay down upon it. He defied the Korean motormen to ride over him. No one dared to touch him, for this would have been the signal for a bloody reprisal on the part of the Japanese who lived all about. When the Americans complain of such things, they are told by the Japanese authorities that they can be easily avoided by employing Japanese. As the year advanced, the Japanese kept at work gathering in the material resources of the country. Fishing rights along the whole coast were demanded and given. No one who knows what Japanese fishermen are like will doubt for a moment that the Koreans will be driven from the fishing grounds. Then the coast-trading and riparian rights were seized, looking toward a complete absorption of the large coastwise and river traffic. Korean methods are slower and more cumbersome, and herein lies Japan’s excuse for driving Koreans from the business. The signing of the Treaty of Peace with Russia at Ports- mouth was the signal for a still more active policy in Korea. The American people had been brought to believe that the Korean people were as unworthy of regard as the Japanese were above criticism, and steps were taken to arrange for the ■declaration of a protectorate over the peninsular kingdom. It must be remembered that Japan had solemnly promised. 220 THE PASSING OF KOREA at the beginning of the war, to preserve the independence of Korea, but it now appeared that that promise was made solely as a preparation for the act which was to follow. The seizure of Korea and the extinction of her independence has been called a logical outcome of events. Russia had agreed to recognise Japan’s preponderating influence in Korea, but what had that to do with Japan’s definite and explicit promise to preserve the independence of Korea? It was evidently only the removal of the last obstacle which stood in the way of the breaking of that promise. But Japan saw that it would be necessary^ to proceed with caution. The only way to secure a protectorate without a manifest breach of faith was, first, to secure the acquiescence of the Korean government. If Korea could be induced to ask Japan to assume a protectorate, all would go well. Here was the crux of the situation. Early in the autumn of 1905 the Emperor was approached with this suggestion, but he repudiated it instantly. He recog- nised the predominance of Japanese power in Korea and acqui- esced in the advisorships in the various departments, but when it came to turning over the whole government and nation bodily to Japan, without the least hope of a future rehabilitation of the national independence, he refused in the plainest terms. He saw very well that the Japanese were determined to carry the day, but he knew that if he held firm it could not be done without arousing the indignation of the world. He determined to lodge a protest at Washington, forestalling violent action on the part of Japan. The first clause of the treaty of 1883 between Korea and the United States says that if either of the contracting parties is injured by a third party the other shall interfere with her good offices to effect an amicable settlement. It was impossible to lodge this protest in Washington through the Korean Foreign Office, for that was in control of a person thoroughly “ in the sleeve ” of Japan. The only thing to do was to send a personal and private communication to the President of the United States, calling attention to Japanese THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 221 wrongs in Korea, and asking the President to investigate the matter and render Korea what help he could. That message was despatched from Korea in October at the hand of the writer, but the Japanese surmised what was being done. A Japanese spy on board the steamer at Yokohama dis- covered the exact hour when the message would arrive in Washington, and from that very hour events were hurried to their culmination in the Korean capital. Marquis Ito was sent to Seoul with definite instructions. Korea was to be induced to sign away her national existence voluntarily. Many conferences took place between the Japanese authorities and the Korean Cabinet, but without result. The Koreans stood firm on the treaty of 1904, in which Japan guar- anteed the independence of the country, and nothing could make them budge. Not one of the Cabinet consented. It was quite clear that stronger agencies would have to be used. Finally, after a very strenuous conference at the Japanese legation, the whole meeting adjourned to the audience chamber of the Em- peror, and the curtain went up on the last scene of the tragedy. The Emperor and every one of his ministers stood firm. They would die sooner than acquiesce. Repeated exhortations and inducements were offered, but the Koreans were immovable. When this deadlock occurred, the scenes were shifted a little, and Japanese gendarmes and police suddenly appeared and sur- rounded the audience chamber and blocked every approach to the imperial presence. The Emperor, feeling sure that personal injury was determined upon, retired to a little anteroom. No sane person can deny that he had sufficient reason to fear. The strongest man in the Cabinet was the Prime Minister, Han Kyu-sul, and it was evident that only by segregating him and handling the Cabinet without him could the desired result be ac- complished. When, therefore, the Prime Minister retired to the apartment where the Emperor was, supposably with the inten- tion of conferring with him, he was followed by Japanese armed officials and detained in a side room. The Marquis there plead THE PASSING OF KOREA ^vith him to give in, but he was firm. Leaving him there, prac- tically in durance, the Harquis returned to the rest of the Cab- inet, who were very naturally alarmed at the non-appearance of the Prime ^Minister. The moment must have been one of great suspense. Hedged in by anned Japanese, their official chief spirited away and perhaps hilled, there is little wonder that another turn of the screw resulted in the defection of several of the Cabinet, and at last a paper was signed by a majority of the ministers present, after a clause had been added to the effect that at some future day when Korea is strong enough and wealthy enough to resmne her independence it will be given back to her. The Foreign Minister signed this document, and tlie seal was attached. There is some question as to just how this last was done. Some say that the seal was purloined from the office by Japanese and the document was stamped by them. However this may be. we have here the picture of how the agreement was put through, and the reader and the world may judge for themselves how far it was voluntary on the part of the Korean goveniment. When this had been done, the Japanese authorities announced in Washington that Korea had voluntarily entered into an agree- ment granting Japan a protectorate over the country, and the -American government, apparently without consulting with Korea as to the truth of the statement, recognised the validity of Japan's claim, and ahnost immediately removed the legation from Seoul, and at the same time infonned the Korean legation in M'ashington that diplomatic business with Korea would there- after be carried on through Tokyo. The petition of the Emperor arrived in M'ashington before action had been taken by the gov- ernment, but, though its arrival had been announced to the President, it was not received until after action had been taken, when it was found to be too late. It is not our province to discuss here the question whether this action was in accord with tlie friendly relations that existed for so many years between Korea and .America, but there can be no doubt whatever that MIN YONG WHAN, PRINCE AND GENERAL Who committed suicide in November, 1905, as a protest against the destruction of Korean independence by Japan ! THE JAPANESE IN KOREA 2^3 the Koreans looked upon it as a distinct act of treachery. Even while the whole Korean people were convulsed by the high- handed act of Japan, and some of the very highest Korean officials were seeking oblivion of their country’s wrongs in sui- cide, the American Minister in Seoul was feasting the Japanese who had compassed the destruction of Korean nationality. Can it be wondei'ed at that the feeling of confidence which Korea reposed in the friendship of America should have experienced a sudden and sharp reaction. Americans-©f-every class had been telling Korea for a quarter of a century that the American flag stood for fairness and, honesty, .that we had no purely selfish interests to subserve, but stood for right, whether that right was accompanied by might or noH but wEen the pinch came we were the first to desert her, and that in the most contemptuous way, without even saying good-bye. The appeal of the Emperor to the President of the United States cited the fact that Korea has heretofore received many tokens of good-will from the American government and people, that the American representatives have been sympathetic and helpful, and that American teachers of all kinds have done valu- able work. He granted that the government had not been what it should have been, and that many mistakes had been com- mitted, but he urged that whatever the Korean people might think of their government, they were passionately attached to the real Korea, to their nationality ; that they had few things to be proud of, and that if their nationality and independence, which had been guaranteed by Japan, were swept away, there would be left no incentive for the people to advance. He ac- knowledged the need of Japanese supervision, and declared that the advice of Japan had been and would be followed along all lines that looked toward the betterment of conditions in the peninsula. He intimated that the acts committed by the Japa- nese during the past year did not warrant the giving to Japan of complete control in Korea, for it would make Japanese resi- dents there all the more contemptuous of the private rights of 224 THE PASSING OF KOREA Koreans. He urged that Japan would be doing herself an in- jury, in breaking her promise to preserve the independence of Korea, for it would make other powers rightly suspicious of Japan’s good faith elsewhere in the Far East. In conclusion, he asked the President to bring to bear upon this question the same breadth of view and the same sympathy which had charac- terised his distinguished career in other fields; and if, after a careful investigation, the facts above enumerated and others that would come to light should seem to warrant him in so doing, he should use his friendly offices to prevent the disaster to Korea which seemed imminent. It will be noted that the Emperor asked that the President’s action be based upon a careful exami- nation of all the facts, and not upon mere hearsay. Whether Korea’s side of the question was ever presented in detail to the American Executive may never be known, but the method of procedure adopted by the United States government does not warrant such a conclusion. When future historians, looking back across the years, shall view with dispassionate eyes the contemptuous attitude and the precipitate action of the American government in this case which involves the very life of the Korean nation, they will scarcely be able to so word the facts as to bring added glory to the annals of the American people. Min Yong-whan, the most cultured and public-spirited Ori- ental in the range of my acquaintance, after desperate efforts to secvwe a reversal of the forced action depriving Korea of her independence, committed suicide. His monument, and that of other patriots who followed his example, will ever stand before the Korean people as irrefragable proof that, whatever interested calumniators may say, it is as true in Korea as elsewhere that dnlcit pro pafria inori. CHAPTER XV REVENUE T he revenue of the Korean government is derived from a dozen or more different sources, among the most important of which are (i) land tax, (2) house tax, (3) salt tax, (4) customs duties, (5) ginseng monop- oly, (6) gold mines, (7) fish tax, (8) fur tax, (9) tobacco tax, (10) gate tax, (ii) forests, (12) guilds, (13) licenses, (14) minting, (15) poll tax, (16) boat tax, (17) cow-hide tax, (18) paper tax, (19) pawn tax. These include forms of taxation which are now obsolete as well as those actually in force. The prefect of each of the three hundred and forty-one dis- tricts in Korea is supposed to have in his office a map and a detailed description of every piece of arable land in the district, excepting kitchen-gardens. This forms the basis of the land tax, which yields two-thirds of the national revenue. Although there are no fences, the limits of the fields are clearly marked by earthen banks or by the natural conformation of the land, and no farmer would dare to throw two fields together or divide a field into two without the cognisance and consent of the local prefect; and even then the latter would have to obtain per- mission from the central government. This arable land is con- sidered under two heads, — rice-fields and ordinary fields. The owner of each plot of land owns a deed for the same, stamped with the- magistrate’s seal or signed with his name. In many instances where property has been in the same family for several centuries, these deeds may have been lost or destroyed; but if the land is sold, new deeds must be issued. The prefect’s records, as well as the deed of each field, indicate the relative grade of the latter. There are six grades of rice-fields and three of ordinary 226 THE PASSING OF KOREA fields. These grades are determined by several factors, — the natural fertility of the soil, the ability to irrigate, the roughness or smoothness of the topography, and the lay of the land; for if it slopes toward the north it is considered much less valuable than if it slopes toward the south. New fields are constantly being made, which for a few years are not shown on the prefect’s records and do not pay taxes to the government. For this reason the authorities periodically order a remeasurement of arable land, or rather a readjustment of the prefectural records, so as to include the new fields. There is no definite interval of time between these readjustments. Sometimes half a century passes without one, and then again they may follow each other by an interval of only a few years. Korean history shows that with the beginning of each new reign, or the inauguration of a new government policy, or under stress of some national calamity which has emptied the treasury, a readjustment of land values is likely to be ordered. A royal commission goes about and examines the new fields and estimates their value, noting carefully all the conditions above enumerated. They do not actually measure the land, but they find out how long it will take to plough it with a single bullock, and how much seed grain it requires to plant. By these means they esti- mate how many kynil there are in the field. Now a kyiiJ is one hundred man-loads of unthreshed rice, and each man-load is com- posed of ten sheaves. Ten per cent is the legal rate, and so a field of thirty kyul would yield the government three kyid. This again must be reduced to threshed rice in the bag, as that is the form in which, until very recently, the tax has been paid. It was a very clumsy arrangement. The status of a field being once definitely settled, it is put down on the books as being liable to a definite amount of taxa- tion each year, and this tax is due whether the year is a good or a bad one, whether the field is tilled or left fallow. It is only by a special dispensation of the central government that the tax on a single field can be remitted, whatever be the disabilities THE KOREAN FARMER Showing methods of ploughing the soil and threshing of grain , I V '• f ' V t' ’■ s::‘A '‘JiX REVENUE 227 under which the owner or tenant may be labouring. In other words, the government takes no chances. And yet it may be that when we take into account the great infrequency of serious famines in Korea, this system is the best for the farmer; for were the regular tax the only charge on the field there would be every incentive to cultivate the soil with care, to fertilise it heavily, and to make it produce the very most of which it is capable. As a fact, however, the farmer is frequently subjected to further imposts which, though illegal, are unavoidable under a system which gives officials no opportunity to gain a compe- tence except by indirection. Rice being the staple article of food, it naturally forms the measure of value. Until very recently the farmer had to pay all his taxes in rice, and therefore was obliged to barter bis barley, millet or beans in order to obtain the wherewithal to settle his debts to the government. To-day all taxes are collected in money. This simplifies taxation in one sense, but in another sense it complicates matters, as we shall see. The tax is ten Korean dollars a kytil. Such is the law in regard to the land tax, but there are great discrepancies in its operation and administration. The prefect and all his underlings receive a nominal salary, which is annu- ally deducted from the tax money or rice which is to be sent up to Seoul, but it is notorious that this salary is insufficient and that it is supplemented by various means. As these are an actual charge upon the productive portion of the population, they require mention. The amount of special taxation depends upon the personal character of the prefect and his deputies, the ajiins, and we can indicate only the general lines upon which it is levied. W have already seen that the tax is levied on the estimated average yield of the land. Now, if this average yield is exceeded in a year of plenty or through unusual thrift on the part of the farmer, a portion of the overplus or increment is commonly appropriated by the a juris, who share it Avith their chief; but it all depends upon the status of the oAvner of the field. If he be 228 THE PASSING OF KOREA a country gentleman who has influence at Seoul, the ajiins may not dare to take even the legal rate of tax. If he has slightly less influence, he may pay the legal tax on good years but less in years of scarcity. If he has no influence, he may pay the legal tax but nothing extra, in case of overplus. It is the common farmer who has practically no rights in the case and must always pay in full, and whatever proportion of the overplus the ajuns may require ; or if there be no overplus, he may still have to give up part of the nine-tenths remaining after his legal tax is paid. No fields within the walls of Seoul are subject to taxation. The annual amount received from the land tax by the govermnent is in the neighbourhood of eight million Korean dollars; but exchange varies so much that this may mean anywhere from two million to three million in American currency. The lack of an adequate currency in the country districts makes it difficult for the farmers to pay their taxes in money, and so they often turn over their rice to the ajiins, who act as agents for its sale. These ajims are not there for their health merely, and this form of trade is one of their handsomest perquisites. With the exception of Seoul and its western and southern suburbs, every house in Korea is subject to a tax of fifteen hun- dred Seoul cash, or sixty cents, irrespective of the size or quality of the structure. The annual amount collected from this source is about half a million dollars. At sixty cents a house, this would mean something less than a million houses; and reckoning five people to the house, we should have only five millions as the population. Of course this is an absurdly low estimate, and the conclusion is inevitable, either that all the houses are not taxed or that there is a serious leakage in transit, ^^dren a new house is built, the magistrate gives a deed for it, and from that time it is supposed to be on the tax list. When a house burns or is swept away by a flood, the tax is always remitted. All salt is made by evaporating sea-water ; and the “ works ” are so easily accessible and salt is such an indispensable com- modity that this government, like most oriental ones, finds it REVENUE 229 a reliable and lucrative source of revenue. The tax is levied on the actual amount produced, and amounts to about four per cent ad valorem. This seems small compared with the ten per cent levied on cereals, but it must be remembered that in the case of the latter nature does by far the larger part of the work. The evaporation of salt is exceedingly laborious. The apparatus is costly, considering the annual output, the cost of fuel is heavy, and the goods are marketed only in spring and autumn. For these reasons a heavier tax than four per cent would kill the business. This tax brings about ninety thousand dollars into the treasury. Ginseng is one of the most distinctive products of Korea. The Chinese, who are its principal purchasers, consider the Korean red ginseng the best on the market. The culture and preparation of this root is a government monopoly, and it is carried on in two ways. The government owns certain ginseng farms, and carries them on through skilled agents, but more often it gives licenses to responsible parties who turn over the entire crop to the government. After the latter has marketed the goods in China it deducts its own twenty or twenty-five per cent and turns the rest over to the tenant of the farm. The annual income from this source varies from one hundred and fifty thousand to three hundred thousand Korean dollars. All minerals are supposed to belong to the government, and no man has a right to open a mine even on his own ground without special permission from the Department of Agriculture, Commerce and Public Works at Seoul. If a man wants to mine gold (and by far the greater part is of the placer variety), he applies at the bureau at Seoul, and if he has influence enough he will succeed in buying a license to open a placer mine in a certain specified locality. For this he pays a round sum, though it may not come within the purview of the law. After opening the mine he will be called upon to pay over to the agents of the govern- ment probably sixty per cent of his gross earnings. The rate differs with different circumstances, but at the lowest it is enor- 230 THE PASSING OF KOREA mously high. The idea seems to be that as he is working gov- ernment property he must divide the proceeds, just as a farmer often does when he Avorks another man’s land. The annual revenue from this source is subject to great fluctuations. Some- times it rises to nearly half a million, and then it may drop to a hundred thousand. Copper mining is a considerable industry in Korea ; but as the profits are relatively smaller than those of gold mining, the government takes only thirty per cent of the proceeds, or, more exactly, five ounces out of every sixteen. It is difficult to get at the figures to show what revenue is derived from this source. There are a number of iron mines, but they are carried on in only a small way comparatively. The government receives a tax of about nine per cent of the gross output. There are said to be over fifty iron mines in the peninsula, mostly in Kang-wun Province, east of Seoul. Korean fisheries annually render a neat sum to the national exchequer. The tax is levied not on the amount of fish caught but upon the boats themselves. These are of about ten grades, according to the number of the crew and the size of the nets. Such is the law, but it must be confessed that when the money is actually collected cognisance is taken of the amount of fish caught, and the amount of money paid bears no special relation to the sum received by the central government. The Korean government possesses no na^y, but from time immemorial it has owned a large number of boats along the coast, which are sup- posed to be ready for use in time of war. These are regularly let out to fishermen, and the revenue from them is naturally much larger than from the native-owned craft. Of late years these boats have been sold in considerable numbers to the fisher- men, but so far as we can learn the proceeds have not sufficed to put the Korean navy on a firm footing! Furs have always been an important product of Korea, and have frequently figured in the tribute to China, and in indem- nities paid to Chinese, Manchu or Mongol. They have been REVENUE 231 considered as a sort of government monopoly, and gangs of trappers have been regularly sent out by the authorities, the entire catch being taken by the government and paid for. If other people take furs, especially sea-otter, sable, tiger or leopard, the rule is to carry them to the nearest prefect, who is sure ta buy them in for the government. Within the last few months a Korean in Whang-hai Province got into serious trouble because he carried a tiger skin directly to Chemulpo, and sold it to a for- eigner rather than offer it first to the prefect. The foreigner doubtless paid him six times as much as the prefect would have given. The method adopted makes it quite impossible to estimate the amount annually received, as it never appears in the columns of dollars and cents. All merchant craft are subject to a tax which is levied upon their carrying capacity. About three cash per bag is collected at the port of entry. This is only a small fraction of one per cent. Before the days when government taxes were payable in money, these boats often paid by bringing government rice up to the capital, just as in rural districts in America farmers “ work out ” their taxes on the road. The forests of Korea are considered crown lands, and no one can cut timber without special permission. The tax is paid in kind and amounts to three per cent of the product. Cow- hides, in which the trade is considerable, form a special source of revenue; the hides are graded into three classes and pay a tax of twenty, sixteen and twelve cents apiece, respectively. The various guilds of Seoul, of which we shall speak at length in another place, pay no regular taxes, but they are frequently called upon to help in various forms of government works. Sometimes they are required to repair a road over which a royal procession is to pass ; and in case of a royal funeral or marriage, each guild is supposed to supply a gorgeous banner to be carried in the procession, and the members of the guilds are called upon to act as bearers of the catafalque of the dead. Up to the time of the China-Japan war every man was 232 THE PASSING OF KOREA obliged to carry on his person a small piece of wood on which were written his name, the year of his birth and his rank. Any- one who failed to carry this tag was considered an outlaw. It was called the “ name-tag.” Every two or three years, or every year in which a great national examination was held, all these tags were changed or renewed. Each bore the stamp of the mayor of Seoul or of the country prefect, and the application of this stamp cost the sum of five country cash. This was a sort of poll tax, but was discontinued when the use of the name-tag was abolished. There never has been a tax upon spirituous liquors, nor any license required for their sale. In country districts there is a slight tax on the malt used in making beer. This is made of barley and comes in the form of round cakes. The tax on each cake is one cash. Besides these regular taxes, the government sells licenses for a large number of industries. These are not all worthy of men- tion, but among them we find the pawn-shop license, which amounts to two dollars a month in the case of large shops. The cutting of firewood in government preserves is carried on under license. It must not be imagined that these are the only sources of income. There is another long list of “ donations ” to the palace. These are not actual taxes, and yet they are so fixed in Korean custom that they amount to the same thing, and their discon- tinuance would be the signal for an instant and searching investi- gation. These donations take the form of fruits and vegetables. Certain districts are noted for the production of particular kinds and superior qualities of fruits and vegetables. For instance, the Pongsan pears, Namyang persimmons, Sunchun walnuts, Poeun jujubes, Kwangju tobacco and Kuchang turnips are the best in the country. The growers annually send up the best selection of their products for use by the imperial household. The amount is not regulated by law, but the prefect is sure to see to it that the quantity and quality of these gifts do not fall far REVENUE 233 below the limit established by custom. A failure to attend to this matter would soon get him into trouble. Several kinds of sea products are also sent up, such as edible sea-weed, beche-de-mer, dried clams, pearls, cuttle-fish, cod and other denizens of the deep ; among industrial products, linen and cotton cloth, fans, screens, mats, tables, cabinets, pipes, paper, human hair, silk, furs, horses, hats, head-bands, pens, ink, candles, grass-cloth, tiger skins, deer horns, mountain ginseng, game, honey, ginger, crockery and porcelain, medicines, embroi- deries, cranes, musical instruments and coral. These are a few of the varieties. The most reliable source of income is the Maritime Customs, and it forms the only asset that the government can use as col- lateral for the purpose of making loans. Up to the early eighties there was no such institution, but in 1882 the government requested that the Chinese Customs send a man to open up a service in Korea. P. G. von Mollendorff, Esq., was sent, and with him a considerable staff of foreigners. The service was established on lines similar to those in China, but after a few years Mr. Von Mollendorff resigned, and the service came more directly under the Chinese control. From the very first it was a decided success, one of the very few that Korea has achieved along financial lines ; and under the admirable management of J. McLeavy Brown, C. M. G., it has formed an anchor to wind- ward that has helped the government ride out many a storm, not merely financial but political as well. The subject of imports and exports will be mentioned elsewhere, but under the head of revenue it will suffice to say that, according to the latest reports, the gross value of a year’s trade is approximately fifty million yen or twenty-five million dollars, on practically all of which a small import or export duty is imposed. CHAPTER XVI THE CURRENCY W E may safely say that before the days of Kija, 1122 B. c., the Koreans had no money. All trade was done by barter. Kija probably brought with him from China a quantity of the coins in circu- lation there. Just what these were we do not know, but they may have been the peculiar “ knife coins ” that are found to-day in every good numismatic collection. There is good evidence from Korean literature that Kija put out a form of government bank note in the shape of a square piece of linen with his own seal upon it. These were nominally redeemable, but practically they could not have been so, if they were used to any great ex- tent, for Kija could not have brought enough of the coins from China to redeem any considerable amount of “ paper ” money. In the days of Silla, 57 b. C.-918 a. d., there was a consid- erable mixture of Chinese, the descendants of people who had fled from China at the time the Great W^all was built. These people doubtless taught the southern Koreans the value of a coinage. The earliest Silla coins are said to have been octagonal in shape with a hole in the centre. Another was the “ Star Money,” which bore the impress of two stars on one side and the legend “ Heaven-sanctioned Eastern Treasure ” on the other. The “ Boy-child ” coin was in the shape of the Siamese twins, and it bore the inscription “ From Childhood to iManhood,” referring to the fact that it is necessary at all stages of life. There was also the “ Dragon Coin,” the “ Tortoise Coin ” and the “ Seven Star Money.” The latter has a representation of the constellation of the Great Bear, and the flattering inscrip- tion “As faithful as the Stars.” In Koryu days again, 918- THE CURRENCY 235 1392, there was an issue of “ linen money,” which went under the name “ Dirty Linen ” ; not a nice name for such a nice thing as money. It was in the latter days of that dynasty that a regular issue of “ cash ” was made, similar to the cash used to-day. A silver coin in the shape of a bottle was also put out, but it was soon debased by admixture of copper, zinc and other baser metals, and so fell into disrepute. During the long years of Mongol supremacy the currency of that empire circulated freely in Korea, but all this came to an end about the middle of the fourteenth century. After the founding of the present dynasty in 1392 the old silver, copper and linen money was continued in circulation, but after a time the government issued the famous yiipjiin, or “ Leaf Aloney,” which has held its own in the country districts until the present day with an obstinacy that is worthy of a better ■cause. During the past fifty years all sorts of tricks have been played with Korean coinage, and the government has realised heavy sums by minting, but of course no government can make money by coining it. The intrinsic value and the cost of making should equal the face value ; but they cared nothing for this, and time and again new issues were forced on the people, only to fall to twenty per cent of their face value. The provinces would have none of this, but it circulated in and near Seoul. A rather pretty silver coin was issued in the eighties. It had a blue enamel centre. It was all bought up and hoarded within two years. The same happened to another silver coinage of a later date. At last the government unfortunately took up the nickel five-cent piece. The trouble with this coin was that it was of low enough denomination to be useful as circulating medium, but at the same time of enough value to be worth w-hile counterfeiting. The cash had been so infinitesimal in value, and the plant necessarily so large for making it, that no one could afford to counterfeit it. But as soon as the nickel took the field an army of counterfeiters sprang up. The Jap- anese supplied the necessary machinery and smuggled it into 236 THE PASSING OF KOREA the country, and at the same time hundreds of thousands of dol- lars worth of the stuff was turned out in Japan and brought over to Korea. This was a great injury to Koreans and also to legitimate Japanese trade, for the nickels fell and fell, until at one time they were at a discount of one hundred and fifty per cent. Both the Korean and Japanese governments made strenu- ous efforts to put a stop to this demoralisation, but so long as the Korean government continued to put out coins with a face value of five cents, and an intrinsic value of only one and a half cents, they found it impossible to compete with the counterfeiters, and the two went along side by side until a dozen or so of the latter were executed, and then it became too serious a matter, and the counterfeiters suspended operations. Only the oldest foreign residents of Seoul will remember the great mat sheds which were erected from time to time and in which the old-time cash was minted. The smelting furnaces were mere holes in the ground, and the naked operatives stood astride of the glowing orifices and reached down with long tongues and seized the edges of the crucibles that held the molten metal. At night, when there was no other light but that which escaped from the furnace mouths and lit the rough in- terior of the shed with a livid, greenish glow, it was a picture straight from Dante's Inferno. The metal was poured into moulds which contained some fifty impressions of the pattern, and when the casting came out it looked like rough lace, the coins all being connected by narrow bars of metal. These were broken up, and the coins were strung on square metal rods that just fitted the hole in the coin. The ends of this rod were then put in a rude vice, and men with enomious coarse files ground down the edges of a thousand or more of the coins at a time. It was exceedingly rough work, and it was done just as cheaply as it could be done and still pass the very superficial examina- tion that it would be subjected to. After having their edges filed, the coins were dumped into a shallow trough set in the ground, and sand and water were added. Two men sat down THE CURRENCY 237 on the ground at opposite ends of this trough and pushed the coins back and forth with their bare feet. This was the final polish. The only thing left to do was to string the wretched things on rough straw rope or string, making a knot between every hundred pieces. When finished, the strings looked not unlike festoons of link sausages, though perhaps a trifle less digestible. In four-fifths of the country this is still the only currency that is accepted. One wonders how any large trans- actions can be carried on with such extremely awkward money. A horse-load of it would not come to more than fifteen dollars in gold. I have estimated roughly that the mere transfer of money costs on an average one-tenth of one per cent of every monetary transaction. There is no such thing as a genuine bank in Korea, and yet the people have certain expedients by which they avoid in part the transportation of actual cash from one part of the land to another. There are certain large firms or guilds in Seoul whose notes of hand are accepted quite generally, and a certain crude method of exchange has been common. A merchant in the country may take the money which the prefect desires to trans- mit to the government treasury and buy merchandise with it, bring it up to Seoul and out of the proceeds pay over to the treasury the amount originally received. At certain seasons of the year it is necessary to send large sums of money to the country to pay for the barley, rice and a thousand other things that are required by the people of the metropolis. The mer- chants who have this in hand will therefore pay over to the treasury a certain amount of cash and receive an order on some country prefect who is waiting for a chance to send up the annual taxes to the capital. The order is honoured by him, and so both parties gain by the transaction. The taxes that the people have paid to their prefect come back to them in large measure by the sale of their produce. This custom is of comparatively recent origin, for in former times and for centuries the taxes were all payable in rice or other grain. 238 THE PASSING OF KOREA From time immemorial barter has been the principal method of trade, and to a very large extent the same may be said to-day. In many parts of Korea money is a sort of luxury that, while pleasant to have, is by no means essential to comfort. In the capital, the open ports and some of the more important inland towns everything is secured by purchase, but this includes only a small fraction of the whole population. In the country dis- tricts, for the most part, commodities are secured at periodical “ markets,” called chang by the Koreans. As you travel through the country and come to populous villages, you wonder where people get their various wares. Do they make them all them- selves? There are very few country shops, and even these are of the most trivial kind. It is when you happen to strike a town on market day that the riddle is solved. For five days the place seems almost deserted, but on the sixth it is simply swarming with humanity. Every farmer and artisan for miles around has foregathered at this point to exchange his wares for those of someone else. All day long it is one scramble to see who can get his business done first, so that an early start can be made for home, or so that there may be leisure to do a little gambling or gossiping. The wine shops are running at full blast, for almost e\'ery important bargain is consummated over steaming bowls of rice wine. Every tongue is loosed, and to the uninitiated stranger who approaches one of these commer- 'Cial orgies for the first time, and when it is at its height, it seems sure that a riot is going on or that a free fight is in hilarious progress. It is like five hundred exciting auction sales going on all at once, or like a busy day on 'change. Of course much money changes hands on these occasions, but compara- tively little of it leaves the town. E^■ery man has exchanged his wares for those of another, and everyone wends his way home, happy in the belief that he has made a good bargain. He may have cause to change his mind when the good lady of his Iiouse finds what he has bought. Koreans learn but very slowly to change the style of their THE CURRENCY ^39 •medium of exchange. In the capital anything “ goes,” but with the people at large the utmost conservatism is the rule. Even to this day the hundreds of Koreans employed at the American gold-mines in Unsan district refuse to touch Japanese paper money, and the company is obliged to send to various ports of the Ear East to secure silver Japanese dollars, which have been withdrawn from circulation in Japan itself and are at a con- siderable discount everywhere. The Korean likes these because the value is intrinsic and does not depend upon any promise, no matter how solvent the government may be that backs the bills. He has had too much to do with governments to accept any such flimsy money as that! An amusing story is told of the unso- phisticated Korean of the early eighties. In 1882, when the Japanese legation was burned and all its inmates were killed or else found safety in Chemulpo, one of the fugitives dropped in the street a hand-bag filled with Japanese bills. A Korean picked it up and examined the stuff, but could not imagine why the Japanese should want to carry away those scraps of tough paper. He took them home and papered his wall with them. Some time after this a friend, who had had some dealings with the Japanese at Fusan and knew what was what, happened to call, and he nearly fell in a fit when he saw what was on the wall, but he recovered, and managed to hold his tongue until he had effected the purchase of that house for three hundred dol- lars. He then tore from the walls upwards of six thousand yen. An even more amusing case was that of the merchant who was on his way up from Fusan with a large amount of paper yen sewed into the lining of his coat. Out jumped a highwayman on him in a lonely spot and demanded his money. He blandly replied that he had none. The robber was disgusted and ex- claimed, “Well, then, give me that coat and you take this one.” The poor fellow could do no less than comply. A little while after this the same robber held up a gentleman on the same road, and, finding him likewise impecunious, made another ■exchange of coats, as the gentleman was dressed in silk. The 240 THE PASSING OF KOREA latter, on his arrival at home, tore off the coat and ordered the women of the house to tear it up for mop-rags, as he would never wear a coat that had been on a robber’s back. In about half an hour, as he was seated with his long pipe in his mouth and his favourite book before him on the floor, he heard a most unaccountable disturbance in the women’s quarters, and in they rushed upon him screaming that the coat was bewitched with a million imps. The little fat god of wealth that is seated on each of the Japanese bank notes had been too much for their nerves. Fortunately the gentleman had seen Japanese money, and, as he gently disengaged the crisp notes, he murmured to him- self the sanctimonious aphorism, “ Virtue is its own reward.” CHAPTER XVII ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING O NE eminent characteristic of the whole of the Far East is the unsubstantial character of their buildings. Outside of a few pagodas and other monumental buildings we find no remains of ancient edifices, such as excite the admiration and interest of the traveller in western Asia or in Europe. It may be said with reasonable assurance that there are practically no buildings in the Far East, intended for the occupancy of people, that have existed for three cen- turies without undergoing such radical repairs as to constitute a virtual rebuilding. This is especially true of Korea. The reason is that there is a great disproportion between the weight of the roof and the strength of its supports. The principle of the arch has been known for many centuries, and it has been utilised in the city gates and in a certain number of bridges ; but it has not been used in ordinary buildings, however permanent may have been their intended use. The weight of the roof is invariably supported upon wooden pillars, and this, too, in the most primitive manner. Huge beams are laid across from the top of one pillar to the top of another, and from the centres of these beams the roof-tree is supported. There is an utter lack of anything like a strengthening truss to prevent the building from getting out of plumb; and as only that portion of the ground immediately under each of the pillars is specially pre- pared, to prevent sinking, we see that the enormous weight of the tiled roof rests upon a ludicrously insufficient foundation. It is much like a Chinese lady of, say, one hundred and fifty pounds going about on feet two inches long and one inch wide. This insecurity is increased by the fact that in sinking these slight 242 THE PASSING OF KOREA foundations the Koreans seldom reach hard-pan, but having gone through the soft upper sediment they pound the earth down v ith a heavy stone or iron mallet, and without more ado set the heavy foundation stone which is to support the pillar. The impossi- bility of securing entire uniformity in the solidity of these sepa- rate foundations is revealed in about twenty years, when the roof of the building begins to assume a wavy appearance, and everything loses its horizontal or perpendicular position in favour of a certain bibulous obliquity. The first serious repairs, there- fore, which a Korean house has to undergo consist in tearing out the flimsy material which fills the wall spaces between the pil- lars, relieving each pillar in turn of the vertical pressure of the roof by means of improvised struts, and then shifting the position of the foundation stone so as to allow the pillar to be made perpendicular once more. The Orientals seem never to have acquired the notion of a tie-beam so arranged as to relieve the lateral thrust caused by a roof resting upon rafters. By far the greater part of the weight of the roof rests directly upon the centre of the tie-beam. The result is that this beam has to be of enormous thickness. The only thing that prevents the build- ing from leaning is the mortise of the tie-beam into the top of the supporting pillar. There are no trusses to pre\‘ent leaning, and so it takes but a few years for the building to get out of plumb. It is doubtless this which makes Koreans prefer to have their houses all together in a bunch. They resemble a company of jolly roisterers trying to get home in the “ wee sma’ hours with arms interlocked for mutual support. If you buy a Korean house in a crowded quarter and want to tear it down, you are likely to arouse shrill protests from your neighbours on either side. You will not go far along any street in Seoul or any other Korean town without seeing houses propped up with stout sticks for fear they will fall over into the ditch. On the whole, one has to conclude that the roof is considered the main thing, and the foundation only a side issue. All Korean houses, whether those of the common people or the palaces of kings, are built upon ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING 243 ' one and the same plan. The only difference is in degree. The basis of the structure is what is called the kan. This means a space about eight feet square. If you wish to buy a house, the first question will be as to how many kan you require. The price is stated in terms of the kan, and you will buy the building- just as you would buy silk by the yard or beef by the pound. Of course the condition of the building will be taken into con- sideration in estimating the value, but the price of tiled house or thatched house at any time is readily found in the market quotations as so much per kan. Some years ago there w^as far greater uniformity in price than now', for in the eighties Koreans- did not realise that a house on the main street was of any more value than one on a side lane ; nor did the amount of land about the house figure at all in the price. I have more than once bought a small thatched house in the middle of a large field in Seoul, paying only the market price per kan of house. Those days- have gone now, and the situation and the area of the land are carefully taken into account. All Korean houses being built on a single pattern, a description of one will suffice for all. After the site has been plotted out w ith cord and the position of each post decided upon, holes are dug at each of these points to a depth of four or five feet, until something like solid earth has- been reached. Then a number of workmen stand around one of these holes, holding in their hands ropes attached to a large stone or, preferably, a heavy lump of iron. As the foreman sings a droning labour song, the men pull simultaneously at the ropes, and the stone or iron is heaved high in the air and falls into the hole, thus tamping down the earth at the point wdrere the foun- dation stone is to lie. Crushed stone or broken pieces of tile are- thrown in and this is all mashed into the earth to make the foundation still stronger. Each hole is treated likew'ise, and then the cJincJinfoI, or post stones, are placed in position. They may protrude a foot or more from the surface of the ground. Usually they are too small to reach the bottom of the hole, and in that case loose stones are piled in until the proper level is reached. 244 THE PASSING OF KOREA These post stones are always placed about eight feet apart. The posts, eight feet in height, are erected upon the stones, the bottom of each being cut with a small adze, so as to fit the irregularities of the stone as well as possible. The top of each post has a deep mortise or notch into which the heavy cross-beams are fitted and driven down with mallets. It is e^■ident that three beams have to be fitted to the top of each post excepting in the case of the corner posts. This requires the cutting down of the ends of the supported beams to such an extent that not more than a quarter of their cross section is presented at the point of support. After all the posts and cross beams have been put in place, heavy uprights are erected from the centres of these beams, and on these rest the roof-tree. The rafters, simply round sticks of varying size, are naile'd to this roof-tree and extend about two feet beyond the wall of the house on either side. They are always arranged so that there shall be a slight dip to the roof when it is completed. This is the curve characteristic of all roofs of the Far East. After this the whole roof is covered thickly with fagots, laid roughly on and tied down with straw rope, and this is covered two or three inches deep with ordinary earth, on which the hea^'y tiles are laid. The latter are set without mortar or plaster of any kind, and their weight alone is guar- antee of their stability. The broad, slightly curved “ female ” tile are laid first with the concave side upward, and then the inter- stitial lines are covered with the narrower and more sharply curved “ male ” tiles with the convex side upward. Each of these is set in ordinary mud, but without plaster. It must be confessed that it makes a very thorough roof. It is impervious to heat, and no ordinary storm will beat through the crevices of it. There are two drawbacks. The weight is out of all proportion to the rest of the house, and the constant strain is sure to make the structure “ lie down ” sooner or later. Then, again, the mud in which the “ male ” tiles are set is full of seeds of all kinds, and during the rainy season in summer the roof is sure to become a veritable garden of weeds. They say that the tiles have to be A CORNER GROCERY Dried cuttlefish (white) hanging on the wall, with dried oysters and clams ; on tlie ground dried jujubes, persimmons, chestnuts, ginger, and other delicacies ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING 245 reset each year for two or three years before the seeds get killed out, but no new mud must be added, or it will all have to be done over again. Meanwhile the window and door frames have been put up, and the mural spaces have been filled in with a strong wattle, upon which clay mud is plastered. After this mud has dried and is seamed in every direction with cracks, a kind of plaster is applied which is made of a mixture of fine loamy earth, sand and horse-manure, the last ingredient taking the place of hair. The inside and outside are made the same, for the overhanging eaves are supposed to keep the weather from the outer walls. When this is covered with the strong, fibrous Korean paper, it makes a very thorough and durable wall. The floor is an important matter, as it is both floor and stove. From the level of the ground up to the level of the floor they build with mud and stone, making, as it were, three or four ditches, which converge into one at each end of the room. The whole floor is then covered with large slabs of stone about two inches thick. The joints are carefully sealed with cement so that no smoke can come through into the room. Over the stones a thin layer of cement is spread, and then the whole is covered with a heavy oiled paper which under the tread of stockinged feet soon wears as smooth as silk. The opening to the fireplace is outside the room, and above it is generally set the great kettle for boiling the family rice. This is the kitchen, and it is simply the dirt floor, with whatever benches, shelves and implements are necessary. A room heated this way is called a pang, and it differs from the Chinese kang in no essential particular except that the latter occupies only part of the room and is raised above the floor like a divan, while the Korean forms the whole of the floor itself. A small house will contain only one room like this, with a kitchen attached and one or two storerooms; but a large gentleman’s establishment, while built in the same general way, will contain perhaps a dozen or more such rooms and a long row of servants’ quarters, making in all as many as a hundred and 246 THE PASSING OF KOREA fifty or even two hundred kan. Every dwelling with any pre- tension to comfort will have a separate part called the sarang. This is the gentleman's reception-room, and is approached from the outside without coming near the women’s part of the house. This latter is called the “ inner room,” and no one of the male sex will enter there without the express invitation of and in company with the master of the house. The Koreans have a passion for cutting up their compounds with endless walls, making a veritable labyrinth of the place. To our eyes this is a great blemish, for it leaves little opportunity for a pleasing effect on the eye. The very finest Korean house is the most secluded, and you can discover its charms only by close inspection, and by twisting in and out through numberless gates and alleys. You cannot stand off and admire it as you can a European building. On the street side it presents nothing to the eye but a plain row of ordinary Korean kan without any- thing to show its character whatever. Judging from their houses, the Koreans do not put their best side out. You cross the cesspool to get into the gate; you go through the servants’ quarters and stables to get to the apartments of the master of the house. At the very back of all, and most inaccessible, you may find a pretty bank with some flowering shrubs, some quaint water-worn stones, and perhaps a solemn stork or two. In none of the various enclosures will you find a blade of grass growing. Such a thing as a lawn is quite unknown, and if grass tries to sprout it will be immediately scraped away with a hoe. In a A'cry nice house you may find a few potted plants or shrubs in the enclosure before the sarang. The ideal house site will face the south and will have a steep bank behind it. The south means warmth, light and life. The north means blackness, cold and death. This is an idea that has been borrowed from China, and is not indigenous with the Koreans. The same is true of every grave site and of every prefectural town site as well. Other things being equal, the southern exposure will always commend itself to the Korean. HOW THEY SHOVEL DIRT ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING 247 As to the sanitary arrangements of the Korean house, the less said the better. These people have not learned the first rudiments of hygiene, and so long as there is a ditch that will carry off the water that falls from the sky, all requirements seem to be met. The scavenger comes around at any time of day to take away the night soil, and you are more than likely to pass him and his load as you enter the gentleman’s compound. To the Westerner this insensibility of the Korean, and of all the dwellers of the Far East without exception, is entirely unaccountable. You will find the most horribly offensive conditions as readily among the residences of the wealthy and powerful as among the poor. There is this much to be said, however, before leaving this rather unpleasant subject : the open sewerage of Korea, while offensive to the eye, is far less so to the nose than that of China, and even many portions of Japan. There are much fewer epi- demics of cholera in Korea than in Japan, while diphtheria, that special disease resulting from imperfect sewerage, is far more common in Tokyo than in Seorfi. What I would maintain is that in spite of the offensiveness of the sanitation of Seoul, both to the eye and the nose, there is little evidence to prove that the actual health conditions among the natives are any worse than among the Japanese or Chinese. The Koreans seem to have but a vague idea of what a street is really for, and of the restrictions which communal ownership should place upon its use. It is only since the coming of for- eigners that the streets of Seoul have assumed anything like a semblance of order. Up to that time even the broad street which forms the central artery of the city was so choked up with booths and stalls that two carts could hardly pass each other at certain points. The Korean shopkeeper thinks nothing of extending his establishment ortt into the street for a distance of two, three or even four feet. At first he does it only as a temporary booth or screen for his goods, but as soon as the public get used to going around the obstruction he will quietly plant permanent posts at the limits of his encroachment, and the thing is done. If expos- 248 THE PASSING OF KOREA tulated with, he will put on a look of injured innocence, and assert that he has been using the space for many years, in fact, since his father’s time, and has a right to it. Not once but many times have I been obliged to nip this thing in the bud on streets leading to my own house. The little awning appears, and you bend aside to pass it, but if you are wise you will stop and see that it is removed ere it is too late. The street is also the depository of any and every kind of filth. Sooner or later it is trampled down b}’ the hoofs of passing horses and is lost to sight ; but if it were not for the great army of scavenger hawks that keep eternal watch for tempting morsels, and that other army, of anaemic dogs, who live on the border line of famine, I do not know what would become of the people of any Korean town. If a Korean wants some dirt to make mud with which to plaster a wall or mend a smoke-flue, he simply goes out into the middle of the street and digs as much as he wants. No care is taken to fill up the hole, and time only accomplishes the feat. Scores of times I have come upon places where a hole had been dug in the street large enough to bury an ox. The people who took the soil away may obligingly deposit the sweepings of their yards there as a pre- tence to remove the serious obstruction, but it is mere pretence. So long as the vandal leaves a narrow path by which people can pass, there is likely to be no complaint at all. The principle seems to be that what belongs to nobody in particular is lawful loot for anybody. No Korean housa; however humble, is complete unless it is surrounded by a wall or a fence of some kind that cannot be seen through. The reason is twofold. It is necessary to screen the women from observation. This is the prime reason ; and it is considered a serious misdemeanour to look over a wall or fence into your neighbour’s yard. If it is necessan," to mount the roof of a house for any purpose, it is obligatory upon the occupants of the house to give notice to all the neighbours, so that the women may get under cover and escape observation. The climb- ing of a wall is the act of a thief, and you will see Koreans BUILDING A DIRT WALL 4 1 i ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING 249 going a long way around to enter the gate, even when there is a breach in the wall quite sufficient to give easy access. But, on the other hand, the Korean has no respect whatever for a fence which he can see through. He will climb over or through and consider it no trespass at all. Before many weeks have passed the pickets will begin to disappear, and someone will be the richer by so much firewood. It is only the wall or fence that is impervious to sight that impresses the native of this country. The ordinary walls are made of dirt packed down tightly between parallel boards by a process quite unique, and to be described only by an illustration. The wall is about eighteen inches thick and is covered with tiles. The sides are scraped smooth, and after they have dried they are covered with lime plaster. If well made and with sufficient foundation, such a wall will last for many years. Where the red disintegrated granite is available the wall can be made so solid that even after the tiles have been removed it will stand for years. The Koreans have no notion of public parks or other places of public ornament or recreation, and yet they are passionately fond of wandering about the hills finding picturesque nooks and enjoying the beauties of nature. In many of these retreats there are semi-public houses of diversion, which include a consider- able area of land enclosed by a wall. These places belong to the government, and can be used only by application to the proper office. School picnics or other similar entertainments are held in these pretty retreats during the proper season, but it is only the upper classes that have access to them at any time. Their only attractions are a rocky gorge, a little pond and a summer pavilion ten feet square. In country districts the monasteries form the public parks. These are always beautifully situated, and are surrounded with trees. Here the people will congregate and have a grand picnic, generally in connection with some national festival. But besides this, there is in almost every village some large tree beneath Avhich the people meet to talk and gossip. It is the village agora. The old men bring out 250 THE PASSING OF KOREA their chess boards and play, and the leaders of the village talk over the communal affairs. If there is any gossip going, you will be sure to hear it at this point. Not uncommonly the village shrine is the place of general rendezvous. Without doubt the city walls are the most imposing struc- tures in Korea. The enormous work represented by the wall which surrounds Seoul is at once apparent, and is very impres- sive. As you pass through the country you will frequently see the top of some rocky hill crowned with a genuine acropolis. It is a heavy stone wall twelve or fifteen feet high and a mile or more around. Within you will find no evidences of life nor of recent occupation. Long centuries ago the usefulness of these places of refuge passed away, and they remain, like the feudal castles of Europe, mere monuments of past events. They never were places of permanent residence, but were used, like the block-houses in western America, when there was danger of an Indian raid. A word is in place regarding architectural decorations. These do not consist, as in the West, in variations of general style. The Koreans adhere strictly to one plan, and their forms of ornamentation are wholly superficial. Only government buildings can be painted. A private citizen would be arrested and punished severely if he presumed to paint his house. It would imply an assumption of royal privilege. The same would happen if he should leave the posts of his house round instead of squaring them. This also is a royal prerogative. It is not easy to describe the paint on a Korean palace. If the reader will imagine that a rainbow has been dashed against the house and that fragments of it have adhered to every ex- posed piece of wood he will gain a faint idea of how it looks. The colours are the primitive hues of the rainbow, and they are applied in little curved rainbow patterns, so that any painted surface looks like a conglomerate of kaleidoscopic fragments. It tires the imagination to fancy how the painter could do the same thing twice, but we find that he can do nothing else. ART AND RELIGION (7) Under tile eaves of an audience hall (r>) A Buddhist Holy of Holies ARCHITECTURE AND BUILDING 251 Everywhere we find the same heterogeneous consistency. On the yamen gates we frequently find the great circle made by putting together two huge commas. This is called the tagciik, and is the emblem seen on the Korean flag. It is supposed to represent the male and female properties in nature. Wood carving plays some part in the ornamentation of pub- lic buildings, though here again the private citizen is debarred. The latticed windows sometimes consist of an elaborate filigree, but, as ordinary pine wood is always used, no very fine effects are possible. One of the most characteristic forms of wood carving is seen in the multiplicity of horns that protrude from the ends of the beams beneath the eaves of audience halls and other ceremonial buildings. To save these from the contamina- tion of innumerable sparrows, a wire net is commonly drawn about the building just beneath the eaves. Not infrequently a curious addition is made by hanging from the corners of eaves a large number of small pieces of broken window-glass. Each piece is suspended from a separate string, and they all hang in a bunch so that the least breath of wind makes them strike together and produce a soft and pleasant tinkle. Each piece of glass is painted in colours. Among the most conspicuous objects in Korea are the earthenware •“ monkeys ” which stand in rows along the slop- ing corners of the city gates and government buildings. These nondescript figures do not represent monkeys, but they are so called by foreigners because they bear some resemblance to that animal. Nor are they placed upon the gates by way of orna- ment. The vivid imagination of the Korean peoples heaven and earth with all sorts of demons, and these “ monkeys ” are placed on the gates in order to frighten away these evil influ- ences. This is the most pointed, if not the only, reference which the government, as such, makes to the native spirit worship. In every other respect the Confucian system is adhered to. CHAPTER XVIII TRANSPORTATION T he condition of any people can be fairly estimated by the facilities they enjoy for intercommunication. Judged by this standard, the Koreans must be set down as among the least favoured of peoples. Throughout most of the country the roads are simply bridle- paths of the roughest description, over which it would be almost impossible for a jinrikisha to pass, to say nothing of a carriage or a cart. There are a few localities where carts can be used within a limited radius, but these are so few compared with the whole extent of the country that they merely form an excep- tion to the rule. On the great road between Seoul and the Chinese border or between Seoul and a few of the more impor- tant provincial centres there may be an occasional and spasmodic attempt at repairs, but it is only when the roads become almost entirely impassable, and some disgusted official makes a momen- tary stir over the matter in Seoul, that a few hundred dollars may be given for repairs. Of this sum three-fourths goes into someone’s pockets and the rest into the repairs. This sort of thing is always looked upon as more or less of a joke, and, when repairs are in progress, the country people wink at each other and ask which official it is now that has been stuck in the mud. On ordinary roads there are frequent places where nothing wider than a bicycle could pass on wheels, and even this ubiquitous vehicle has to be picked up bodily and carried over rough places every few miles. The constant shuffling of feet along these narrow paths through so many centuries has worn the road down below the level of the ground, especially where it passes over hills, for here the wind has full play and sweeps TRANSPORTATION • 253 away the pulverised earth. In the valleys the roads lie along the tops of the banks that separate the rice-fields, and so are sure to be kept from being entirely destroyed. Even between important towns the path is sometimes just a foot-wide path along the top of a rice-field bank, and it taxes the imagination to believe that such a wretched thoroughfare is all that connects two important centres. I shall never forget the curious sensa- tion with which I passed over the road between Chemulpo and Seoul for the first time. It made me think of the sheep-paths on the old farm up in Vermont, and if it had not been for the most positive statements of my guide I should have refused to believe that it could lead to the metropolis of a kingdom of over ten million people. Near the great centres there are a few substantial stone bridges, but for the most part the country is without permanent bridges. There is a brilliant exception to this in the celebrated Mansckyo, or “ Ten-thousand Year Bridge,” at Hamheung. It is almost half a mile long and is built upon natural forked tim- bers sunk in the sand. In the crotches of these lie the cross- pieces. The floor of the bridge is made of timbers about the size of railroad sleepers, tied together with the tough vine which the Koreans call cliik. Like the old-time London Bridge, it usually has many houses built upon it, but when the rainy season comes on these are hastily removed, for more than once a sud- den storm among the mountains has swollen the stream so rapidly that the bridge has been partially swept away before the sleepers were aware of their danger. Almost every year sees portions of it swept away, and, as the cost of its repair is a charge upon the government, and the contract nets the carpenters a round sum, it is looked upon as one of the “ good things ” of the season. It was this bridge that the Russians fired in May of 1904. The streams are crossed in three ways : by ferry, by ford and by little temporary bridges, which are not expected to sur- vive the rains of the summer season. All streams whose per- 254 THE PASSING OF KOREA manent depth is greater than a man’s height are crossed by ferry. These ferries are supposed to be government affairs, and are supported out of the finances of the district in which they are situated, but the passenger is always supposed to pay a small sum as a gratuity. I imagine that the ferryman has to depend largely upon this source of income. The ferryboats are wide, shallow affairs, and when they are loaded down with a miscellaneous crowd of loaded bullocks and pack-ponies, gen- tlemen’s “ chairs,” coolies’ jiggys and a score or more of men, women and children, it generally seems as if it was only by a special dispensation of Providence that the opposite bank could ever be reached. Indeed, an annual sacrifice is made to the spirits of those who have been drowned in this and in other Avays. The little temporary bridges built on small sticks, covered with brushw’ood and earth on top of all, are one of the curiosi- ties of Korea. They are barely wide enough for a single animal or person to pass, and they usually have one or more holes through which the unwary may put his foot. The Korean word for bridge is the same as that for leg, and the reason for this is plain. The bridge is simply a row of artificial legs let down into the sand. Time was when the Koreans were capable of better things, for during the Japanese invasion of 1592, when the Chinese army came to help the Koreans and arrived at the bank of the Imjin River, the Chinese general refused to take his men across unless the Koreans would build a substantial hridge. The distance was fully one hundred yards, but the Koreans, in their thirst for revenge upon the Japanese, were ecpial to any task. On one side was a heavily wooded bluff’ and on the other a sandy shore. On the low bank they sunk great posts, and between these and the trees on the opposite side they carried eight great hawsers of the tough chik A'ine, some eight inches in diameter. These dragged in the water in mid-stream ; but, going out in boats, they put stout bars of oak between the hawsers and twisted them until they were brought well above TRANSPORTATION 255 the surface. On these hawsers brushwood was piled and on the brushwood clay. This was trampled down firmly, and the, armies crossed upon it in comfort and safety. So far as we are aware, this was the first great suspension bridge mentioned in history. The frail rope-bridges of the Andes may antedate this, but they are of quite a different order of structure. Korean tradition tells of one other way by which a river has been crossed, but we would hardly classify it among the regular methods. The story goes that a certain prince was ban- ished to a distant locality and held in durance on an island in a river. One of the officials who was loyal to him followed him and took up his residence in a neighbouring town. He greatly desired to carry some food to the prince, but there was no way to cross the stream. He sat down beside it and waited, and presently the water divided, like the waters of the Red Sea, and he passed across dry-shod to the prince. Such being the very backward condition of all roads in Korea, we are not surprised to learn that during the heavy rains ■of summer, when the temporary bridges are all down and small streams have become roaring torrents, travel and traffic are practically suspended, excepting in the case of that which goes by way of junk. At this season the Korean moves about but little. It is his lazy time, unless he is a farmer and has to look after the transplanting of his rice. Ordinarily he will stay at home and consume an indefinite number of melons, seeds and all. With the exception of the railway lines from Seoul to Fusan and Chemulpo respectively, and the various Japanese steamship companies, the methods of transportation in Korea are still the primitive ones, and all but a small fraction of the carrying is done as it has been all through the centuries. These methods correspond precisely with the character of the roads, which, as •we have seen, are mere bridle or foot paths. First in importance comes the famous Korean bullock. He means more to the Korean than the horse does to the Arab or 256 THE PASSING OF KOREA the llama to the Peruvian. Not once but many times a sweeping" scourge has killed off a large fraction of the cattle in one sec- tion or other of Korea, and in each instance it has precipitated a famine. The heavy mud of the rice-fields cannot be cultivated without this animal, and in case of his death the farmer simply lets his field lie fallow. Korea can boast of a sturdy, patient and tractable breed of cattle. These bullocks which wind in and out among the hills of this country, carrying every sort of produce, are not the fierce and rampageous animals that are supposed in our own land to accept every challenge of a red rag. They are docility itself. This heavy, slow-plodding ani- mal, docile, long-suffering, uncomplaining, would make a fitting emblem of the Korean people. How often have we seen a brutal, drunken bullock-driver vent his spleen on someone else by beating his animal with a club or violently jerk the rope tied to the wooden ring that passes through the cartilage of its nose. But the patient bullock never remonstrates or attempts to defend itself. Just so through the long centuries have the Korean people borne the burdens of their rulers and taken their blows without complaint, until at last patience has become a second nature, and the Western on-looker marvels at the amount of oppression that the ordinary Korean will endure without revolt. The bullock could turn and rend his master with utmost ease, even as the people could relieve themselves of oppression, but the patience of the Korean has reached a point where it ceases to be a virtue. Next in importance comes the Korean pony. Nowhere else in Asia is this diminutive creature matched. The only thing like him is the Shetland pony, but, while the latter is a stocky and shaggy beast, proportioned very differently from the ordi- nary horse, the Korean animal is simply a miniature of the larger breed, and his proportions are often as perfect as are found in the best of our own boasted horses. Histor}" and tra- dition have much to say about this breed of horse. As far back as ancient Yemak, which flourished at the beginning of our era, TRANSPORTATION 257 we read that the horses were so small that men could ride under the branches of the fruit trees without striking their heads against them. From time immemorial the island of Quelpart has been the famous breeding-place of the hardy pony, and the Mongols established themselves there very strongly in order to breed horses for use in their wars. But for all this the Koreans seem to have developed no love for the horse such as redeems the character of the Bedouin. The Koreans never mutilate their animals, and the result is that, though the bulls are almost as quiet and docile as the oxen of the West, the little stallions are inveterate fighters. Even when tied head to tail in a long line they are almost sure to get tangled up in a squealing melee unless their drivers are at hand. I shall not soon forget the occasion on which the beast I was riding succeeded in getting both his forelegs over the neck of my wife’s mount and pro- ceeded to chew its ears off. It was a novel and exciting tete-a-tete. But besides the bullock and the horse there is another “ beast of burden ” in Korea that outranks them both, and that is man. One could not safely quote figures here, but my impression is that more dead weight is carried on men’s backs than on those of bullocks and horses combined. As a rule, it is only the large through traffic that is carried on animals’ backs, and even this is often seen on men’s backs. The dried fish from the northeast all come around by boat or across by pack-horse. Brushwood, grass and fagots are brought into the large centres on bullocks, horses and men’s backs. Americans who are expert in throwing the “ diamond hitch ” have confessed that the Koreans can beat them at the game. Who can wonder, since the Koreans have been learning for the last four thousand years — a pretty thor- ough apprenticeship! Not only are these people experts in adapt- ing a load to an animal’s back, but they have solved the problem of how to distribute the weight of a load on a man’s back so that he can carry the maximum weight with the minimum of fatigue. It is safe to say that the Korean jiggy, or carrying-frame, is almost 258 THE PASSING OF KOREA ideal in its construction. It is so built that the weight is nicely poised, and is so distributed upon the hips, the back and the shoulders that each part bears its proportionate burden. The result is that a man can carry any load that his legs will enable him to support. This jiggy is a unique national institution; as much so as the samovar is of Russia, or the bull-fight is of Spain, Compare it with the methods in vogue in other lands. The Chi- nese balance their burden in two baskets attached to a bamboo stick. This is carried over the shoulder. The stick has to be long enough so that the swinging baskets will not strike his legs as he walks, and the weight is so applied to his body that only a small part of his strength can be brought into play. \Mien his burden cannot be divided, he has to carry a counterbalancing weight in one basket. He requires almost three times as much room in the street as the Korean carrier. The Korean sets his jiggy on the ground, and props it up with his forked stick. Placing the load on the frame, he ties it there securely with a cord that forms an essential part of the apparatus. Kneeling down, he inserts his arms into the two padded loops and fits them on his shoulders. Then leaning forward, he throws the weight of the load upon his back, and by the aid of the stick rises to a standing posture. He can easily rise with a weight of two hun- dred and fifty pounds, but if it is three hundred pounds or more, he requires the help of another man to rise. I have seen Korean coolies carry a weight of four hundred pounds in this way a distance of several hundred yards without resting. Of course such a thing would be entirely beyond the power of a Chinese coolie with his bamboo stick. Either the stick or his shoulder must break. The average load that a Korean will carry at the rate of thirty miles a day is about one hundred pounds. The pack-ponies carry about twice as much, and the bullocks from three to four times as much. Besides these, there are several special methods of transporta- tion confined to particular kinds of burdens. Heavy stones are carried on carts if there is a road, and if it be in a part of the 1 ( TRANSPORTATION 259 country where carts are used; but for short distances this is usually accomplished by means of a long, heavy pole or beam resting on the shoulders of many men. This piece of wood is fifteen feet long, six inches in thickness at the middle, and three at the ends. The stone is attached to it by heavy ropes, and four, six or eight men put their shoulders to the carrying beam at each end. They stand so close together that their bodies actually touch each other, and it would be impossible to walk if they did not keep exact step, like a line of prisoners at Sing-sing. The knack of doing this is acquired, and there is a distinct class of workmen who receive special wages for it. One of the most conspicuous occupations of Korea is that of water-carrier. In the rural districts the women of the house generally carry the water from the spring or well to the house in jars on their heads, but in the large towns this work is done by a special class of men. Seoul is supplied with water only by the miserable neighbourhood wells, about which the less said the better. The people do not hesitate to wash their soiled clothes immediately beside the well, where the filth is readily washed back into it, and vegetables or other things are generally cleaned beside the well-curb. These wells are often very far from sanitary, and it is to them that we must trace the terrible- results of occasional cholera epidemics and other infectious dis- eases. To supply a large city with water from this source is a work of no small magnitude, and the water-carrier is a recog- nised institution, which boasts of a' powerful guild. The work is genuine and hard, and the pay is correspondingly high. This high pay puts a premium upon the work. The applicant for a position as a water-carrier in any thickly populated portion of Seoul will have to pay from forty to one hundred dollars for the position. Each house to which water is carried pays a monthly fee for the service. The water is carried in two wooden buckets the size and shape of an inverted firkin, suspended from a yoke which rests upon the small of the back and is held in place by straps over the shoulders. The buckets are fastened to the yoke 26 o THE PASSING OF KOREA by bamboo fibres, and the peculiar gait affected by the carrier swings the buckets just enough to make the fastenings rub together and send forth a strident squeak which, like the horrible yell of the axles of Chinese barrows, warns people to make way for the water-carrier. In can-ying ordinary small packages the Koreans do not wrap them up in paper and tie them with a string as we do. Paper is far too valuable and string is too rare to make this pos- sible ; but the article to be carried is placed on a square cloth, and the corners brought up over it and knotted. In going to the market in the morning the Korean will take a long, narrow cloth bag, open at both ends, and into this he will pour his various purchases, perhaps making a knot in the bag to keep them sepa- rate. Then he ties the two ends of the bag together, and swings this completed circle over his shoulder and goes home. His method of carrying his long, “ bologna-sausage ” strings of cash is most peculiar. He inserts the end of the long string beneath the cord which forms his waistband, and which precariously sup- ports his nether garments, and, bringing the other end about his waist, he twists it again through the waist-cord. One would think this a most clumsy and uncomfortable way to earn," it, but one good object at least is conserved; that is, the money is effectually concealed beneath his flowing robes, and its existence is unguessed until he chooses to disclose it. To the \\'^esterner this precaution may seem unnecessary, but in the Orient, at least in Korea, people studiously avoid the display of wealth unless they have the influence necessary to protect it from spoliation. The subject of transportation would be but half co^"ered if we omitted the boats of Korea. From the earliest times these people have been large users of this method of carrying. The mountainous character of the country, the miserable roads and the many possibilities of interference on the highway have driven them to the water-ways. But the high tides and the consequent strong currents on the western coast have also mvited them to the water-ways. Our notion of the coast is anything but invit- THE SHIPYARD i TRANSPORTATION 261 ing; but when we remember that the fringing islands protect the junk routes from high seas, and that the sweeping currents carry the boatman in his desired direction at least ten hours out of the twenty-four, however the wind may sit, and when we further note that the junks are so constructed that they can ground without danger, and that to be stuck on a mud-bank only means a chance for so many more pipes of tobacco, we can but wonder that all the traffic does not go by sea. The ordinary junk is inferior in shape and general construc- tion to either the Japanese or Chinese craft. The cause of this is the fact that the Koreans have never attempted much on the open seas, but have confined themselves mostly to coastwise traffic; and even this has been for the most part among islands where there are harbours of one sort or another within a few hours’ run of any particular point. In the matter of sailing against the wind the Korean craft is superior to either of the others, because it does not stand nearly so far out of the water, and yet the Koreans cannot be said to know how to tack. In fact, the Korean junk is merely a larger edition of the ordi- nary river boat. It is flat of bottom, square of end, and the bottom curves up at each end so that it looks something like a huge punt. It has two masts which stand at different angles, and give the boat a general air of having indulged in late hours. The sails are of the “ square ” variety, simple, oblong pieces of rough cloth fastened to stout poles or “ spars ” at each end. A rope is knotted around the middle of one of these sticks, and the sail is hauled up to the top of the mast. Ropes from the two ends of the bottom stick form the “ sheet.” It is evident that such a primitive apparatus would not allow of sailing very close to the wind. The best that can be said of it is that it helps to counteract the retarding action of the wind when the mariner wishes to go with the tide. But even so it has been the universal experience of foreigners that the junk-men prefer to anchor unless the wind is with them. The junk can make little head- way against a four-knot tide. It is the same with their financial 262 THE PASSING OF KOREA transactions as with their boats. They must have both capital and “ pull ” to secure a profitable “ rake-off.” However much capital they may have, if it is necessary to sail against the tide of influence, they are almost sure to make shipwreck. Innumerable river craft bring the produce of the country down to the sea, the junks take it coast-wise to the mouths of other rivers, and then river boats carry it inland again to its destination. A few of the rivers are deep enough to float junks that are safe at sea, and so some of the cargoes do not have to be broken out en route. Rice, barley, beans, fish and edible sea- weed are the usual cargoes, but all sorts of produce go to make up the total. Now that the government has changed its system of taxation and takes money instead of rice, and since the open- ing up of regular steamship lines and railways, the traffic by junk has shrunken to comparatively small dimensions. It is said that the river traffic on the Naktong River inland from Fusan has been ruined by the Seoul-Fusan Railway, which parallels the river. The railway is cheaper, swifter and safer in every way, and the temporary dislocation in industrial conditions will finally result in much good to the Korean people. There are many kinds and names of boats in Korea, but the general pattern is the same. On the eastern coast, however, there is one style of craft that differs radically from the ordinary. If you should take two ordinary “ dug-outs,” tip them up on edge with their prows touching and their sterns five feet apart, and then nail planks across from the lower inner side of one to the corresponding side of the other, and complete it with a stern, you would come near this clumsy but withal effective craft. It would be dangerous but for a sort of gunwale running around the top to keep out the seas. One of the most curious sights in Korea is that of a loaded wood-boat on the Tadong River, run- ning by Pyeng-yang. In order to save cargo space for the light brushwood, which is enormously bulky for its weight, the entire boat from stem to stern is piled ten feet high with the fuel, excepting a tiny space just at the prow, where two men sit and TRANSPORTATION 263 row. From the very centre of the boat there rises a stout mast which protrudes a foot or so above the load, and on a little plat- form on the tip-top of this mast sits the steersman, holding in his hand the end of an enormously long sweep which reaches into the water at the stern. The whole thing looks ludicrous enough even when the craft is loaded ; but when there is no load, the sight of two men rowing in the very prow, while the steers- man sits perched upon the very top of the mast like Stylites on his pillar, with a twenty-foot tiller in his hand, is extremely grotesque. The Koreans are great travellers within the confines of their own little country. I doubt if there are many lands where a higher estimate is placed upon the pleasure of travel. The Kore- ans do not rush from place to place ferreting out the notable objects of interest, but they wander about in a dreamy way, enjoying natural scenery in a wholly natural manner. Besides this there is the usual amount of travelling on official business and for commercial purposes. One wishes to know how the people get about in the absence of carriages or other vehicles. Officials always travel by “ chair.” This consists of a little four-posted canopy about three feet square by four feet high, carried on two poles. The passenger sits on the floor of the “ chair,” and there are curtains to let down on all four sides so as to screen him entirely from view. Each of the two carriers has a pair of suspenders over his shoulders, and through the loops of these on either side of his body the ends of the poles pass. It is not an uncomfortable way to travel if one can sit cross- legged like a Turk for ten hours a day. There is very little jar- ring if the carriers break step as they should. There is no beast of burden whose footfall is so soft as that of a man. These “ chairs ” are of all degrees of elegance, just as our own carriages are. Those that are used by women are of course always closed, unless it chances to be a dancing girl. Women’s chairs are dis- tinguished by fan-shaped bangles hanging in rows on the sides. These chairs are on hire at regular stands throughout all the 264 THE PASSING OF KOREA Iarg;cr cities, but in the country they are more difficult to obtain. Alost well-to-do gentlemen keep their own private chairs. In travelling long distances you pay each carrier a stated sum for each ten // of the rcKul. The four-man chairs are used only by the highest officials. No one of lesser degree than a cabinet minister is allowed to use them. They are much like the two- man chair, hut the poles are longer, and the cords that hold the poles at either end are attached to a short stick that rests upon the shoulders of the two bearers. I have never found a method of conveyance more smooth or delightful than this four-man chair. The coolies do not keep step, and so the motion is per- fecth' even. The elasticity of the poles add to this effect, and no railway car was ever built luxuriously enough nor were rails ever laid true enough to equal this delightful motion. In no department of Korean life is the wonderful endurance of the Korean more fully illustrated than in the carrying of these chairs. If you were in a hurr>’ to go overland from Seoul to Pyeng-yang, a distance of about one hundred and sixty miles, you would nat- urally suppose that a good horse would take you there in the quickest time, but there is probably no horse in Korea that would get you to your destination so quickly as the chair coolie. Take eight men and pay them well and you will enter P^-eng-yang about noon of the third day out from Seoul. They will take you four miles an hour, sixteen hours a day. Tlie amount of rice they will consiune cu route is enormous, and they will sleep for twenty- four hours after reaching the end of the journey. Another way of travelling is by horseback or donkey-back. Though the Korean horse is veiw' small, no Korean would think of riding it and sending his baggage by some other conveyance. Two stout baskets or boxes containing the rider's effects are slung over the back of the horse and rest against his sides. On top of this the traveller's blankets and other bedding are smoothly laid. Tlien a sort of frame, like the back of a chair but only eight inches high, is placed on top of all, and there the man sits cross- legged or with his feet hanging down. You stand aghast at the 1 \\ O OF R-OR-i.- Mskinc / TRANSPORTATION 265 manifest cruelty of it, and you wish that the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals might take him in hand; but if you were to try it yourself, and should find that the hardy little pony is ready to carry you thirty miles a day as long as you wish to go, and that, too, without any visible evidences of over- fatigue, you would change your mind. It is true, however, that the Koreans do treat their horses with great cruelty. They cherish no sentimental ideas about the animal; and whether he be lame or spavined or otherwise incapable, he is given the usual load, and driven until there is absolutely no more to be gotten out of him. The Korean donkey is a very tiny animal, with a hoof that would go into a teacup. The rider’s feet almost touch the ground. There can be but a very few pounds’ difference between the weight of the animal and its load. In this case the servant usually carries the baggage on his back and trots along behind his master. But, for all these different aids to travel, it must be said that by far the greatest part of it is done on foot. The Korean is a magnificent walker. Every foreigner who has visited this coun- try has been struck at once by the erect carriage, the springy gait and the graceful action of the Korean in walking. In this he forms a striking contrast to almost every other denizen of the Far East. He can easily cover his thirty miles a day, and this is all he could do if he had a mount. He has no expense except for his three bowls of rice a day, and an occasional new pair of straw shoes. Thirty miles is his regular rate for long distances, but if necessary he can, and often does, cover his fifty miles a day. Most Koreans who travel for mere pleasure prefer to go afoot. Whether they get more pleasure out of it than we do out of our bicycles, automobiles and other mile-eaters is, of course, a question; but it is a question to which they, at least, would reply in the affirmative without hesitation. There are so many islands off the coast that the passenger traffic by boat is very considerable, but people who live on the mainland seldom patronise the junks, for it is generally found 266 THE PASSING OF KOREA that travel by road is quicker and easier. The one recommenda- tion for the water route was that fewer robbers would be met. When the Japanese began to run regular steamers, however, the Koreans very soon learned how much quicker, easier and cheaper this form of travel is, and at the present time the coast- wise steamers carry crowds of natives. Many of these craft are small and obsolete. Not a few of them have doubtless been condemned in Japan and have been brought over to this country where few questions are asked and inspections are compara- tively rare. No limit seems to be placed upon the number of passengers that will be booked for passage. I have seen little steamers whose capacity was forty or fifty people loaded down with a hundred or more. The cabin would be so full that there was hardly sitting space on the floor, to say nothing of attempt- ing to lie down. These wheezy craft occasionally blow up and oftener strike an obstruction and founder. There is no old resident of Seoul who cannot tell you a long list of gruesome yarns about the steamers that used to ply between Seoul and Chemulpo by the river before the railroad was built. This latter is truly an eleemosynary institution, and deserves to make handsome profits. Seoul boasts of one other vehicle which is fast becoming obsolete, but which once formed a picturesque addition to the street scenery of the capital. It is a one-wheeled chair. The seat is placed on two long poles, which are supported at the ends by bearers, but the weight of the rider is supported upon a sort of pedestal immediately beneath the seat. This pedestal rests upon the axle of a single iron-bound and nail-studded wheel about two feet and a half in diameter. The bearers at the ends of the poles simply propel the machine and keep it from tipping from side to side. It is a reasonable proposition, but at first sight it affects the risibilities of the spectator with irresistible force. Only certain high grades of officials are allowed to make use of this singular vehicle. During the past few years certain portions of the country AUTOMATIC WATER-MILL A beam balanced at the centre, with a trough on one end and a pestle on the other. The water enters into the trough and depresses that end, and then flowing out because of the depression, lets the pestle fall into a mortar TRANSPORTATION 267 liave enjoyed postal and telegraph facilities. One of the few successful enterprises of the government along foreign lines was the running of telegraph wires to some of the important ■centres of the land and to the Yalu River, where the wires were connected with the Chinese system, thus completing communi- cation with Europe. This was done some twenty years ago, but the present postal facilities are of much more recent date. An attempt was made to establish a sort of postal system in 1884, but the severe disturbances of that year and the return to power of the conservative element postponed the final establishment of the system until about ten years ago. The question naturally arises as to what the Koreans did during all those long cen- turies before the introduction of these modern methods. In the ■“ good old days ” there was no need to hurry, except in case of very serious disturbance in the provinces, due to invasion or rebellion. If either of these evils threatened the government, it had a method of learning about it almost as soon as it could have done by the modern telegraph. The whole country is ■dotted with fire-mountains, so situated that the beacon fires flashed from peak to peak without interruption from one end of the peninsula to the other. Each station was in the care of a keeper, whose duty it was to pass the word along each night by flare of torch. Every evening the beacon fires flashed across the valleys from the four quarters of the land, and focussed at the station on Namsan, or South Mountain, within the walls of the capital. This station was plainly visible from the gates of the palace, and each night an official stood waiting the message. When the light flared up, he waited to see whether more than one was to be shown. If not, he carried to the King the mes- sage that the whole country was at peace. This pleasant sight used to be one of the features of life in Seoul in the old days, but to-day the small boys festoon with their kites the web of telegraph wires that has been woven over the city, and the uneasy burr of the telegraph receiver has taken the place of the genial flash of the evening beacon. 268 THE PASSING OF KOREA The old-time yotigma, or horse-relay system, was the pre- cursor of the postal system, and it did its work well for over fourteen centuries. Government stables were established at fre- quent intervals along all the main routes, and official correspond- ence went by post-horse. Some of us have seen the messenger arrive at one of these stations, dismount from his jaded animal and leap into the saddle of another mount, and, with a cut of the whip and the clatter of hoofs, disappear down the road, bound city-ward or countrj^-ward with some important missive. The trouble with this system was that the common people were not allowed to use it. The messengers were, of course, often bribed to take private letters, but as a rule the people made use of casual travellers to deliver messages in distant towns. The guild known as the “ Peddlers’," a name that has come into disrepute during recent times, was much utilised for the delivery of letters. The wandering peddlers covered the country as a network, and one could very often communicate through them with distant friends. It hardly needs to be said that the estab- lishment of steamship lines and the building of railroads is working wonderful changes in the Korean’s ability to communi- cate with distant sections of the country. In former times it took weeks to get a letter to the northeastern part of the country, but now it is a matter of days only. CHAPTER XIX KOREAN INDUSTRIES predominant industry of Korea, as of most civ- I ilised countries, is agriculture. The silent processes H of nature make less stir in the newspapers, but even in such a feverishly industrial country as America we find that wheat, corn, tobacco and cotton are the dominant factors of our wealth. But in Korea agriculture holds a rela- tively higher place than in most countries. They realise fully that the soil is the source of wealth, and that the safest invest- ment is a good paddy-field. It is the farmer who is expected to bear the brunt of national taxation, perhaps on the theory that nature does more than half the work for him. What would life on the farm be in America if almost the total revenue of the country was collected from the farmer, while the merchant, manufacturer and house-owner went free? This government has always, and successfully, reckoned upon the passionate love of the Korean for the soil. A gentleman of the purest blood can engage in farming without soiling his escutcheon, but to be a merchant or manufacturer or broker would be beneath his dignity. Agriculture is so dignified an occupation that it stands quite alone among Korean industries. The implements used are of the crudest. The plough is a very primitive affair with a single handle and is drawn by a bullock. The ploughshare is of iron, and the work is fairly effective, though subsoiling is not possible. For the most part human excrement is used as a fertiliser, and, where this is not obtainable in sufficient quantities, grass or leaves are substituted. After the ploughing all agricultural processes are carried on by hand, — cultivating, reaping, threshing and winnowing. A study 2/0 THE PASSING OF KOREA of their methods shows that the Koreans get the best results possible from the amount of labour and capital expended. They understand irrigation, drainage and rotation of crops. In the manipulation of their produce and in preparing it for market they show commendable skill. Their rice is nicely hulled, and sometimes dusted with powdered kaolin to make it white. They separate the bark of flax and ramie by putting it in a pit upon hot stones and then pouring in water. For many centuries the tough paper which they make from the bark of the paper-mulberry has been famous throughout the Far East, and Alongols and Alanchus always demanded large quantities of it in the lists of their tribute. The Korean ginseng has already been described. Long centuries of apprenticeship have made the Korean an adept in the cultivation and preparation of this useless but highly prized plant. It is a fact with which many Americans may not be acquainted, that ginseng is consumed almost solely for its sup- posed aphrodisiac qualities, and the huge amounts produced in America and exported to China simply add fuel to the basest passions of man. It may not be as harmful as opium, but the moral principle involved is precisely the same. A wild variety of this plant, called “ mountain ginseng,'’ commands fabulov;s prices, and a large number of people are annually engaged in searching for it. The Koreans liaA’e developed a keen sense of the value of by-products. The straw and bran from their cereals are care- fully utilised, and in a general way it may truthfully be said that what the Korean throws away is not worth keeping. Another great Korean industry is that of fishing. Taken as a whole, the Koreans eat very little beef. Only the well-to-do can afford it, and as you travel through the country it will be only in the larger centres that it will be procurable. This will readily appear when we add that, though the average wage of the Korean is only about one-sixth as much as that of an American, the cost of a cow or bull is almost as much here POULTRY PEDDLER HULLING RICE KOREAN INDUSTRIES 271 as in our own land. The Korean would no sooner think of killing a good, strong, healthy bull for beef than the reader would think of killing a valuable dog for its pelt. But the con- sumption of fish, especially in its dried or salted form, is very great throughout the country. Off the northeast coast enormous quantities of ling are caught. These are dried and taken into ■every hamlet in the country. Everywhere along the coast, and in towns easily accessible therefrom, fresh fish are largely con- sumed. Everything is fish that comes to the Korean’s net ; sharks, cuttle-fish, sea-slugs and all. They have never developed the enterprise or the daring to engage in the lucrative whale fisheries off the eastern coast, but the Japanese and Russians have reaped golden harvests there. The former have secured the right, by concession from the Korean government, to fish .anywhere along the Korean coast, and their brutal methods are rapidly driving the Koreans out of the business. The work of gathering and transporting fuel engages the attention of many thousands of people. The Koreans differ from the Japanese in that, while the latter keep themselves warm by the use of heavy blankets, and in winter are most fre- quently seen crouched about their charcoal braziers, the Korean heats his house generously and depends upon his hot stone floor for comfort. The effect, while perhaps no better from a hygi- enic standpoint, is decidedly more comfortable. It is also much more costly. People have wondered why Korea looks so barren compared with Japan. The reason lies right here. Koreans keep their wood cut down to the quick, to provide themselves with fuel, while the Japanese let the forests grow. The Jap- anese are the more picturesque, but the Koreans are more com- fortable. Wood forms but a small part of Korean fuel. The ■common people usually burn grass or small fagots. This they feed slowly into the fire, utilising every particle of the heat. One firing in the morning and one at night suffice to cook the food and to keep the stone floor warm. One of the most char- acteristic sights about Seoul is the long lines of bullocks and 272 THE PASSING OF KOREA ponies bringing in their bulky loads of grass and fagots. Every morning and evening when the fires are simultaneously lighted a thick pall of smoke hangs over the city for two hours or more. On still winter nights it is so dense that one is almost choked by it, and there is no doubt that the prevalent bronchial troubles are aggravated by this means. Everywhere on the hillsides you will see boys scraping up the dead grass with their ingenious bamboo rakes. In Seoul a man’s fuel bill ordinarily amounts to about a quarter of his income. In the country it is of course much cheaper. In a country entirely destitute of salt wells or mines, and dependent upon the sea for this great necessity of life, we are not surprised to learn that an unusually large number of people are engaged in salt-making. This is all the more evident since the appliances are so poor and human labour has to make up the deficit. On wide, flat plains near the eastern coast oblong fields are prepared with ditches between them. Sea-water is pumped or ladled into these ditches and then thrown upon a loose brown loam, which covers the hard-packed surface of the fields to a depth of three or four inches. As the water evaporates, it leaves this brown loam satiurated with salt. This is then scraped into piles and carried to vats where the hea^y brine is drained off. This brine is further evaporated in huge kettles made of lime cement. The lime is made by burning clam-shells. As the kettles are eight or ten feet wide and very shallow, they are not strong enough to support their own weight ; so, from rows of stout poles above, cords are let down and fastened to hooks which pass through the bottom of the kettle. Each kettle has a score of these hooks. When the brine is boiled down, the wet crystals are scraped off and put in bags for market. This salt is exceedingly coarse and dirty, but there is no question of its saltiness. Koreans complain that. our salt is insipid. Foreigners would never use Korean salt if they could once witness its manufacture. The bullocks and cows used in the fields are BOYS WHO GATHER GRASS FOR FUEL DEAD CHILD TIED TO TREE KOREAN INDUSTRIES 273 continually defiling them, and no effort is made to remove the filth. On the west coast there are many places where sea-water is ladled directly into the kettles and boiled down without any intermediate process of evaporation. Sericulture is one of the historic industries of Korea, and can be carried on by a gentleman without derogation from his dignity. The infrequency of thunder-storms favours the in- dustry, and the product is considerable, though not sufficient to figure in trade reports. In textile industries Korea holds no very high place. Rough cotton, hemp and grass cloth are woven in clumsy hand-looms, and a cheap, plain silk is produced. The dyeing arrangements are very crude, and the product cannot in any sense be compared with that of China or Japan. Certain portions of the peninsula are almost ideal for the production of both cotton and silk, and the time will doubtless come when these important staples will be much more extensively cultivated. History and archaeology show that at one time Korea pro- duced good examples of the ceramic art, but to-day only the crudest work is done in this line. The same is true of metal castings. Not for many centuries has Korea cast a great bell like those which hang in various towns and monasteries, as elo- quent reminders of past and forgotten skill. The goldsmiths and silversmiths turn out some interesting and curious pieces, but the monotony of design and carelessness of finish detract very greatly from their value, and the apparent ignorance of the use of alloys to harden the precious metals lessens the usefulness of the product. A kind of bronze work, mostly in the form of native dinner services, is turned out in considerable quantities, but the old work is so much superior to the new that here too we must conclude that the handicraft has deteriorated. Mining is an industry as old as history. Gold is found all over the peninsula, and the Koreans mine it with great enthu- 2/4 THE PASSING OF KOREA siasm. It is mostly placer mining, but in the north one fre- quently runs across more ambitious attempts in the shape of shafts. The Koreans build a fire on the ledge, and when the rock is hot they throw on water, which cracks the quartz and makes it possible to dig it out with their rude picks. This primitive method makes it impossible to proceed in any but a \ ertical direction, and if the vein should happen to run obliquely it is soon lost. They crush the ore beneath great round granite boulders, which are rocked back and forth over it by the use of levers or handles fastened to its sides. Only the free gold is obtained, and the waste is very great. ^^'e have it on the authority of expert foreign miners that gold is found very irregularly in the Korean veins. For a dis- tance it may be very rich, and then the vein will narrow to almost nothing for many feet or yards and then open out again freely. There seem to be no great masses of rock in which there is a small but even amount of the yellow metal, as is the case in the Rand in South Africa. This makes Korean gold-mining more of a venture than in some places. Absence from home and distance from constabulary control breed the same contempt for the amenities of life among miners here as elsewhere. In spite of the fact that so large a portion of the peninsula is of granite, there are extensive portions where coal is found. In the vicinity of Pyeng-yang there are rich anthracite veins, and on the east coast bituminous coal is found in various places. \\dien properly opened up. these valuable resources will be of immense importance to the country. Iron is not so widely distributed, but in one considerable district in Kang-wun Province there are immense beds of iron ore. The people scrape it up from the surface of the ground and smelt it in their rude furnaces by the use of charcoal. It is used very largely for their great iron rice-kettles and for various agricultural implements. For all wrought-iron work it has been found cheaper to import foreign rod-iron and sheath- PLACER GOLD-MINING ■^ir***^ KOREAN INDUSTRIES -7S ing. Foreigners have looked over this ground with some care, and they affirm that there are practically unlimited quantities of the finest iron ore, awaiting the hand of modern scientific workmanship. Copper, silver, lead and nickel are all found in moderate quantities in the peninsula, but with the exception of silver they are not of enough account to warrant extended description. The primitive occupations of hunting and trapping still have their followers in Korea. In the north there is a regular guild or brotherhood of tiger-hunters, and their bravery and pluck are beyond dispute. It was from their ranks that the garrison of Kang-wha was chosen, which inflicted such punishment upon the- French in 1866. The chances which" these hunters take in the pursuit of their chosen calling would make your modern Nimrod stare with incredulity. They use old match-locks, which are dis- charged by letting the smouldering end of a thick cord fall into the flash-pan. This cord is wound around the arm, and when the moment for action comes, the hunter blows upon the smoul- dering end and fastens it in a fork of the hammer, so that when the trigger is pulled there is some small chance of the thing “ going off.” One of these hunters well described the differ- ence between their antiquated weapons and the modern repeat- ing rifle: “Korean hunter meet tiger. Bang! Wreough! Dead' hunter ! Foreign man meet tiger. Bang — click — bang — click — bang ! Dead tiger ! ” Cobblers, coopers, hatters, farriers, blacksmiths, carpenters, masons, joiners, carvers, dyers, tailors, carters, saddlers and all the other handicraftsmen who go to make up the industrial army of a complicated civilisation are sufficiently described by their names. It might be well to add that the tools which these men use are of the most primitive kind. Every native nail is hammered out by hand. Every yard of twine is twisted by hand. This is what insures the growth of foreign commerce, for an American firm can place nails on the Korean market 276 THE PASSING OF KOREA at a price which throws the native product completely in the shade. It is this progressive displacement of native labour which stirs up these people and makes them question the value of their former conservatism. GAMES Korea is no exception to the rule that the various nations of the world develop peculiar and distinctive forms of amuse- ment. There are some forms that all have in common, but there are others that have only to be mentioned and the hearer places them at once. Of such are cricket, base-ball, curling, bull-fighting, skiing and lacrosse. Korea also has its own pet diversion — stone-fights. This amusement is something of an anomaly, for Koreans are natur- ally the mildest and most inoffensive of people; but one has only to spend the first month of the year here to learn that the people are as passionately fond of this dangerous sport as Americans are of base-ball. The fact that these fights occur only in the first month of the year illustrates the general fact that in no country is the periodicity of sports more marked than here. There is a special season for stone-fights, kite-flying, pitch-penny, swinging, top- spinning and the like. The reason why the stone-fights occur only in spring is becai:se then only are the fields bare and ample space is available for the contest. After the winter has kept the Korean imprisoned for three long months in the cramped quar- ters of his little thatched hut, the touch of spring means much more to him than it does to us, who live in comparatively spa- cious houses. His dormant physical energy^ awakes to new life, and he simply must come out and romp over the hills, open the safety-valve and give vent to his repressed faculties. The stone-fight originated seven hundred years ago, in the days of the former dynasty, when it was invented for the delectation of an imbecile King. It was at first confined to the palace KOREAN INDUSTRIES 2/7 grounds, but it soon spread abroad and became the national game. Different sections of the same town may be pitted against each other, but more often contiguous villages defy each other and fly the banner of challenge. Out they pour into the empty, fenceless fields, some armed with thick clubs and protected by heavy padded helmets, while others merely throw stones. The champions of either side prance up and down before their respective factions, twirling their clubs and breathing out threat- enings and slaughter. Stones begin to fly, most of them falling short of the mark, and the rest being deftly dodged. After the two warring factions have reinforced their courage by streams of most libellous invective, and have worked themselves up to the fighting pitch, they move toward each other warily, the stones fly more thickly, the champions prance more vaingloriously. Meanwhile the multitudes of white-clothed non-combatants, who cover the surrounding hills, shout encouragement to their respective favourites. The champions gradually close with each other and give and receive sounding thwacks on the head or shoulder, while over them the stones fly thick and fast. Sud- denly a deafening yell goes up from one side and a wild charge is made. The opposite side gives way, and it looks as if the day were won, but as soon as the first ardour of the pursuit is over the fugitives turn and make a counter-charge. Unlucky is the wight who is overtaken before he gains the thick of his own ranks again. And so it goes on by the hour, rush and counter- rush, wild shoutings of delighted spectators, clouds of dust, broken pates, profanity unlimited and gruesome gaps where erstwhiles were gleaming teeth. The excitement is much the same as that of the Spanish bull-fight, and the same fierce, ele- mental passions are let loose in participants and spectators alike. Rarely does a season pass but three or four men are killed in these encounters, but if the excitement runs too high the police or gendarmes are likely to interfere. In the heat of action houses are sometimes razed, but as a usual thing the fight 2/8 THE PASSING OF KOREA results only in bruised arms, broken heads and unlimited invec- tive. The heaviest traffic on the electric tramway is when the crowds go out of the city gates to watch these stone-fights. One day last year thirty-four thousand people were carried, a num- ber twice as large as the average. It would be safe to say that in the environs of Seoul twenty-five thousand persons witnessed the fights that day. Kite-flying is a national institution here as in China and Japan. The kites are not so elaborate as in the neighbouring countries, but the interest in the sport is fully as great, for there are what may be called kite-fights that are very exciting. By dextrous manipulation the rival kite-fliers get their strings crossed. Then comes the contest of pure skill, to see which can saw the string of the other in two first. You see the tiny kites high in the air darting this way and that, seemingly with- out rhyme or reason, but all the time their owners are manceu- vring for position, just as rival yachtsmen do in our own land. When one of them thinks that the right moment has arrived, he makes his kite dash across the path of the other and clinch in the final struggle. Sooner or later one of the strings is cut, and the liberated kite floats away on the breeze, followed by a crowd of eager boys. The kites, though scientifically con- structed, cost but very little, but the cord must be of the finest, and it must be smeared with a kind of paste mixed with pul- ^'erised glass. This makes it better able to saw the other cord in two. The next most popular amusement is pitch-penny, at which all the boys play “ for keeps.” A shallow hole is scraped in the liard earth beside the road, and the first player stands off ten feet or more and pitches half a dozen coins at the hole. Any that lodge in it are his ; but there is more to do. The other boy indicates which of the thrown coins he is to hit with a leaden disc, which is used for this purpose. The player throws, and if he hits that particular coin, all are his, but if he misses, the other boy takes his turn. This too is a spring sport, and at that season AN ARCHERY TOURNAMENT KOREAN INDUSTRIES 2/9 you will frequently see two lines of interested spectators watch- ing intently to see some skilful thrower make a good shot down the narrow alley between them. On the great festival of the fifth day of the fifth moon Koreans give themselves up to the delights of swinging. Some- times the lofty branch of a pine-tree is used, but more often two great poles are erected for the purpose. These are held in place by guys, and are variously ornamented. The Koreans are adventurous swingers, and accidents are not infrequent. The rough straw ropes break sooner or later, and someone gets a nasty fall, which terminates the sport for that season. Girls take pleasure in a sort of see-saw on the 15th of the first month. This is not the same as ours. The board is only six or seven feet long and is laid over a fulcrum only five inches high. The girls stand on the ends and jump up and down, the impact of each throwing the other several feet into the air. They would not be able to preserve their equilibrium except for a strong cord, like a clothes-line, over their heads, to which they cling. On this same festival there are mighty tugs- of-war in the country villages. The ropes are huge hawsers, eight or ten inches thick, and upwards of a hundred feet long. The village turns out en masse, men, women and children, and pull until they are exhausted. This always takes place at night under the full moon. In the autumn and winter the favourite sport of the young men is a sort of battledore and shuttlecock. The shuttlecock is a cash piece wrapped in paper, the latter being twisted into a tail which makes the shuttlecock always fall properly. Strangely enough, the Koreans use the side of the foot for a battledore, and to unaccustomed eyes it looks ridiculous enough to see two men hopping about on one foot, trying to keep the shuttlecock in the air. This is a purely Korean development of this game. They are very fond of trying feats of strength in what they call “ arm wrestling.” The two contestants sit down at a table and place their elbows squarely upon it. Then they grasp each 28 o THE PASSING OF KOREA other’s thumbs, and each man tries to bend the arm of the other over backward until it touches the table. This is a genuine and severe test of strength, as anyone will discover by trying it. Hide-and-seek and blind-man’s-buff are common, and little girls go about with wooden or rag dolls strapped to their backs like true babies. Jack-stones, fox-and-geese, cat’s cradle and other juvenile games are also played. As for sedentary games, the chief places are occupied by chess and padok. In a very general way their chess resembles ours, but the board is somewhat different, and the rules are so changed that knowledge of one method does not help in playing the other. The game of padok is far more difficult than either Korean or European chess. It consists in enclosing spaces on a wide go-bang board with white and black discs. The fore- sight and the mathematical ability required to play this game successfully are astonishing. It is a Chinese invention, and surely does credit to its inventor. Poe says that the game of draughts requires a higher quality of mind than chess, but padok, while requiring the same kind of skill as draughts, is probably ten times as difficult. For gambling purposes Koreans use dominoes and “ cards,” the latter being made of stiff oiled paper half an inch wide and eight inches long. Coolies on the street coi'ners, waiting for a job, while away the time playing a game that is a cross between backgammon and fox-and-geese, scratching the necessary lines on the hard earth in lieu of a “ board.” If you see half a dozen heads together, 'you will know that a game is in progress, and that the stakes are high, perhaps even five cents. As each man throws the dice, he gives his thigh a resounding slap. This is supposed to bring luck, just as we have seen people in more enlightened lands murmur fond entreaties into the dice-box before throwing. These are, of course, not all the games Koreans play, but they are the commonest and most distinctive. CHAPTER XX DOMESTIC AND FOREIGN TRADE U NTIL recent years the currency of Korea was only the unwieldy cash, and this had much to do in pre- serving the immemorial custom of barter. Even to-day this form of trade has by no means ceased, and many Koreans still look upon rice or cotton or linen as legal tender. We have already explained that in the country there are stated places where periodical markets are held. There are but few Koreans who cannot find one of these chang within ten miles of their homes. As a rule, these are held once in five days ; but there are many special markets for special objects. Almost every Korean product has its special season. The agricultural products are naturally more in evidence in the summer and autumn. Almost all farmers add to their income by some sort of handicraft during the winter, and the products of such work are on sale during the winter and spring months. For long centuries there existed a Peddlers’ Guild, composed of thousands of men throughout the country who travelled on foot with packs on their backs, and peddled their goods from house to house. They had regular circuits, and their organi- sation was quite complete. In later times this guild fell into decay, and was superseded by a gang of evil men who were used by corrupt officials to do questionable work. They were not peddlers, and the unsavoury reputation of the “ Peddlers’ Guild ” should not attach to the genuine peddlers. It was mainly throvtgh the markets and the peddlers that domestic trade was carried on in the country. In the great centres ordinary shops were common, and almost every com- modity was handled by a separate guild. The freemasonry of 282 THE PASSING OF KOREA trade reached extensive bounds. Many of these guilds were, and are, incipient or partial insurance companies, and loss by fire or death became a matter of mutual aid. These guilds were taxed, not regularly, but as occasion might demand. Whenever some sudden pressure was put on the royal household for money, a draft upon the guilds was always honoured. Korean shops are of two kinds, open and closed ! The ordi- nary shop is hardly more than a stall, open directly upon the street, where the purchaser can pick up and examine almost any article in stock. The larger merchants, however, who handle silks, cotton, linen, grass-cloth, shoes and certain other goods, have nothing whatever on view. You enter and ask for what you want, and it is brought forth from the storeroom or closet. This seems very strange to foreigners, who always want to com- pare and select their goods. Often enough a truculent merchant, after showing one shade of silk, will refuse to show more, and say that if this is not what you want he has nothing that will suit you. You are expected to state exactly what you want, and when that is produced and examined, the price alone is expected to require consideration. Shopping in Korea is not reckoned one of the joys of life, as is so often the case in the West. When ladies of the upper class wish to make purchases of silk or other goods, they send out and have the merchants bring the goods to their residences. All foreigners who are aware of the peculiarities of the Korean merchants do likewise. The great merchant houses in Seoul have no shop-signs whatever, but instead of this they have runners or agents on the street who solicit the attention of the passer-by and ask him to come in and look at the goods. The sale and purchase of real estate in large towns is always effected through house-brokers, but fields change hands ^•ery commonly by direct communication between the parties inter- ested. The legal rate of commission to the broker is one per cent of the purchase price of the house, and is paid by the seller. The purchaser furnishes two pounds of tobacco to be consumed AN INTERESTING CHESS PROBLEM DOMESTIC AND FOREIGN TRADE 283 during the progress of negotiations. There is a House-brokers’ Guild, and the name of each member is registered at the mayor’s office. If a broker falsifies the amount demanded by the seller and “ eats ” the extra money, he is very likely to be found out, in which case he will be expelled from the guild and his license will be taken away. The rate of interest is everywhere proportionate to the safety of the investment. For this reason we find that in Korea money ordinarily brings from two to five per cent a month. Good security is generally forthcoming, and so one may well ask why it is so precarious to lend. The answer is not creditable to Korean justice. In case a man has to foreclose a mortgage and enter upon possession of the property he will need the sanction of the authorities, since possession, here as elsewhere, is nine points of the law. The trouble is that a large fraction of the remaining point is dependent upon the caprice or the venality of the official whose duty it is to adjudicate the case. In a land where bribery is almost second nature, and where private rights are of small account unless backed up by some sort of influence, the thwarting of justice is extremely common. And so the best apparent security may prove only a broken reed when the creditor comes to lean upon it. Let us take a concrete case. A man bor- rows a sum of money, giving his house-deed as security. He then makes out a false deed or secures a new one from the Alayor on the plea that the old one is lost. He then sells the house to a third party and leaves for parts unknown. The mortgage becomes due and the mortgagee proceeds to foreclose. It is now a question of which deeds are the right ones. There should be no difficulty in adjudicating the case, but the occupant, having purchased in good faith, is naturally loath to move out. He is willing to put down a neat sum to secure his possession. It all depends upon the character of the official and is no longer a matter of mere jurisprudence. Herein lies the uncertainty. When money is loaned at the minimum rate of two per cent, or in exceptional cases one and a half per cent a month, the 284 THE PASSING OF KOREA borrower, besides giving security, generally gets some well- known and reliable merchant to endorse the note. As this mer- chant cannot afford to have his credit brought in question, the chances of loss are very small. Considering the great inequality in commercial ethics here, the Koreans trust each other in a really remarkable manner. The aggregate of money placed in trust is very large. The average Korean would scorn to ask from his friend more than a simple receipt for money turned over in trust, and it is my deliberate conviction that in all but a small fraction of cases the ordinary sense of justice and decency is a far greater deterrent to indi- rection than any legal restraints could possibly be. Foreign commerce has been carried on for many centuries between Korea and the neighbouring countries. It is not true that Korea was first opened to import and export trade during the present generation. Commerce with China has been almost uninterrupted for fifteen hundred years, though it has been carried on in such a quiet way as largely to escape observation. Ginseng, furs and other special products have been regularly marketed in China, and silks, spices and other luxuries have been as regularly imported. The annual embassy to Peking was allowed to engage in trade. On the other side of the peninsula the annual trade with Japan through the single station at Fusan was considerable, and was almost uninterrupted from about 1406 till 1866, and even before the opening of the fifteenth century there must have been some interchange of goods between the two countries, although the Japanese freebooters of the fourteenth century did much to keep the two countries from mutual intercourse. It is a fact to which attention should be specially directed, that before the coming of Roman Catholic emissaries to Korea, and the consequent fear that the foreign religion was a cover for polit- ical designs, this was no more a hermit kingdom than was Japan or China. The efforts which both these other countries made to keep foreigners out were more persistent and more radical than DOMESTIC AND FOREIGN TRADE 285 anything which has occurred in Korea. It is merely the fact that Korean exclusiveness was impinged upon somewhat later in the day that won for her the term “ hermit.” The difficulties encoun- tered in opening up this country to foreign intercourse were nothing compared with those required to secure the acquiescence of either Japan or China to such action. I am prepared to say that the conservatism of the Korean has always been less than that of the Chinese. This is simply a sociological manifestation of the law of inertia. The late regent never cherished a fonder hatred against foreigners than did Prince Tuan, and no Korean ruler of the past, if brought to life, would exterminate them with greater glee than would the present Empress Dowager of China, had she but the ability. * It was between the years 1876 and 1884 that Korea was fully opened to foreign commerce in our western acceptance of the term. From the very first the trade, both import and export, has shown a steady and healthy growth. The Korean was very quick to learn the value of Manchester cottons, American petro- leum and Japanese friction matches, and now all these and many other products of other countries find their way to the remotest parts of the peninsula. This import trade owes very much to the excellent way in which the Customs has been handled. From the very first it has been in English hands. One has only to look at Turkey to see how different the status of foreign trade might be in Korea had the customs duties been collected by Korean or by any other Far Eastern people. It was a sad day for this country when the English hand was removed from the helm in favour of the Japanese. We can here give only the briefest sketch of the export and import trade of the country. The minutiae are of interest only to the statistician. For the past four years the value of the exports has averaged, in round numbers, $4,000,000. This does not include gold bullion, which has been about $2,500,000 a year. The goods exported are, in order of their value, beans, rice, ^86 THE PASSING OF KOREA cowhides, ginseng, raw cotton, fish, whale flesh and blubber, paper, sea-weed and barley. Other things which figure promi- nently are beche-de-mer, bones, cattle, feathers, mats, medicines, millet, oysters, sesamum, raw silk, tallow, tobacco, wheat, copper, curios and grass-cloth. The value of foreign imports in 1901 and 1902 was about the same, namely, about $3,750,000; for 1903 it was $5,750,000, and for 1904 it was $8,800,000. The great increase in 1904 was due to the import of $2,000,000 worth of railway material for use in the construction of the new lines. Then, in order of value, come English and American gray shirtings, Japanese sheetings, Jap- anese miscellaneous cotton goods, Japanese thread and yarn, silk piece goods, tobacco, English and American sheetings, American petroleum, English and American white shirtings, rice, clothing, provisions, timber and sake. After these come figured shirtings, cotton reps, bar and other iron, galvanised iron sheeting, bags and ropes, building materials, coal, raw cotton, cotton wadding, dyes, fish, flour, fruit, grain, grass-cloth, wines and spirits, matches, medicines, mining supplies, Russian petroleum, paper, porcelain, salt, soy, sugar and telegraph and telephone supplies. Up to the present time both the import and export trade have suffered for lack of facilities for transportation in the interior; but the railroads that are being rapidly constructed will help to overcome this difficulty, and foreign commerce ought to receive a decided impetus. Of late years, Japanese textile fabrics have been competing successfully with the English and American, and bid fair in time to displace them even as Japanese matches have displaced the Austrian product. This readjustment of the sources of Korea's foreign supplies is the most prominent feature of the commercial situation to-day. There seems to be a natural fitness in the mutual interchange of raw material and finished product between the two countries, and tliere is every sign that Japan will foster and conserve this growing reciprocity by every means in her power. If American cotton goods are to compete with Japanese SWINGING DOMESTIC AND FOREIGN TRADE 287 here, it must be because better goods are offered at the same price or the same goods at a lower price. This supposes other things to be equal, but in fact other things are not equal. An army of Japanese small retailers covering the country like a network, unable to speak or read any language but their own, and con- nected intimately with Japanese sources of supply, make it certain that Japanese goods will be handled unless some very strong consideration intervenes of a distinctly pecuniary nature. There is a single American firm in Korea handling general goods, but it is particularly interested only in petroleum and rice. In other words, America enjoys only the very smallest facilities for com- mercial contact with Korea. Our merchants hardly need to be told that much more enters into successful trade competition than the mere quality and price of goods. They must be properly exhibited, advertised and placed before the public. The personal equation enters largely into the problem, and under existing con- ditions it is only a matter of time when the great staples of American commerce will be known here only by name. There is to-day a magnificent opening for any firm that will import Oregon pine into Korea by sailing-vessel or other cheap method of transportation. All planing and moulding is here done by hand at great expense. Planed and matched flooring would have large and lucrative sale. We say this to indicate only one of a large number of favourable openings that might be entered by enterprising people. The large and steady influx of Japanese must continue for years, and building operations which are being carried on with feverish energy will call for increasing quan- tities of material from abroad, especially timber. If Americans want to participate in this trade, they should enter the field and secure a footing before the commercial flux has crystallised. CHAPTER XXI MONUMENTS AND RELICS I N a country whose legendary history stretches back four thousand years, one would expect to find many monuments and relics of the past, and in Korea we are not disappointed. None of these take the form of buildings in which men lived or worshipped. The style of architecture of the whole Far East is of a kind that does not last beyond a few hundred years without undergoing such extensive repairs as to constitute a virtual rebuilding of the edifice. So, while we will not look for any temples like those of ancient Eg>^pt, we will not despair of finding other remains of almost equal antiquity. The oldest monument in Korea, so far as we can ascertain, is the Altar of Tangun, erected on the very summit of the highest peak on the island of Kangwha, j\Iari-san. The Tangun is the fabled King who began his rule in Korea over two thousand years before Christ. He is supposed to have erected this altar whereon to worship his own divine father, Whanin. It is impos- sible to guarantee the genuineness of the tradition ; but sure it is that all down through the recorded histoiy of the country we read that at intervals of about a century money has been appro- priated for the repair of this most ancient relic. Its immense age is beyond question. It consists of a walled enclosure thirty feet square, perched upon the sharp point of the bare, rocky mountain peak. On one side of the enclosure rises the altar, about sixteen feet square and eight feet high, the ascent to the top being accomplished by means of a stone stairway. The founda- tion stones and the first few courses give evidence of extreme age. They are as moss-grown and seamed by time as the native rock of the mountain from which they seem to grow. The upper MONUMENTS AND RELICS 289 courses are apparently of more recent structure, and yet old com- pared with O'Ur most venerable European structures. Only the top itself has apparently been restored during the past five cen- turies. Standing upon this altar-crowned summit, as the ocean wind drives the clouds across the serrated tops of the rugged range one tries to imagine himself back in the days of Abraham, when Tangun stood by and directed the building of this heaven- touching altar, and the flames leaped high about his burning hecatombs. The mind faints in the effort to grasp the meaning of four thousand years. Not even China herself, that synonym of Cyclopean age, can show as ancient and authentic a memento of the past. Near this altar, but on another spur of the mountain, is the walled fortress supposed to have been built by the three sons of Tangun. It is occupied to-day by a Buddhist monastery, show- ing how the magpie may inherit the eagle’s nest. Here it was that the Korean tiger-hunters congregated at the time the French landed on Korean soil in 1866, and it was from these ancient battlements that they drove back what they supposed to be the mortal enemies of their fatherland. In the town of Kangdong in the north, there is a mound four hundred and ten feet in circumference, which is believed to contain all that is mortal of that first great ruler, Tangun. In Munwha there is a shrine to the Korean trinity, Whanin, Whanung and Tangun, the first being the creator, the second his son, and the third his earthly incarnation. Our interest in the story is enhanced by the fact that he came to earth in the form of a wind, and was incarnated through the medium of a virgin. Compared with Tangun, Kija seems almost modern, though in truth he antedated David of Israel. The site of his ancient capital is pointed out beside the modern city of Pyeng-yang, and before the Chinese tore it up for breastworks in the war of 1894, the situation of the streets of that capital were plainly seen, marked out on the plain with almost the regularity of a Western American town. In the middle of it is Kija’s Well, believed to 290 THE PASSING OF KOREA have been dug at his command. Koreans affirm that a jar of its Avaters weighs a pound more than a similar amount of water from any other well in the land. The modern city has no wells at all, because the people have the notion that the city is like a boat, and that to dig a well would scuttle the craft. The illusion is made the more complete by a great stone post set in the bank of the Tadong River above the town, for to this post the boat is supposed to be moored. Near the city is found the grave of Kija with its stone images set about like guardian beasts, and there is a tablet partly defaced which claims to date from that ancient time. Coming south to the site of the capital of ancient Silla, the modern town of Kyong-ju, we find multiplied relics of the remote past, for even Silla began before the coming of Christ and reached her prime before the days of Constantine the Great. Near this ancient town we find a numerous cluster of huge mounds, each the mausoleum of a King of Silla. They will be found to be several hundred feet in circumference and about seventy-five feet high. If we should dig into one of them, we should probably find the ashes of the dead King flanked on either side by that of a young maiden, who was compelled to drink the bitter cup of death before her time in order to grace the obsequies of a monarch. This we know by inference, for one of the later Kings gave specific orders that at his death no people should be killed. It is recorded that when the Japanese invaded Korea in 1592 they dug open the grave of one of the rulers of Karak, contemporaneous with Silla, and found the bodies of two females lying on either side the King. They appeared to have been embalmed, for we are told that when they were exposed to air they rapidly disintegrated. A few rods outside the modern town is found a pavilion, beneath which hangs one of the largest bells in the world. It was cast over fourteen hundred years ago, before the pride of Silla began to decay. In measurement it equals the great bell in Moscow, but is not so heavy. On the other hand, it still hangs from its great STONE DOG, GUARDIAN OF PALACE AGAINST FIRE 9 MONUMENTS AND RELICS 291 beam and rings out its summons as deep and clear as the day" on which it was cast. In a sense this is the most interesting and remarkable relic in Korea, for it makes us take so many other things for granted. The ability to mine the ore, smelt it, make the mould, cast the bell without a flaw and hang it in its place — this ability, I say, argues a high degree of civilisation. I doubt whether such a work could be accomplished by the Koreans to-day with success. Another relic of that civilisation is an ancient stone tower some twenty feet high, shaped like a monster bottle. This was the astronomical observatory of ancient Silla, and its shape may perhaps be explained on the theory that it was like a well from whose depths one could look up and see the stars even during the day. Of the great Golden Pagoda, the splendid product of Buddhism in its lusty youth, nothing now remains but the twO' lower stories. An examination of this wreck, however, will show us many evidences of artistic skill. One of these is seen in the battered bas-reliefs which flank the door. One of these has a halo like one of the old-time Christian saints. The date of this, as of the observatory, must be about 500 a. d. On the eastern coast of Korea there is a stone slab inscribed with Chinese characters, which was set up by a certain prefect in order to prevent the sea from flooding a wide alluvial plain. It was supposed to have some influence upon the spirit of the sea. A later prefect scoffed at it and threw it down. The very next season a disastrous tidal wave swept over the plain, destroy- ing many lives and ruining an incalculable amount of property. The sacrilegious prefect was driven out, and the stone set up again, since which time there has been no more trouble! In the far north one can still find remnants of a mighty wall that was built clear across the peninsula, from the Yellow Sea to the Japan Sea, to keep out the wild barbarians which made sudden and sanguinary raids upon the peaceful citizens of Koryu. That was seven or eight centuries ago. All through the country there are scores of walled enclosures on the tops of 292 THE PASSING OF KOREA rugged mountains near important towns. These are relics of the days when the incursions of wild tribes made it necessary to have places of refuge at hand, where all the people could hasten in times of distress. Some of these are extremely old. One near Chemulpo is reputed to date from the beginning of our era. Just outside the wall of Songdo, the ancient capital of Koryu, is shown a small stone bridge on which the loyal Chong Mong-ju was slain. He was faithful to the closing dynasty, and had to be put out of the way before the new one could be firmly estab- lished. On the central stone of this bridge is seen to-day a great brown blotch, which turns to a dull red in the rain, and the Koreans affirm that it is the blood of that loyal man. Korea is filled with Buddhistic relics. There is hardly a district that does not have its monastery tucked away among the foot-hills of the mountains, and in some districts there are a dozen or more. On Kwanak Mountain alone there are said to be fourteen. They are all in more or less of a moribund condi- tion, and monasteries that once boasted their hundreds of vota- ries now have half a dozen or less. One in the south was so large that the Koreans affirm that in order to stir the big kettle in which the monks’ food was cooked a man had to go out in a raft upon it. We must make allowance for a vivid imagination here, but there is proof at hand that some of their monastery kettles were immense. To-day there lies in the ditch beside the road near the town of Kyong-ju a kettle that was once the main culinary utensil of a monastery. It measures over thirty feet in circumference, a clear ten feet across the mouth. One would need long arms to stir this in the middle. As a rule the most beautiful views in Korea are in the vicinity of the monasteries, for they are always surrounded by fine trees. Not a few of them are built in the midst of grand forests of deciduous trees, where the foreigner goes when he wishes to hunt. They are the retreat of deer, wild boar and leopards. The most famous mon- asteries in Korea are those in Diamond ^Mountain, a cluster of MONUMENTS AND RELICS 293 peaks near the central eastern part of the peninsula. They are celebrated even in China, and thousands of pilgrims have sought for merit by dragging their weary limbs all the way to this holy place. Arriving at the foot of the mountains, on the west side the traveller has to dispense with his pony and go on foot or in a rude chair carried by two men. One foreign traveller describes it as a very rough road, over which one has to pass by jumping the crevices in the rocks or walking across on a single stick of wood for a bridge. He says there were “ rocks around which one has to wind his way by clinging to their irregularities for fear of falling into the stream below, rocks over which the water roars and falls in beautiful cataracts; rocks covered with the Chinese names of visitors who had passed that way, these carved names forming the only foothold on the slippery surface; rocks which the monks have rendered passable only by drilling holes, driving pegs and laying logs above them; rocks on which are perched little shrines or on which are carved huge bas-reliefs of Buddhas ninety feet high and thirty feet broad at the base; and above all the towering cliffs and peaks of the parent mountain.” Several flourishing monasteries are passed on the way up the steep valley, for here, if nowhere else. Buddhism seems to have some show of vitality left. After a long, steep climb the summit of the range is passed, and below this the traveller comes to the U-cham Monastery. The writer already quoted says, “ Passing the cemetery with its oddly shaped stones, we were shown the pools said to have been the bathing- place of the dragons in olden times. They are nothing but ordi- nary pot-holes. ... In the temple itself there are fifty-three idols, seated upon what is supposed to represent the upturned roots of a tree. Below are three hideous dragons. The story- goes that when the fifty-three monks from India came to intro- duce Buddhism into Korea they came here and sat down beside a wall under a nureum tree. As they sat there, behold, three dragons came out from the well and attacked them. The ani- mals called upon the winds to help them, and a violent gust blew 294 THE PASSING OF KOREA over the tree. The monks, not to be outdone, placed their images of Buddha on the roots of the tree, making an altar of \vhat was intended for their destruction. The dragons were finally driven back into the well, upon which the monks piled stones and later built the monastery and temple. In proof of the story the monks show the place further down the hill where the water from the well flows out. These are probably the same dragons that bathe in the pools mentioned above. In the morning a young monk took me on a tour of inspection, and I had a good opportunity to see the occupants of a first-class monasterj’^ in their private apartments. These consisted of a large living room and a number of cells just large enough to lie down in. All were very clean. Each cell contained the shrine of its occu- pant. They all seemed to be studying industriously, and they apparently lived a happ}', peaceful life compared with that of the ordinary Korean. This is, however, only their place of refuge, and each must seek the means of support by pilgrimages over rough Korean roads and through dirty Korean towns, where he receives ‘ low talk ’ from the very slaves, and begs for a living. Some probably have rich relatives who help them liberally.” It is also true that many of these most celebrated monasteries have broad rice-lands, which are tilled for them by the farmers in the vicinity, the latter receiving part of the crop in payment. So far as my observation goes, there are ^•ery few monasteries that depend entirely upon charity for support. There are all sorts of ceremonies which the people are willing to pay for, such as prayers for the dead. The common people make no special distinction between the Buddhist rites and those of the despised mudang and pausu. The social level of the monk is little if any higher than that of the pausu, and it depends entirely upon the fancy of the petitioner whether he patronises the one or the other. Of course the temple with its curious carvings, its dim corners and its weird paintings adds impressiveness to the ceremony, and also adds to the price that must be paid. It is the wealthier class that patronise the monastery, not because of A BOUNDARY STONE The “rubbing” of a tablet which marked the north limit of the ancient kingdom of Silla MONUMENTS AND RELICS 295 any difference in religious belief, but because of the added eclat of the ceremony.. The discussion of Korean relics would be incomplete without a reference, to the curious structures which are found in various parts of the north, and to which we give the name dolmen for want of a better. One of these consists of two huge stones set on edge to form the opposite sides of an enclosure, and across the top is laid another. The upper stone is a veritable monolith, being often fifteen feet square and two feet thick. The space enclosed is about eight feet long, five feet wide and five feet high, and the most natural conclusion is that it must be some form of sepulture; but, though the back of the space is some- times closed with a stone, the front is always open, nor have any bones been found in any of them. There is not a word about these curious monuments in Korean history, and the only ex- planation that the people give is that they were built long ago to keep back the powers of the mountains, who would otherwise invade the lowlands. These stones are always partially covered with earth, and there is no doubt that originally they were entirely covered. They are often found in the midst of wide plains, and the imagination is taxed to account for the method by which those rude people moved the huge stones from the hills to their present places. I incline strongly to the opinion that they are very ancient graves, in spite of the fact that no bones are found; for even in the Koryu graves, which are quite authentic and from which so much rude pottery is taken, no bones are found, not even the skull. This shows that six or seven hundred years will suffice to cause a complete disintegra- tion of human bones, at least in Korean soil. These dolmens are much more ancient than any Koryu grave, and the argument is so much the more conclusive. Much still remains to be done by way of excavation and examination of these relics, but the Koreans are so superstitious that little can be done at present. All about the country there are enormous carved figures, which the Koreans call miryok. Some of them are Buddhas, 296 THE PASSING OF KOREA but not all. It was doubtless in the Koryu dynasty, the palmy days of Buddhism, that money was forthcoming to carry out these costly works. The great statue in the town of Eunjin stands seventy feet high or more, and the great slab of stone on its head measures some twelve feet in length. Between Seoul and Songdo two great rock figures look down upon the traveller from the heights. One is a male figure and the other a female, and whether they are distinctly Buddhistic or not has never been settled. Korean fancy weaves the most curious stories about these images. The ones last referred to are said to have been carved by a wealthy gentleman of the neighbourhood who was so troubled by beggars, whose solicitations he had not the heart to repulse, that he begged someone to tell him how he could secure peace. An aged stranger passing by told him if he would carve the two rocks, that stood up like needles near his house, into the shape of a man and a woman, he would never be troubled by beggars again. He hastened to comply, but before he had finished he found that his own wealth was exhausted, and he discovered too late that this was the reason why beggars would trouble him no more. A still more romantic tale is told of a great miryok in the south. A needy but ambitious gentleman was tramping up to Seoul to take the national examination. He found this great image in the heart of a forest, and from a fissure in its head he perceived a pear-tree to be growing. On the tree hung a pear as large as a man’s head. If he could secure it and take it as a gift to the King, his fortune would be made. He climbed up the lofty image by means of the bushes and vines that grew about it until he reached the lips, but there was no way to get over the huge nose that hung out over him. He determined to crawl up one of the nostrils, hoping to find a way through to the top; so he wormed his way up with knees and elbows till he reached the point where the nostril contracts. At this instant he was terrified by a great shaking of the image, and an instant later a howling blast came down the passage and swept him out, as he confidently expected, to his doom. The The upper picture shows the great stone Buddha at Eunjin. The lower picture presents the “Devil Post” on right and pile of stones in centre, on which each traveller throws one more “for luck.” On extreme left is a bush to which rags, cash, fish-heads, and other things are tied to please the spirits SYMBOLS OF KOREA’S RELIGION MONUMENTS AND RELICS 297 god had sneezed ! Why had he not thought of this contingency ? He fell into the thick bushes and lost consciousness, but recov- ered later, only to find, to his joy, that the same cataclysm which had hurled him down had also dislodged the pear, which lay at his feet. He took it to Seoul, and by its help reached that Mecca of all Koreans, official position. But besides the genuine relics that may be found in Korea, there are a host of others that exist in the imagination of the people and exercise a powerful influence upon their thought. For instance, there is the jade flute, which is supposed to be kept at Kyong-ju in the archives of ancient Silla, and which cannot be played upon if it is taken to any other place. So firmly do the Koreans believe in this flute that they say the late regent had it brought up to Seoul, and that the present Emperor, when a boy, accidentally broke it. The regent is said to have mended it with a silver band. It is thus that the Koreans weave about the most impossible tales a web of circumstance, giving them a certain verisimilitude that might easily deceive the unin- itiated. There is also the celebrated medicine stone in Pochun, which was once polished as smooth as glass, and if anyone looked into this as into a mirror he would discover from what disease he was suffering. The Koreans firmly believe that somewhere in one of the old palaces in Seoul there lie three hundred dried-up skins of Japanese unmarried females. These, they say, were ex- acted as an indemnit}^ from the Japanese at the end of the great invasion of 1592. The story is that the Japanese were compelled to agree to send this number every year, but that after the first year the Koreans out of pity remitted the tribute. There is about as much sense in this statement as there is in the claim put forth by the Japanese that Korea ever paid tribute to that kingdom. It looks as if the story of these skins was invented as an offset to the fact that the Japanese sent thousands of Korean noses and ears to Japan during the days of that inva- sion. The falsity of the Korean story does them more credit than the truth of the Japanese story does the Japanese. 298 THE PASSING OF KOREA The Koreans will tell you that there lies buried in the sands on the southern coast the hull of the famous tortoise boat with which Admiral Yi Sun-sin won his famous naval battles over the Japanese, and Ensign George C. Foulk of the American navy, who was making a trip in southern Korea at the time of the emciite of 1884, told the writer that the remains of a boat were pointed out to him as being the authentic “ tortoise boat." This was of course another case of vivid imagination on the part of the Koreans. It may be that there is more truth in the statement that in the storehouse of the old fortress of Namhan there lies the original mortar which the Koreans invented to throw bombs into the Japanese forts. The story of the inven- tion of this weapon is told in all good faith, and the records say that when it was fired the whole thing leaped over the wall and fell among the Japanese soldiers; and when they crowded around to see what it was, it exploded and destroyed a score of men. It seems clear that they had some sort of weapon resem- bling the bomb and mortar, and if so they may have been the first inventors of it. It is said that there is a cave about thirty miles south of Seoul called “ The Death Cave.” In the days of the great invasion, three centuries ago, about a thousand Koreans took refuge in this place, but the Japanese built a huge fire at its mouth and suffocated them all. Since that time no Korean has ever ventured into the cave for fear of the spirits of the dead. Many questions have been asked about the tombs in which golden-cofiined kings lie, and which the vandal Oppert came to rob in 1867. The Koreans say that Oppert and his crew were friends of the Roman Catholic priests who had been killed here the preceding year, and that Oppert came to rifle the grave of the father of the regent in revenge. This was not true. The expedition was a purely predatory one, and the object of it was to find the gold and treasure that were supposed to lie in the tombs on Tabong Mountain. The amusing thing about it is that these are not royal graves, but merely the place where, MONUMENTS AND RELICS 299 according to immemorial custom, the placentae of royal births have been buried. The writer had a conversation in 1887 with an old man in Nagasaki who had formed one of this expedition, and he corroborated the statement of the Koreans that a heavy and unusual fog hung over the country on that day and pre- vented the carrying out of the plan. Such a powerful impres- sion did this outrage make upon the Koreans that they composed a popular song about it which says ; Yanggukeui chajin aiigd Wheanpong tora deunda. The thick fog of the Westerners Broods over Whean Peak. CHAPTER XXII LANGUAGE T he Korean language belongs to that widely dissemi- nated family to which the term Turanian has been applied. This term is sufficiently indefinite to match the subject, for scholarship has not determined with any degree of exactitude the limits of its dispersion. At its widest reach it includes Turkish, Hungarian, Basque, Lappish, Finnish, Ouigour, Ostiak, Samoiyed, Mordwin, hlanchu, Mongol and the other Tartar and Siberian dialects, Japanese, Korean, Tamil, Telugu, Canarese, Malayalam and the other Dravidian dialects. Malay and a great number of the Polynesian and Australian dialects. It reaches northward along the coast of Asia, through the Philippine Islands and Formosa, and south and east into New Guinea, New Hebrides and Australia. The main point which differentiates this whole family of languages from the Aiyan tongues is the agglutinative principle by which declension and conjugation are effected through the addition of postpositions and suffixes, and not by modification of the stem. In all these different languages the stem of the word remains, as a rule, intact through every form of gram- matical manipulation. That Korean belongs to this family of languages is seen in its strictly agglutinative character. There has been no deviation from this principle. There are no excep- tions. Any typical Korean verb can be conjugated through its thousand different forms without finding the least change in the stem of the word. A comparison of Korean with jManchu discloses at once a family likeness, and at the same time a com- parison of Korean with the Dravidian dialects discloses a still closer kinship. It is an interesting fact that none of the Chinese dialects possess any of the distinctive features of this Turanian LANGUAGE 301 family. Tliere is more similarity between Chinese and English than between Chinese and any of the Turanian languages. In other words, China has been even more thoroughly isolated lin- guistically than she has socially, and the evidence goes to prove that at some period enormously remote, after the original Chinese had effected an entrance into the mighty amphitheatre, between the central Asian mountains on the one hand and the waters of the Pacific on the other, they were surrounded by a sub- sequent race who impinged upon them at every point, and con- quered them more than once, but who never succeeded in leaving a single trace upon their unique and primitive language. This surrounding family was the Turanian, and Korean forms one link in the chain. Korean bears almost precisely the same relation to Chinese that English does to Latin. English has retained its own dis- tinct grammatical structure while drawing an immense number of words from the Romance dialects for purposes of embellish- ment and precision. The same holds true of Korean. She has never surrendered a single point to Chinese grammar, and yet has borrowed largely from the Chinese glossary as convenience or necessity has required. Chinese may be called the Latin of the Far East. For, just as Rome through her higher civilisation lent thousands of words to the semi-savages hovering along her borders, so China has furnished all the surrounding peoples with their scientific, legal, philosophical and religious terminology. The development of Chinese grammar was early checked by the influence of the ideograph, and so she never has had anything to lend her neighbours in the way of superior grammatical inflection. The grammars of Korea and Japan are practically identical, and yet, strange to say, with the exception of the words they have both borrowed from China, their glossaries are remarkably dissimilar. This forms one of the most obscure philological problems of the Far East. The identity in grammatical struc- ture, however, stamps them as sister languages. 302 THE PASSING OF KOREA The study of Korean grammar is rendered interesting by the fact that in the surrounding of China by Turanian peoples Korea forms the place where the two surrounding branches met and completed the circuit. Northern Korea was settled from the north by Turanian people, and southern Korea was settled from the south by Turanian people. It was not until 193 b. c. that each became definitely aware of the presence of the other. At first they refused to acknowledge the relationship, but the fact that, when in 690 a. d. the southern kingdom of Silla assumed control of the whole peninsula, there remained no such line of social cleavage as that which obtained between the English and Normans after 1066, shows that an intrinsic similarity of lan- guage and a similar racial aptitude quickly closed the breach and made Korea the unit that she is to-day. Korean is an agglutinative, polysyllabic language whose development is marvellously complete and symmetrical. A’e find no such long lists of exceptions as those which entangle the student of the Indo-European languages. In Korean as in most of the Turanian languages the idea of gender is ver}?- imperfectly developed, which argues perhaps a lack of imagination. The ideas of person and number are largely left to the context for determination, but in the matter of logical sequence the Korean verb is carried to the extreme of development. The Korean’s keen sense of social distinctions has given rise to a complete system of honorifics whose proper application is essential to a right use of the language. And yet numerous as these may be, their use is so regulated by unwritten law, and there are so few exceptions that they are far easier to master than the personal tenuinations of Indo-European verbs. The grammatical superiority of Korean over many of the Western languages is that while, in the latter, differences of gender, number and person which would usually be perfectly clear from the context are carefully noted, in the Korean these are left to the speaker’s and the hearer’s perspicacity, and atten- tion is concentrated upon a terse and luminous collocation of 1 , I ^ ^ j= bH o c ■ W £ . I ° LANGUAGE 303 ideas, which is often secured in the West only by a tedious circumlocution. The genius of the language has led the Korean to express every possible verbal relation by a separate modal form. The extent to which this has been carried may be shown only by illus- tration. Besides having simple forms to express the different tenses and modes, it also has forms to express all those more delicate verbal relations which in English require a circumlo- cution or the free use of adverbs. For instance, the Korean has a special mode to express the idea of necessity, contingency, surprise, reproof, antithesis, conjunction, temporal sequence, logical sequence, interruption, duration, limit, acquiescence, expostulation, interrogation, promise, exhortation, imprecation, desire, doubt, hypothesis, satisfaction, propriety, concession, intention, decision, probability, possibility, prohibition, simul- taneity, continuity, repetition, infrequency, hearsay, agency, con- tempt, ability. Each one of these ideas can be expressed in connection with any active verb by the simple addition of one or more inseparable suffixes. By far the greater number of these suffixes are monosyllabic. To illustrate the delicate shades of thought that can be expressed by the use of a suffix let us take the English expression, “ I was going along the road, when suddenly — ” This, without anything more, implies that the act of going was suddenly inter- rupted by some unforeseen circumstance. All this would be expressed in Korean by the three words naga kile kataga. The first means “ I,” the second means “ along the road,” and the third means “ was going, when suddenly — ” The stem of the verb is ka, and the ending, taga, indicates the interruption of the action. And what is more to the point, this ending has abso- lutely no other use. It is reserved solely for the expression of this shade of thought. Again, on the same stem we have the word kalka, in which the ending ka gives all the meaning that we connote in the expression, “ I wonder whether he will really go or not.” If, in answer to the question whether you are going 304 THE PASSING OF KOREA or not you say simply kana, it means, “ What in the world would I be going for? Absurd! ” Another thing which differentiates Korean from the lan- guages of the West is the difference between “book langyiage ” and “ spoken language.” Many grammatical forms are common to both, but there are also many in each that are not found in the other. The result is extremely unfortunate, for no conversation can be written down verhatirn; it must all be changed into book language. This fact is probably due to Chinese influence, and it is but one of the ways in which that influence acted as a drag upon Korean intellectual development. I would not belittle the enormous debt that Korea owes to China, but some of her gifts had been better ungiven. None of these endings are borrowed from the Chinese language, but as Korea had practically no liter- ature before Chinese influence led up to it, it was inevitable that certain endings should be reserved for the formal language of books, while others were considered good enough onl}'^ to be bandied from mouth to’ mouth. It is of course impossible to say what sort of a literature Korea would have evolved had she been left to herself, but one thing is sure; it would have been much more spontaneous and lifelike than that which now obtains. Korean has no dialects. There are different brogpies, and a Seoul man can generally detect by a man’s speech from what province he comes; but it would be wide of the truth to assert that Koreans from any part of the country could not readily understand each other. There are some few words that are peculiar to particular provinces, but for the most part these are mutually known, just as the four words “ guess,” “ reckon,” “ allow ” and “ calculate,” while peculiar in a certain sense to particular sections of America, are universally understood. No people have followed more implicitly nature’s law in the matter of euphony. The remarkable law of the convertibility of surds and sonants has been worked out to its ultimate results in this language. The nice adjustment of the organs of speech, whereby conflicting sounds are so modified as to blend harmoni- LANGUAGE 305 ously, is one of the unconscious Korean arts. The euphonic tendency has not broken down the languages, as is sometimes the case. Prof. Max Muller speaks of a law of phonetic decay, but in Korea it would be better called the law of phonetic adjust- ment. Korean is characterised by a large number of mimetic words. As their colours are drawn directly from nature, so their words are often merely phonetic descriptions. The Korean language is eminently adapted for public speak- ing. It is a sonorous, vocal language. They have grasped the idea that the vowel is the basis of all human speech. The sibi- lant element is far less conspicuous than in Japanese, and one needs only to hear a public speech in Japanese and one in Korean to discover the great advantage which the latter enjoys. The lack of all accent in Japanese words is a serious drawback to oratory. There is nothing in Korean speech that makes it less adapted to oratory than English or any other Western tongue. In common with the language of Cicero or Demosthenes, Korean is composed of periodic sentences, each one reaching its climax in the verb which is usually the final word, and there are no weak- ening addenda which so often make the English sentence an anti- climax. In this respect the Korean surpasses English as a medium of public speaking. CHAPTER XXIII LITERATURE J UST as Korea and China have a very high moral standard that they never even pretend to live up to, so each of these countries has the utmost regard for literature, while all the time the common people are grossly illiterate. Both morals and literature have gone to seed, and we much fear the seeds are not fertile. The Chinese character possesses a certain hypnotic power which it exercises in A'arying degree upon every- one who acquires a smattering of it. It can be proved to a cer- tainty that this character is a most cumbersome and unscientific affair so far as being a medium for the acquisition of actual knowledge is concerned. No one dare deny that it stands like a stumbling-block in the path of general education throughout the Far East, and yet almost every foreigner who acquires a modicum of it becomes so enamoured of it that he is unwilling to see it laid aside for some system which will make the vast range of human knowledge accessible to the masses of these countries. The tens of thousands of characters which form the written lan- guage of China are a wonderful mosaic which has been built up during thousands of years, so that if anyone once gets the key to it the mere etymological study, irrespective of positive and useful intellectual results, is almost irresistibly fascinating. While the process by which this system has been built up appears to have followed certain general laws, yet the divergences and exceptions have been so many and so great that in the acquisition of a knowledge of them memory alone seems to be required. All sorts of methods have been devised whereby foreigners can acquire the Chinese character with facility, but it is much to be doubted whether they are any better than the method in use in LITERATURE 307 Korea and China for the last two or three thousand years; namely, to memorize them one after the other without regard to similarity of shape or sound. In the last analysis it comes to a matter of pure memory, and the antipodal character of the methods which have been devised to make it easy shows that such attempts are largely futile. The excessive use of the mem- ory in the learning of the mere shapes of the characters has a deadening effect upon the purely ratiocinative faculty. This is evidenced in the very character of Chinese and Korean literature. Historical narrative of the baldest kind, without any attempt to generalise, holds a most conspicuous place. In the West the historian analyses the material which historical records put in his hands ; he searches for the causes of things, and frequently epitomises the salient features of a whole era in a few sentences. Such a thing as this is absolutely unknown in the dusty annals of the Far East. The scientific ability to deduce principles from mere statements of historical fact seems to have been ut- terly adumbrated. In his poetry the Korean is hampered rather than helped by the character. A large part of his effort is expended in the nice balancing of characters with reference to their sound, just as if a Western poet were to consider rhyiue,, assonance and alliteration the main elements of true poetry. And yet it must be confessed that the character has had a less dele- terious effect upon the poetical faculty than upon the logical. It may be said with considerable truth that the whole liter- ature of Korea, as of China, is history and belles letfres. The practical side of life is hardly touched upon. To be sure, there are countless aphorisms, and moral essays of an academic char- acter are most common, but these in their practical bearing on the Chinese or Korean mind are no more than mere polite litera- ture, and are always perused as such. As for scientific literature, the government now and again publishes a ponderous work in a score of volumes on some subject like farming, astronomy, medicine or law. A few wealthy gentle- men and officials can afford to secure a copy, but as for practical 3o8 THE PASSING OF KOREA use by the people, these works are utterly worthless, and would be so even if the contents were unimpeachable, — which is prob- ably far from the case. To make a very long matter short, the literatures of Korea and of China have a backward look. Imitation of past writings is the highest excellence to be achieved. Not only is there no such thing as originality, but the very word itself is Avanting, and if the idea were expressed by a circumlocution it would be laughed at. To what extent the Chinese character is responsible for this state of things is a moot question, but I believe that it is one of the main causes of the backward condition of these peoples. The art of imitation dominates literature, art, dress, morals and everything else. Ask a man thoroughly conversant with these countries whether it is not true that when you have seen a single Chinese temple you have really seen them all, when you have heard one piece of music you have heard them all, when you have seen one good sample of cloisonne you have seen them all, when you have seen one sample of embroidery you have seen them all. In this arraignment Japan must be excepted, for she has received a new impetus along artistic lines through the demand of foreign trade. But I dare say that the true Japanese connoisseur to-day would by far prefer the simple and pure forms of earlier Japanese art to the more modern departures. Korean literature, the more celebrated portions of which are all in the Chinese character, consists of voluminous histories, some of them running into several scores of volumes, the Chinese classics, founded on the Confucian code, heJlcs letfrcs proper, consisting of what the Koreans vaguely call keiil, or “ writing,” the nature of it being supposedly poetic, a few heavy works on medicine, geography (native), law and government, and finally, a large number of biographies. Each family of note will have its history transcribed in volume after volume. IMany of these are in manuscript, waiting for the time when some member of the family shall attain wealth and be able to have the work published for circulation throughout the clan. LITERATURE 309 We see, then, that quite a list of Korean books could be gotten together, but the trouble is that very few Koreans can afford to possess them. The ordinary gentleman may have half a dozen works of various kinds, but it is only here and there that one of them will have what we could call a library. And right here comes in a most marked peculiarity of this people. While they are very open-handed with their money, as a rule, yet in the matter of books they are the utmost misers. I know personally of a number of well-stocked libraries in Seoul, but it is absolutely impossible even to get a look at them. Not only will the owner not lend a book, but he will not show one to a visitor except under the most unusual circumstances. They do well not to lend, but it is one of the most difficult traits of the Korean to explain, — this extreme unwillingness even to show a book at his own house. It is easy to see, therefore, that the cause of general reading is badly handicapped. There are no public libraries, except those in Seoul, which handle fiction in the native character, and many of the really valuable works are so voluminous that very few can afford to purchase. Let me illustrate. One of the really valuable books is the Mun-hon Pi-go, an encyclopaedia in one hundred and twelve volumes. This work is nearly as well known by name in Korea as the Britannica is in England or America, and yet I have never discovered more than three copies of it in the country. I worked for months to secure even a look at one, and it was only the sudden collapse of a wealthy family which threw a copy on the market and gave the opportunity to buy. Even then it was a matter of consider- able diplomacy. There are half-a-dozen of the leading Korean works that I have never been able to set eyes upon even after years of inquiry and search. When we come to the matter of fiction, we find that the imagination of the Korean was not to be held completely in check even by the iron grasp of Chinese ideals. 310 THE PASSING OF KOREA FICTION To say that Korea has never produced a great novelist is true, if we mean by a novelist a person who makes his life-work the writing of fiction and bases his literary reputation thereon. But if, on the other hand, a man who in the midst of graver literary work turns aside to write a successful novel may be called a novelist, then Korea has produced a goodly number of them. If the word “ novel ” is restricted to a work of fiction developed in great detail and covering a certain minimum number of pages, Korea cannot be said to possess many novels, but if a work of fiction covering as much ground as, say, Dickens’ “ Christmas Carol ” may be called a novel, Korea has thousands of them. The literary history of Korea opened in the seventh century of our era. The great scholar Ch'oe Chi-wun was the Korean Chaucer, and he was one of the very few Koreans whose writ- ings have been widely recognised outside the confines of the peninsula. But even at the very dawn of letters we find that he wrote and published a complete novel under the name “ Ad- ventures among the Kuen-lun Mountains.” It is a fanciful account of a Korean's ramblings among the great mountains in southern China. The same writer also produced a volume of poems and stories. I\Iany of the latter were of a length to merit at least the name of novelette. At about the same time another writer, Kim Am, wrote a story of adventure in Japan, which was quite long enough to be called a novel. Kim Pu-sik, the greatest of the Koryu writers, to whom we owe the standard History of the Three Kingdoms, wrote a com- plete novel in one volume, called “ The Story of the Long North Wall.” This may be called an historical novel, for Korea once boasted a counterpart to the Great \Yz\\ of China, extending from the Yellow Sea to the Japan Sea across the whole of northern Korea. About 1440 the celebrated monk Ka-san wrote “ The Ad- ventures of Hong Kil-dong,” and another monk, Ha Jong, wrote LITERATURE 311 “ The Adventures of Kyong-op.” Coming down to more modern times, we migEt mention the novel of Yi Mun-jong, written about 1760, and bearing the Aristophanean title of “ The Frogs.” Then there were “ The Praise of Virtue and Righteousness,” “ Nine Men’s Dreams,” “ A Dream at Keum-san Monastery,” “ The Adventures of Yi Ha-ryong,” “ The Golden Jewel,” “ The Story of a Clever Woman,” “ The Adventures of Sir Rabbit ” and many others. While many of these novels place the scene of the story in Korea, others go far afield, China being a favourite setting for many purely Korean stories. In this the Koreans have but fol- lowed the example of writers in other lands, as the works of Bul- wer Lytton, Kingsley, Scott and a host of others bear witness. These that we have mentioned are written in Chinese char- acters, but Korea is also filled with fiction written only in the native character. Nominally these tales are despised by the lit- erary class, which forms a small fraction of the people, but in reality there are very few even of this class who are not thor- oughly conversant with the contents of these novels. They are on sale in every bookstore in the country, and in Seoul alone there are several circulating libraries where novels both in Chinese and in pure Korean are found by the hundreds. Many, in fact most, of these novels are anonymous, their character being such that they would hardly reflect credit upon their writers. And yet, however discreditable they may be, they are a true mirror of the morals of Korea to-day. The customs which prevail in Korea, as in every other Ori- ental country, make it out of the question for anyone to produce a “ love story ” in our sense of the term ; but as the relations of the sexes, here as elsewhere, are of absorbing interest, we find some explanation of the salacious character of many Korean novels. Just as the names of Aspasia and other hcfaimi play such an important part in a certain class of Greek literature, so the kisang, or dancing-girl, trips through the pages of Korean fiction. 312 THE PASSING OF KOREA There remains here in full force that ancient custom which antedates the printing of books, — of handing down stories by word of mouth. If a gentleman of means wants to “ read ” a novel, he does not ordinarily send out to a book-stall and buy one, but he sends for a kwang-da, or professional story-teller, who comes with his attendant and drum and recites a story, often consuming an entire day or even two days in the recital. Is there any radical difference between this and the novel? In truth, it far excels our novel as an artistic production, for the trained accent and intonation of the reciter add an histrionic element that is quite lacking when one merely reads a novel. This form of recital takes the place of the drama in Korea; for, strange as it may seem, while both China and Japan have cul- tivated the histrionic art for ages, Koreans have never at- tempted it. Fiction in Korea has always taken a lower place than other literary productions, poetry and historj^ being considered the two great branches of literature. This is true of all countries whose literatures have been largely influenced by China. The use of the Chinese character has always made it impossible to write as people speak. The vernacular and the written speech have always been widely different, and it has always been impossible to write a conversation as it is spoken. This in itself is a serious obstacle to the proper development of fiction as an art, for when the possibility of accurately transcribing a conversation is taken away, the life and vigour of a story are largely lost. Dialect stories and character sketches are practically barred. And be- sides this, subserviency of Chinese literary ideals to the historical and poetical forms has made these people cast their fiction also in these forms ; and so we often find that a genuine romance is hidden under such a title as “ The Biography of Cho Sang-geun,” or some other equally tame. It is this limitation of the power of written language to transcribe accurately human speech that has resulted in the survival of the professional story-teller, and it is the same thing that has made Korean written fiction inferior LITERATURE 313 and secondary to history and poetry. In this, as in so many other things, Korea shows the evil effects of her subserviency to Chinese ideals. But the question may be asked. To what extent is fiction read in Korea as compared with other literary productions? There is a certain small number of the people who probably confine their reading to history and poetry, but even among the so-called educated classes the large majority have such a rudimentary knowledge of the Chinese character that they cannot read with any degree of fluency. There is no doubt that these confine their reading to the mixed script of the daily newspaper or the novels written in the native character. It is commonly said that women are the greatest readers of these native books. This is because the men affect to despise the native alphabet, but the truth is that an overwhelming majority, even of the supposedly literate, can read nothing else with any degree of fluency, and so they and the middle classes are constant readers of the native books. As in America, so in Korea the newspapers and novels form the. greater part of the literary pabulum of the masses. It is a hopeful sign that there is nothing about this native alphabet or writing that prevents its being used as idiomatically and to as good effect as English is used in fiction to-day; and it is to be hoped that the time will soon come when someone will do for Korea what Defoe and other pioneers did for English fiction, namely, write a standard work of fiction in the popular tongue. CHAPTER XXIV MUSIC AND POETRY I N spite of the evidence to the contrary borne to our ears on every summer breeze, Korean music is not a myth. The sounds seem peculiar and far from pleasing, because we do not bring to them the Korean temperament and training, but the more artificial W^estern ear. We complain because they do not “ keep time ” ; but why should they ? There is no analogy for it in nature. The thrush does not “ keep time,” and the skylark, that joy of Korean waste places, knows nothing of art. It is a question whether music, as a pure expres- sion of feeling, should be hampered by “ time ” any more than poetry should be hampered by rhyme. There are times when both rhyme and time are necessary adjuncts, and even Korean music frequently shows a rhythmic succession of notes which closely approximates to what we call “ time.” Koreans like our music as little as we like theirs, and for the same reason. It means nothing to them. Our harmonies seem to them like a veritable jargon of sounds, but they take genuine pleasure in that indescribable medley of thumps and squeaks which emanate from a Korean orchestra. To us it seems as if there were no rhyme or reason in it, but in truth every note is produced according to a fixed law. There is a distinct science of music here that has been in existence for upwards of fifteen hundred years. Every note and cadence is produced according to a specific law. It only illustrates what is true of all art, that we must bring to it a trained sense in order to appreciate it. MUSIC AND POETRY 315 Each of the Korean musical instruments has a long history hack of it. The koinuiigo may be described as a long, narrow bass viol without any neck. It lies upon the floor, and the player plucks the strings with his right hand while he “ fingers ” them with his left hand near the “ bridge.” In other words, he reverses the method which we adopt and plucks where we would finger and fingers where we would bow. The result is not par- ticularly edifying, but they have never learned, even during nearly seventeen hundred years, that they are playing at the wrong end of the instrument. This komungo dates from the days of ancient Silla, and history takes particular pains to describe its origin. The flute is commonly used in Korea, but it differs in shape from ours. If a Western flute were sawed in two through the mouth hole, it would approximate to the Korean instrument. It is held squarely against the mouth, the lower lip of the performer closing the open end of the tube while he blows down into the semicircular hole. Of all the Korean instruments this sounds most like our Western ones. The flute . is also a very ancient instrument, for we read in history of a jade flute that formed one of the heirlooms of the Silla dynasty nearly two thousand years ago. The curious story is told of it that if carried to any other place than the town of Kyong-ju, the site of the ancient Silla, it would emit no sound whatever. Koreans firmly believe that it is still preserved among the archives of that southern town. The hagejiin, or violin, looks like a large croquet mallet with a short handle; moreover, the head is hollow. The strings, two in number, are stretched from the head to the end of the handle, where they are fastened to a spool-like peg. The hair of the bow is interlaced between the strings of the violin, and the fingering is done by throwing the thumb around the “ handle ” and then hooking one or other of the fingers over the strings. The result is anything but edify- ing, and it is safe to say that this instrument must have existed many centuries to have taken the hold it has upon the affec- tions of the Korean people. They have a species of zither. 3i6 THE PASSING OF KOREA which has the peculiarity of being triple-strung, like our modern pianos. It is struck with a sliver of bamboo. One ancient form of instrument consists of a set of metal bangles, which are struck as we strike a triangle. This is a very ancient instrument, but there was an interval of several centuries when not a single sample of it could be found in the country. Only historical notices remained; when fortunately, or otherwise, one of them was found at the bottom of a well which was being cleaned. This is something of a commentary upon the frequency with which the latter operation is performed. The drum has existed here from of old. It takes various forms, and is very com- monly used instead of a bell. In the town of Taiku a huge drum is used for this purpose. It is larger than a full-sized hogshead. When used for music, the drum varies in size from one foot in diameter to three ; but there are various forms, — the kettle-drum and the hour-glass variety, the latter being struck only with the hand. Strange to say, this hour-glass drum is almost the only instrument used as an accompaniment for singing. Vocal music is divided into two distinct classes, — the sijo, or classical style, and the hach’i, or popular style. The former of these may be described as extremely andante and trcniuloso, and it is frequently punctuated by the drum. The progress of such a piece is very slow and dignified, and the length of time that a single note is sometimes held makes one wonder whether the singer will succeed in getting another breath. The Koreans say that it recjuires long and patient practice to render a classical production well. can well belie^’e this, considering the time it takes to get used to listening to it. It is sung to perfection only by the professional dancing-girls ; not because the senti- ments are more properly expressed by them than by more respectable people, though this is too often the case, but because they are the only ones who have the leisure to give to its culti- vation. To the Westerner there is nothing pleasing in this style of singing. It is one succession of long-drawn-out tremu- MUSIC AND POETRY 317 lous notes with no appreciable melody. The popular style, how- ever, is comparatively like our own singing, and through many of the songs there runs a distinct melody which can be reduced to the Western musical score. The element of “ time ” has been considerably developed, and one can follow the air with ease. The following are samples of a few of the most popular motifs in Korean popular songs : T — 1 [ a • r =1 9 -^—4 J ^ J- —9 9 ^ ■ I j '■ 9 =1^^ E - kJ ryrv * , 1 # • ® -1 =1 1 u 9 S? • - - * —1 -0— 1 — PfeW^=f-i^ - .-J-j — ^ — H ^ ^ ± t ^ — F 1— H 1 9 — LC ^ 11 cJ =i=:]— 9 0 1 ■ H d ^ "d f S • ^ I 1 m '\s\r • ^ r ^ I — 1 — • — r- — 1 i — h ^1 0-. ! ---=1 : :( 9 t — U if d t -t " t it # — H — J — 1 — ' V ^ t ^ —0 — -p— —0 — — :: q — i ^ ^ t ^ ^ 0 -[= - J 1 1 -| =i— J — — 1 — ^-i■^ i 1 — 1- v-y -0 0— -| — ^ — #— THE PASSING OF KOREA 318 The Koreans are very fond of music, and the children on the street are always singing. On a summer evening they will gather in little companies and sing in unison their queer little “ Mother Goose ” melodies. Each one shouts at the top of his or her voice, and at a little distance the effect is not disagreeable. The commonest of all these songs, and one that is familiar to every child in Korea, begins as follows : On Saijai’s slope, in Mungyung town We hew Xht paktal na?mi down To make the smooth and polished clubs With which the washerwoman drubs Her master’s clothes. And then follows a chorus which has about as much sense -as our own classical Hei diddle diddle, the cat and the fiddle. This song has innumerable verses, and can be indefinitely ex- tended by clever improvisation. In the spring, when the grasses and rushes are beginning to grow, almost every child will have his little reed whistle, just as American boys have their willow whistles, but the Korean instrument is quite different from ours. It is made on the prin- ciple of the flageolet. Two of the reeds are usually tied together so that a double note is produced. One of the most characteristic Korean sounds is that of a very shrill, cornet-like instrument, which drones out a weird minor strain of a summer evening. No Westerner will ever quite understand why the Korean takes such pleasure in the monotonous but strident note of this implement of torture. Music is considered one of the lesser arts, not only in Korea but also in China. As a profession, music occupies much the same position here that ballet-dancing does in the West. The ’best that can be said of it is that it is not necessarily disrep- utable. There are no professional singers in Korea, except the MUSIC AND POETRY 319 ■dancing-girls, and they cultivate music merely to enhance their meretricious charms. These people have never conceived of music as a great moral force; it has always been counted as merely an instrument of sensual pleasure, and as such has been classed with dancing, drinking and debauchery. -It is for this reason that common music is denominated cliap-doen sorai, “ low down noise,” by respectable people, and only one song in ten could with decency be published. These people have a sort of musical notation which differs radically from ours. It has no staff and no notes, but simply a string of Chinese characters which indicate in some occult manner the various cadences. If we were to attempt a com- parison with the Western method, we might say that it is like reducing the tune “ Yankee Doodle ” to the form do do re mi •do mi re si do do re mi do si sol, etc. We must not forget the Korean labour songs, which form, to the Western ear, the most charming portion of Korean music. The peculiar and elusive rhythm of these songs is quite unique in its way. It captures the ear, and you find yourself humming it over to yourself ad nauseam. It is a curious psychological study. Throughout the East there is a lack of the personal ele- ment. Individuality is adumbrated, and men count themselves not so much integral factors of society as mere fractions of a social whole. The unit of society is not the individual nor even the family, but it is the clan, the company, the crowd. Thus in their work they band together and accomplish tasks by the multiplication of muscle. This necessitates a rhythmic motion, in order that force may be applied at the same instant by every arm. Each band of ten or twelve workers has its leader, whose only duty is to conduct the chorus. He stands at one side and chants a strain of four syllables, and immediately the men take it up and repeat it after him. No work is done while he is singing, but as the men take up the chant they all heave to- gether. It seems a great waste of time, but it would be very difficult to get Koreans to do certain forms of work in any 320 THE PASSING OF KOREA other way. The following indicates very imperfectly a Korean labour song: Leader Men Leader 1 N— — M — 0 — 0 0 — — 0 — 0 0 1 Take a hold there Take Men Leader a hold there Don’t be laz Men Don’t be laz - y Whoop her up Leader Men Leader Whoop her up Men 2d: ^ 0 - Ho, there! Ho, there ! Knock ’em sil - ly Knock ’em sil - ly Leader Men All Together Now the cho - rus Now ah Hey ah I The leader uses mostly a certain set formula, but now and again he will improvise in a most amusing way, to the great delight of the men. They all seem to be in good humour, and are apparently able to make their work seem like play. In connection with music we must take up the subject of Korean poetry, since this forms the subject matter of their vocal music. Dialect stories are interesting because of their raciness, due to oddities of idiom and pronunciation; but these peculiarities are not felt, of course, by the people of whom it is the ordinary mode of speech. The humour of most dialect stories is of that low order which rests simply upon incongruity. So it is that we are sometimes deceived when it comes to the poetry of other peoples, or even to the life, customs and manners of other MUSIC AND POETRY 321 peoples. When a Korean says to you, Is not the great man’s stomach empty ? ” it makes you smile, whereas to him it means simply, “ Are n’t you hungry? ” This is my reason for rejecting all literal translations of Korean poetry. Such translations would not convey to us the same sensation that the original does to the Korean ; and, after all, that is what we are primarily after. The first difficulty lies in the fact that Korean poetry is so condensed. A half-dozen Chinese characters, if properly collocated, may convey more meaning than a whole paragraph in English. One song, for instance, states the matter as baldly as this : This month, third month, willow becomes green ; Oriole preens herself; Butterfly flutters about. Boy, bring zither. Must sing. It cannot be said that this means nothing to us, but the bald translation conveys nothing of the feeling which the Korean experiences when he sees the original. If I have at least par- tially caught the inner sense of it, the following would better represent what it means to the Korean : The willow catkin bears the vernal blush of summer’s dawn When winter’s night is done. The oriole that preens herself aloft on swaying bough Is summer’s harbinger. The butterfly, with noiseless ful-fiil of her pulsing wing, Marks off the summer hour. Quick, boy! My zither! Do its strings accord ? ’T is well. Strike up. For I must sing. Another purely Korean poem that would appear utterly insipid to the uninitiated might be rendered freely: O mountain blue. Be thou my oracle. Thou stumbling-block to clouds, Years have not marred thee nor thine eye of memory dimmed. Past, present, future seem to find eternal throne Upon thy legend-haunted crest. O mountain blue. Be thou my oracle. 22 THE PASSING OF KOREA O mountain blue. Deliver up thy lore. Tell me, this hour, the name Of him, most worthy — be he child, or man, or sage — Who ’neath thy summit, hailed to-morrow, wrestled with To-day or reached out memory’s hands toward yesterday. Deliver up thy lore. O mountain blue, Be thou my cenotaph ; and when, long ages hence. Some youth, presumptuous, shall again thy secret guess, Thy lips unseal, among the names of them who claim The guerdon of thy praise, I pray let mine appear. Be thou my cenotaph. Here we have a purely Korean picture — a youth on his way to attend the national examination, his life before him. He has stopped to rest on the slope of one of the grand moun- tains of Korea, and he thinks of all that must have trodden that same path to honours and success ; and as he gazes up at the rock-ribbed giant, the spirit of poetry seizes him and he demands- of the mountain who these successful ones may be. Between the second and third verses we imagine him fallen asleep and the mountain telling him in his dreams the long story of those worthy ones. As the youth awakes and resumes his journey, he looks up and asks that his name may be. added to that list. In what more delicate or subtle way could he ask the genius of the mountain to follow him and bring him success? There is another song that may be placed in that much maligned category of “ Spring poems,” whose deprecation nets the comic papers such a handsome sum. The Korean is your true lover of springtime. The harsh- ness of his winter is mitigated by no glowing hearth or cosey chimney-corner, ^^dnter means to him a dungeon, twelve by eight, dark, dirty, poisonous. Spring means to him emancipa- tion, breathing space, pure pleasure, — animal pleasure, if you will, — but the touch of spring affects him to the finger-tips and makes his senses “ stir with poetry as leaves with summer wind.” He is simply irrepressible. He lit list have song. MUSIC AND POETRY 323 One branch of Korean classical music deals with convivial songs. This looks somewat paradoxical, but if Hogarth’s paint- ings are classical, a convivial song may be. ’T was years ago that Kim and I Struck hands and swore, however dry The lip might be, or sad the heart. The merry wine should have no part In mitigating sorrow’s blow Or quenching thirst. ’T was long ago. And now I Ve reached the flood-tide mark Of life ; the ebb begins, and dark The future lowers. The tide of wine Will never ebb. ’T will aye be mine To mourn the desecrated fane Where that lost pledge of youth lies slain. Nay, nay, begone ! The jocund bowl Again shall bolster up my soul Against itself. What, good-man, hold ! Canst tell me where red wine is sold ? Nay, just beyond yon peach-tree ? There ? Good luck be thine ; I ’ll thither fare. We have here first the memory of the lost possibilities of youth; then the realisation of to-day’s slavery, and, lastly, the mad rush to procure that which alone will bring forgetfulness. Not an exclusively Korean picture, svtrely. In central Korea there is a lofty precipice overlooking a little lakelet. It is called “ The Precipice of the Falling Flowers,” and I venture to say that, with no other evidence at hand than this, the reader would be compelled to grant that Koreans have genuine poetic feeling in them, for the story is something as follows : In Pakche’s halls is heard a sound of woe. The craven King, with prescience of his fate, Has fled, by all his warrior knights encinct. Nor wizard’s art nor reeking sacrifice Nor martial host can stem the tidal wave Of Silla’s vengeance. Flight, the coward’s boon. Is his ; but by his flight his Queen is worse 324 THE PASSING OF KOREA Than widowed; left a prey to war’s caprice, The invader’s insult and the conqueror’s jest. Silent she sits among her trembling maids, Whose loud lament and clam’rous grief bespeak Their anguish less than hers. But lo ! She smiles, And, beckoning with her hand, she leads them forth Without the wall, as when in days of peace They held high holiday in nature’s haunts. But now behind them sounds the horrid din Of ruthless war, and on they speed to where A beetling precipice frowns ever at Itself within the mirror of a pool By spirits haunted. Now the steep is scaled. With flashing eye and heaving breast she turns And kindles thus heroic flame where erst Were ashes of despair. “Th’ insulting foe Has boasted loud that he will cull the flowers Of Pakche. Let him learn his boast is vain ; For never shall they say that Pakche’s Queen' Was less than queenly. Lo ! The spirits wait In yon dark pool. Tliough deep the abyss and harsh Death’s summons, we shall fall into their arms As on a bed of down and pillow there Our heads in conscious innocence.” This said, She leads them to the brink. Hand clasped in hand, In sisterhood of woe ; an instant thus — Then forth into the void they leap, brave hearts ! Like drifting petals of the plum, soft blown By April’s perfumed breath, so fell the flowers Of Pakche; but in falling rose aloft To honour’s pinnacle. The Korean delights in introducing poetical allusions into his folk-tales. It is only a line here and there, for his poetry is nothing if not spontaneous. He sings like the bird, because he cannot help it. One of the best of this style is the story of Cho-ung, who, after nailing to the palace gate his defiance of the usurper of his master's throne, fled to a distant monastery, and after mastering the science of war, came forth to destroy that usurper. The first day he became possessed in a marvellous way of a sword and a steed, and at night, still clad in his monk's garments, he enjoyed the hospitality of a country gentleman. As he stands at the window of his chamber, looking out upon MUSIC AND POETRY 325 the moonlit scene, he hears the sound of a zither, which must be touched by fairy fingers; for though no words are sung, the music interprets itself. Sad heart, sad heart, thou waitest long. For love’s deep fountain thirsting. Must winter linger in my soul, Tho’ April’s buds are bursting? The forest deep, at love’s behest. His heart of oak hath riven. This lodge to rear, where I might greet My hero, fortune-driven. But heartless fortune, mocking me. My knight far hence hath banished; And sends, instead, this cowl-drawn monk. From whom love’s hope hath vanished. This throbbing zither I have ta’en To speed my heart’s fond message; To call from heaven the Wonang bird. Love’s sign and joy’s sure presage. But fate, mid-heaven, hath caged the bird That, only, love’s note utters; And in its stead a magpie foul Into my bosom flutters. Piqued at this equivocal praise, Cho-ung draws out his flute, his constant companion, and answers his unseen critic in notes that plainly mean : Ten years, among the halls of learning, I have shunned The shrine of love, life’s synonym ; and dreamt, vain youth, That having conquered nature’s secrets I could wrest From life its crowning jewel, love. ’T was not to be. To-night I hear a voice from som.e far sphere that bids The lamp of love to burn, forsooth, but pours no oil Into its chalice. Woe is me; full well I know There is no bridge that spans the gulf from earth to heaven. E’en though I deem her queen in yon fair moon enthroned. The nearest of her kin, can I breathe soft enough Into this flute to make earth silence hold that she May hear; or shrill so loud to pierce the firmament And force the ear of night ? THE PASSING OF KOREA 326 However that may be, he solved the difficulty by leaping over the mud wall that separated them and gained her promise to become his wife, which promise she fulfilled after he had led an army against the usurper and driven him from the throne. Korean poetry is all of a lyric nature. There is nothing in the nature of an epic. The language does not lend itself to that form of expression. It is all nature music, pure and simple. It is all passion, sensibility, emotion. It deals with personal, domes- tic, even trivial matters oftentimes, and for this reason it may be called narrow. But we must remember that their horizon is pitifully circumscribed. If they lavish a world of passion on a trivial matter, it is because in their small world these things are relatively great. The swaying of a willow bough, the erratic flight of a butterfly, the falling of a petal, the droning of a pass- ing bee, means more to a Korean, perhaps, than to one whose life is broader. Here we have the fisherman’s song as he returns from his work at night : As darts the sun his setting rays Athwart the shimmering mere. My fishing-line reluctantly I furl and homeward steer. Far out along the foam-tipped waves The shower-fairies trip, Where sea-gulls, folding weary wing, Alternate rise and dip. A willow withe through silver gills, My trophies I display. To yonder wine-shop first I dl hie; Then homeward wend my way. In the following we find a familiar strain. It is the Korean setting of “ O for a lodge in some vast wilderness ! ” Weary of the ceaseless clamour, Of the false smile and the glamour Of the place they call the world; Like the sailor home returning, For the wave no longer yearning, I my sail of life have furled. MUSIC AND POETRY 327 Deep within this mountain fastness, Minified by nature’s vastness, Hermit-wise a lodge I ’ll build. Clouds shall form the frescoed ceiling. Heaven’s blue depths but half revealing; Sunbeam raftered, starlight filled. In this lakelet deep I ’ll fetter Yon fair moon. Oh, who could better Nature’s self incarcerate.? Though, for ransom, worlds be offered, I will scorn the riches proffered, Keep her still and laugh at fate. And when Autumn’s hand shall scatter Leaves upon my floor, what matter. Since I have the wind for broom? Cleaning house mere play I’ll reckon. Only to the storm-sprites beckon. With their floods they ’ll cleanse each room. From this it would seem that the Koreans cannot be charged with a lack of imagination but rather with an exuberance of it. The following few lines to a mountain brook show that in his appreciation of nature the Korean is not far behind the more polished poet of the West. O cloud-born rivulet, that down this mountain slope Dost thread thy devious way, fret not thyself because Obstructions bar thy path, nor say “ I may not be.” The rock that buffets thee to-day shall melt away Before thy constancy. Thou ’rt mightier than man ; For though, by human craft, athwart thy humble course Mountains be piled, Time shall be with thee, and ye twain Shall overtop them all. Though thou be curbed and bound. Divided, used, aye, soiled, a thousand li shall seem. In retrospect, triumphal progress. Dost thou now. Like trembling hare, peep forth from out yon covert’s shade? Fear not, but know that ere days shall give birth to months. Thy voice shall mingle with the chorus of the sea. I will add but a single illustration of the poetic element in Korean folk-lore. It is the legend of the casting of the great bell that hangs in the centre of Seoul. THE PASSING OF KOREA The master-founder stands with angry brow Before the bell, across whose graven side A fissure deep proclaims his labour naught. For thrice the furnace blast has yielded up Its glowing treasure to the mould, and thrice The tortured metal, writhing as in pain, Has burst the brazen casement of the bell. And now like a dumb bullock of the lists, That stands at bay while nimble toreadors Fling out the crimson challenge in his face. And the hot, clamouring crowd with oaths demand The fatal stroke ; so hangs the sullen bell From his thwart beam, refusing still to lend His voice to swell the song hymeneal. To toll the requiem of the passing dead. Or bid the sun good-night with curfew sad. The master-founder speaks : “ If but an ounce Of that rare metal, which the spirits hide From mortal sight, were mingled with the flux, It would a potion prove so powerful To ease the throes of birth and in the place Of disappointment bring fruition glad.” And lo ! a royal edict, at the hand Of couriers swift, speeds o'er the land like flame Across the stubble-drift of sun-dried plains. “ Let prayer be made to spirits of the earth That they may render up their treasure, lest Our royal city, like a Muslim mute, Shall have no tongue to voice her joy or pain.” The great sun reddened with the altar smoke; The very clouds caught up their trailing skirts And fled the reek of burning hecatombs; But still the nether spirits gave no sign. When, look ! a mother witch comes leading through The city gate a dimpled child and cries; “ If to the molten mass you add this child, ’T will make a rare amalgam, aye, so rare That he who once has heard the bell’s deep tone Shall ever after hunger for it more Than for the voice of mother, wife or child.” Again the furnace fires leap aloft; Again the broken fragments of the bell Cast off their torpor at the touch of flame. Unpitying are the hands that cast the child Into that seething mass. Fit t3'pe of Hell ! Nay, type of human shame, that innocence MUSIC AND POETRY 329 Should thus be made to bear the heavy cross For empty pageantry. How could it be That Justice should permit the flowing years To wash away the mem’ry of that shame Nor did she. Through that seeming metal coursed The life-blood of the child. Its fibre clothed A human soul. Supernal alchemy ! And when the gathered crowd stood motionless And mute to hear the birth-note of the bell, And the great tongue-beam, hung by linked chain Aloft, smote on his brazen breast, ’t was no Bell cry that came forth of his cavern throat. ’T was Enuni^ Einmi, E7nmi, E7nmille. “ O Mother, woe is me, O Mother mine ! ” ^ 1 The Koreans hear in the dull thud of the wooden beam against the bell a far- off resemblance to the word em-7ni, which means “ mother.” Hence the legend. CHAPTER XXV ART T he Korean is highly susceptible to the melodies of art, but not to its harmonies. IMay this not be said of Far Eastern art in general? Japan is the home of bijouterie, but the higher forms of art which require for their production the genius of combination are con- spicuous by their absence. The single exception may be found in Japanese landscape gardening, but even here their art is dwarfed and cramped. Now this ability to combine different elements for a general effect is quite lacking in the Korean. If you go into a Korean gentleman's garden, for instance, you may find some beautiful plants, but huddled together in such a way that they can give no pleasure. The Korean way is to pick out one of these and place it by itself to be admired as an individual object. He has no idea of grouping them so that each may enhance the beauty of the others. However many works of art a Korean may possess, he will not have more than one or two of them exposed at a time. After one of them has been standing for a week or two in his sarang, or reception room, it will be removed and another substituted for it. In this way he enjoys a variety and does not soon tire of his collection. It may be objected that this is not due to ignorance of the effects of com- bination, but because the Korean house is so arranged that it does not admit of an effective combination of several works of art at one and the same time. \Ye believe, however, that if Koreans had any instinct for effective combinations they would long since have found a way to make them possible. It cannot be said that the Korean is lacking in the aesthetic instinct, but its development has been narrow. There has been ART 331 no scientific development in their art, no formulation of sesthetic laws, no intermixture of a rational or regulative method. The statement that there is a pronounced arithmetical element in music, that, geometry is essential to successful landscape garden- ing or that a knowledge of conic sections is essential to bridge- building, would arouse only mirth in the Korean. But it is nevertheless true that the lack of the mathematical element has depri^'ed all Asia of genuine martial music. A Korean house is a good illustration of the statement that bijouterie is the prevailing aim of their art. However large the house may be or however spacious the site, the place is divided by a network of w^alls into a vast number of alleys and court- yards, each very pretty in its way, but destroying all possibility of effective combination. The wdiole space is frittered away in a labyrinth of cheerless walls, which to the Westerner are more suggestive of a prison than a residence. Now the Korean delights in this bee-hive sort of existence. Each suite of rooms has its special charm to him. In one of them he keeps, perhaps, a beautifully embroidered screen, in another an ancient vase Avhich is a family heirloom, and in another a rare potted palm or cactus ; but he would never think of exhibiting all these things in combination. One advantage that arises from their one-thing-at-a-time form of aesthetic development is that it can be shared more equally by high and low alike. If a single floAvering plant can give as much pleasure as a whole gardenful, the poor man is much nearer his wealthy neighbour in his opportunities for aesthetic pleasure than is the case in Western countries. This method has its advantages. It tends to a concentration of attention and a consequent exactness in detail which are not generally found in connection with a broader form of art. His embroidered butterfly will be worked out to a painful point of exactness, while the perspective of the whole scene may be ludi- crously wrong. The Korean almost invariably makes the farther edge of the table longer on his can\-as than the nearer edge, and 332 THE PASSING OF KOREA I once saw a magnificently embroidered stork standing on one leg, while the other leg, which was held up gracefully, passed behind a tree that stood at least ten feet beyond the bird. It may be that the Korean has always been so closely shut up by walls that he has never so much as imagined such a thing as a “ vanishing point.” I am not sure but it is this love of detail that has led to the introduction of the grotesque and monstrous into the art of the whole East; a sort of protest against their limitations. The aesthetic nature having been confined so long in narrow channels was forced to find a vent for itself in some way, and did so by a violent rupture into the realm of the fantastic. So we find in every picture some dwarfed tree or curiously water-worn rock, — some malformation that excites the curiosity. No picture of an ancient warrior is correct unless he has warts as big as walnuts all over his face, and eyebrows that rival his beard in length. As to colour in art, the Koreans are still as primitive as in ancient days. Their red is the red of blood or of the peppers that lie ripening on their roofs. Their green is the vivid green of the new-sprouting rice or the dark blue-green of the pine- tree. Nature’s colours are in their art as nature’s sounds are in their wonderfully mimetic language. As to form in art, the Korean is strictly a realist, except in so far as he has impinged upon the realm of the fantastic. There are no idealised expressions in his art, no winged cherubs, no personification of any power of nature, no Cupid with his bow and arrows; and it is just because of this lack of imaginative power that such a thing as aesthetic combination is unthought of. Imagination is the power of arranging and rearranging one’s mental furniture in such a way as to produce new and pleasing, or useful, combinations ; and if a man has not this power, the arrangement of his house furniture, the colours on his canvas, the notes of his music and the flowers of his garden must all suffer. It is this lack which has made Korean history MURAL DECORATIONS IN OLD PALACE ART 333 so bare of great men. Had it not been for the dreamers of history, we should have had no Columbus, or Newton, or Hide- yoshi or Genghis Khan. Imagination is the mother of enter- prise and the forerunner of achievement, and the lack of it has made Korea the “ shrimp between two whales.” But some may say that the common belief in evil spirits and the genii of mountain, tree and stream implies a high degree of imaginative power. Not so; this is nothing but instinct, the natural working of the law of self-preservation. You might as well say that the porcupine has imagination because he rolls up into a ball and presents the thorny side of life to the approaching enemy. The crudest method of explaining obscure phenomena is the attributing of them to the agency of demons, genii and spirits. So far from being evidence of an imaginative nature, this demon worship argues the very opposite. He fails to see things in their proper relations, and he remains oblivious of the fact that, running through these phenomena, there is a oneness of plan and an adaptation of means to ends which precludes the possibility of his horde of spirits. It is moral instinct which has led him to reason out some personal agency in the conduct of human affairs. In other words, it is conscience, which, from the pagan point of view, does “ make cowards of us all.” The con- sciousness of personal demerit makes the Korean picture his spirits and goblins as inimical to man, and produces that servility, as distinguished from humility, which is indelibly stamped upon all pagan worship. But we must hasten to enumerate briefly some of the most conspicuous forms of Korean art. We have already mentioned music. Architecture has never been looked upon here as a fine art. It is entirely utilitarian, except in the case of royal palaces and temples, and even here art is exhibited almost exclusively in the decorations. These and other architectural decorations may be passed by with brief mention, for they are anything but artistic to the Western eye. In mural decoration they have pro- duced some pleasing effects, but they are very crude and will 334 THE PASSING OF KOREA not bear comparison with what goes under that name in our own lands. Embroidery upon silk is considered by Koreans to be one of their finest achievements in the line of art. Some of it is fairly well executed, but the very best will not begin to compare with even the medium grades in China or Japan. Painting sketches of branches of trees, sprays of flowers, bunches of grass, and old stumps and rocks with a brush pen and India ink is a favourite form of artistic work, and here we find regu- larly formulated laws. Each blade of grass must droop in ac- cordance with a fixed law, and each flower must stand at just the right angle from the stem. After many years of familiarity with these things, even the Westerner finds a certain amount of interest in these pictures, and while they would be called the veriest daubs by the uninitiated, we must confess that they make a certain approximation to what we might call real art. It is a question, however, whether it is worth the time it takes to learn to appreciate it. In the line of ceramics Korea has nothing to show. Long centuries ago she may have had some slight claims to considera- tion along this line, but there are very few evidences of it to-day. It is common for travellers to buy small iron boxes ornamented with inlaid silver or nickel. The work is crude, but the Greek key pattern which is usually followed redeems them from utter contempt. Some of the silver filigree work that is done, especially in the far northeast, is worthy of mention, but the artisans have only a few set designs, and these they follow so slavishly as to suggest the idea that they are heirlooms. In- laying mother-o'-pearl in a kind of lacquer upon boxes, chests, and cabinets has a pleasing effect, but the inartistic forms of the objects thi:s decorated detract much from the general result. In this also the key pattern is most prominent. CHAPTER XXVI EDUCATION I T has been only in the capital and in a few of the promi- nent provincial centres that there has been any consider- able modification of the immemorial methods of education, and so we will first explain the old system, which still generally prevails, and afterward note the modern innovations. Education, in its narrower sense of scholastic training, was introduced into Korea from China along with the literature and religions of that land. Both the subject matter and the method are therefore exotic rather than indigenous. For this reason it is easy to explain why Korea has no national literature of a distinctive type. Through all the long centuries education has ' meant the study of the Chinese character and the great classics which form the recognised curriculum of China. Most educated Koreans can tell you much more about the history of China than they can about their own national history; just as any English or American college boy can tell you more about Latin grammar than he can about the grammar of his own tongue. With the few exceptions to be noted later, there are no public schools in Korea. It is only within the last decade that such a thing as an educational bureau has existed in Seoul. Even to-day the annual appropriation for this purpose amounts only to twenty thousand dollars, a large part of which is used in office expenses. Generally speaking, education is a private affair and has so been considered from the first. Every village has its little room, always in a private house, where the boys sit on the floor with their large-print books of Chinese characters before them, and, as they sway back and forth with half-shut eyes, they drone out 336 THE PASSING OF KOREA the sounds of the ideographs, not in unison, but each for him- self. There is no such thing as a class, for no two of the boys are together, and to the unaccustomed ear the babel that results is almost stunning. But the system has its good as well as its bad points. As the boys are not graded, the bright ones are not held back by the dull ones, nor are the dull ones forced ahead superficially in order to preserve the semblance of grade. Each one goes on his merits, and individuality is developed more than in our schools. Then, again, the deafening noise about him compels tlie boy to extreme concentration upon his own work. It is difficult for us to fancy that mentality would be possible under the circumstances, but the truth is that no one of those shouting boys hears any other than his own voice. The outside confu- sion, instead of shattering his mental processes, drives him in upon himself and probably enables him to memorise better than if he were alone. On the other hand, the Chinese metliod puts a veto upon all esprit de corps, and the boy loses a large part of the beneficial influence of comparison and competition. The study of the ideograph is a consuming passion with the well-born Korean. We talk about burning the midnight oil, but the determined Korean student is said to tie a string about the beam overhead and attach the end to his top-knot in order to keep himself from falling over and going to sleep. Pedagogy is neither a finished science nor a fine art in Korea. It merely consists in sitting before the boys with a stick and seeing that each one continues to shout, but there is plenty of evidence that, under cover of the noise, the urchins frequently talk with each other, as the choir boys in a Devonshire church are said to have done. During an antiphonal chant one boy changed the devotional words to : “ John, ye owe me fower marbles.” And the reply came back in sacred song: “ You ’m a liar ; ’t is but two.” However high may be the esteem in which letters are held, the ordinary teacher is a very humble member of so-called good EDUCATION 337 society. He is treated politely by everyone, but he is looked upon very much as a pensioner. He receives no salary, but the boys bring him frequent presents, and he ekes out a living in some way. But there is a more dignified side to the question. Teaching seems to be looked upon as a thing that cannot be estimated in money value. You can buy the services of a cobbler or a mason, but knowledge is too fine a thing to be bartered. The same holds true of medicine. The physician takes no regular fee, but is the recipient of a gift proportionate to the wealth of the patient and the amount of service rendered. Nominally the service is a gift. In all Korea there is nothing corresponding to our learned professions, where large fees are required and the service ren- dered is almost purely an intellectual one. Throughout the history of this country the aim of the boy has been to master the classics and acquire a literary style which will carry him through the national examinations called kwaga. These were of various kinds. The novitiates in the country, having attended preliminary examinations at the provincial capi- tals under the eye of government examiners, those few who were successful were sent up to the capital, where several kinds of tests still awaited them. Some of these were merely prepara- tory or continuative, while others gave access to the long-desired haven of political preferment. Three or four times every year the capital would swarm with men from the eight provinces who had come to make the great attempt. Some of them were old hands who had tried time and again without success. Behind the Kyong-bok Palace lie the deserted examination grounds, where crowds gathered and sat in groups under enormous umbrellas writing furiously on their essays. These were upon themes propounded by the master of ceremonies or often by the King himself. No care seemed to be taken to prevent communication between the dif- ferent aspirants, and opportunities to bring in concealed manu- scripts were abundant. All sorts of tricks were played, and the 338 THE PASSING OF KOREA final award was only occasionally a just one. The element of luck entered very largely into the event, and there is only too much evidence that “ pull ” had still more to do than fortune. And yet, in every examination, out of a score of successful candi- dates two or three at least were honestly chosen. It was the narrow chance of becoming one of this small fraction that brought thousands of men up from the country. When the paper was finished, the writer inscribed his name in the lower corner, and then slit the paper up a little way and folded the name in and pasted it. The examiners were not supposed to know the name of any writer until after the merits of his paper were passed upon. After writing his name, the candidate rolled his paper up and threw it like a lance over a barrier or fence made of spears stuck in the ground. When the names of the successful ones were posted the following morning, they were dressed up in gala attire, and paraded about the streets of the capital on horseback, and received the con- gratulations of their friends. If the fortunate man was a countryman, his village went en fete in his honour. This sys- tem of examinations was discarded ten years ago. As education had to do so largely with the mastery of the Confucian classics, it went hand in hand with religion, and, though there was no genuine educational bureau, the Sung-gynn- gzvan, or Confucian School, in Seoul might be called the centre of education for the country, just as the Royal Academy in England is the centre of English art. This Confucian School still exists as a sort of honorary institution, to which recog- nised scholars are appointed by the Emperor, but without emolu- ment and without any duties to perform. It is not a school in any real sense, but a sort of scholastic club or college. For the past ten years education has occupied a place of greater honour, and the Educational Department is coordinate with that of War, Finance, Law, Agriculture or Foreign Affairs. The small sum appropriated shows, however, its relative status. Education receives twenty thousand dollars, while an almost EDUCATION 339 entirely useless army receives one million dollars. In Seoul a dozen or more , primary schools have been established, with an average attendance of about fifty boys. These are of rather inferior grade, but they are much better than nothing. Arith- metic, geography and history are taught, besides the Chinese character and the Japanese vernacular. There is a small normal school, but it is in native hands only and its product is of little or no account. The so-called Middle School, which is housed in a substantial foreign building, can accommodate three hun- dred students, but the actual number is only about sixty. Two foreigners, American and Japanese, together with six Koreans, form the faculty of this school. Besides the higher Korean branches, chemistry, physics, botany, physiology, general his- tory, geography, arithmetic, algebra and geometry are taught. The difficulty in this, as in all the other schools, is that the gov- ernment gives no encouragement to the graduates. The student expects, and has a right to expect, that after graduating from a government school he should have a better chance to receive official position than ordinary, uneducated Koreans. But he finds that nepotism still holds sway, and that personal and family influence is a better door to preferment than education. These Korean youth have not yet come to recognise education as its own reward, and so the schools are almost empty. Many of the Koreans are excellent students, especially in mathematics. They are quick to catch the point, and in every respect they compare favourably with boys of the same age in WTstern countries. There is no doubt whatever that they are the intellectual equals of the Japanese. They have lacked only the opportunity and the incentive. There are a number of important foreign language schools in Seoul, — English, French, German, Japanese and Chinese. These are successfully carried on by gentlemen of these various nationalities. The government also employs a German musician to train a native band according to Western methods, and so successful has he been that foreigners hardly know which tO' 340 THE PASSING OF KOREA admire more, — the skill and perseverance of the instructor or the natural talent displayed by the pupils. In the various provincial capitals the government has estab- lished, in a desultory way, a number of schools of intermediate grade which are fairly successful, but until the public sentiment of the people at large rises to the fact that education is one of the main bulwarks of the state, no work of large dimensions can be done. The time will come. Various missionary societies have established successful schools in this country, notably in Seoul and in Pyeng-yang, and these institutions rank the highest in the land. iMany of their graduates hold positions under the government and com- mand general respect. There have been numerous attempts to establish private schools, but the enthusiasm seems to die out after a few years, funds run low and the inevitable end comes. Some of these have been temporarily successful and have demonstrated some slight growth of public sentiment in the right direction. One hopeful sign is the recent immense increase in the demand for reading matter throughout the land. Those who have in hand the ^ale of books say that the demand has increased fourfold during the past year. One of the most powerful educative influences is the native press. This agency has been at work here for some ten years, and, while there have been many failures, 3’et it cannot be seri- ousl}" questioned that the various dail}', weekly and monthly papers have done an enormous amount of good. The Korean’s idea of the daily press is still somewhat crude, and is illustrated by the fact that when some statement is denied he is very likely to say, “ It must be true. The paper says so.” It is to be hoped that the Korean press will always retain and deserve this reputation for veracity, which we fear had been partially lost in some lands we wot of. And in truth, so far as our observation goes, the native papers make an honest attempt to give straightforward and accurate news. EDUCATION 341 The matter of school text-books is still in a chaotic condition. Some people think they should all be printed in the pure native character, while the more conservative, together with the gov- ernment, opine that the mixed Chinese and Korean script should be used. In this mixed script the verbs, nouns, adjectives and adverbs are expressed by Chinese characters, and all connectives, whether grammatical, syntactic or logical, are in pure Korean. The result is something like the rebus in which words are inter- spersed with pictures. The system is a clumsy one, but it may prove a useful stepping-stone from the pure Chinese to the pure Korean. Not until the Chinese is entirely discarded will the broadest general education be possible. This is as true of Japan as it is of Korea. Meanwhile all sorts of text-books are being published, without regard to consistency, and simply by private and individual initiative. Some of the best work in this line is being done by missionaries, who are the pioneers of education here as everywhere else. It is a hopeful sign that a number of foreigners here, among whom the missionaries largely pre- dominate, have formed an Educational Association, and the important preliminary work of evolving a uniform system of nomenclature for all the sciences has been taken in hand. This is a fundamental necessity, and the results can only be good. As for industrial and technical -schools, nothing has yet been done in Korea. There have been sporadic attempts at agri- cultural, mining and engineering schools, but they have all failed, largely because such education has not been based upon a previous mastery of the common elementary branches. Much less has anything been attempted in the line of professional schools, if we except the theological training classes carried on by the various missions. A few Koreans are studying medicine under the foreign physicians, and there is a small law school, but, with the exception of a single Korean lady physician who Avas educated in America, there are no qualified native physicians. 342 THE PASSING OF KOREA A number of Koreans have graduated from American or English institutions and have returned to this country. As a rule these men have done good work here, and have demon- strated that the natural intellectual capacity of this people is equal to that of any other. CHAPTER XXVII THE EMPEROR OF KOREA T he personality of any supreme ruler of an empire or kingdom is a subject of interested comment. The mere power which he holds in his hands compels attention to his personal characteristics. Much has been written about the Emperor of Korea, mainly by transient visitors to Seoul who have picked up such gossip as was current at the time they passed through. Some of the most libellous of these statements appeared in a recent issue of one of our leading American magazines and written by a distinguished traveller. That writer spent two or three weeks in Korea, and everyone of his statements about the Emperor of Korea is such as may be picked up on the streets of any capital and is worthy only of the columns of our most sensational newspapers. They contain certain half-truths distorted out of all proper pro- portion and exaggerated to the point of caricature. The writer knew nothing about the Emperor from personal acquaintance. Some months ago there appeared in the “ Century Magazine an article by a former Secretary of the American Legation in Seoul which came far nearer the truth, for that gentleman had a personal acquaintance with the Emperor and knew what he was talking about. A comparison of those two estimates of the man will show how wide is the difference between irresponsible gossip and sober fact. The Emperor of Korea is now fifty-five years old and is a gentleman of average natural ability, which has been greatly influenced by his environment, not always happily. At the age of twelve years he was nominated to the throne by the Queen Dowager, in view of the fact that the former King died without 344 THE PASSING OF KOREA issue. His father became regent until the boy should attain his majority. The regent was a fierce and relentless despot, who began his career by a sanguinary persecution of Roman Catholics. The boy lived in the midst of unspeakable atrocities, and was brought up to believe that the knife, the poison and the torture are the main implements of government. His father married him to a member of the Min family, and when the time came for the young King to assume the duties of his office, he found himself torn between filial duty toward his imperious father and the softer but no less effective pressure brought to bear on him by the Queen. She and the regent were deadly enemies. Each of them had a will far more unbending than that of the King, and from the year 1872 there was war to the knife between these two individuals, which ended only with the assassination of the Queen in 1895 by the Japanese. We must remember that in Korea, as in China, the chief ruler is limited in his actual power by the fact that those imme- diately about him can command all avenues of information and can colour that information to suit their own purposes. The war between the Queen and the regent opened when the latter sent an infernal machine to the father of the Queen, which resulted in the destruction of almost the entire family. If we try to imagine the state of mind of a ruler shut off from full access to genuine information and surrounded with such instru- ments of death, with murder in the hearts of those most inti- mately connected with his own life, we shall be able to picture to ourselves the disabilities under which the young King grew up. In 1882 the regent again tried to take the life of the Queen. The soldiers swarmed into the palace, tore in pieces, before the eyes of the King, some of the leading members of the Queen’s faction, and missed killing the Queen herself only through a lucky accident. All this time the King himself knew not at what instant the knife might be put to his own throat. Two years later a band of fanatical men determined to force the government to follow the example of Japan. They seized the THE EMPEROR OF KOREA 345 person of the King and before his eyes slaughtered seven mem- bers of his Cabinet and one of his most trusted personal ser- vants. The Japanese, who backed this desperate and sanguinary enterprise, had to retire, and things went on as before ; but what sort of training was this for a young King just entering upon his reign? It is only to be wondered at that his nerves survived the strain at all. In 1895 occurred the unspeakable monstrosity of the cold-blooded murder of the Queen at the instigation of the Japanese minister, when the regent, rioting in fierce joy of a borrowed power, saw the fruition of his long desire. All during that terrible time the King lived in momen- tary dread of assassination. And who can wonder? Did not every circumstance in the case warrant his fear of sudden death ? He was surrounded by a Cabinet composed of men thoroughly in the hands of Japan, and was virtually a prisoner. For weeks he refused to eat a mouthful of food except what was sent in a locked box from the house of an American missionary, such was his fear of poison. Finally the strain became too great. He could endure the suspense no longer. After trying in vain to secure asylum in the American legation, he threw himself into the arms of Russia by a secret flight from the palace. For a time he had rest in the Russian legation, where, be it said to the lasting credit of Mr. Waeber, no pressure was brought to bear upon him to give Russia predominant power in the penin- sula. Doubtless this was why Mr. Waeber was removed to make room for a more strenuous man. He was too good for Russia. This situation could not continue indefinitely, but the King would not go back to his old palace which had witnessed such a tragedy. He built a smaller one in the vicinity of the foreign legation, where he would be near help in case of trouble. His nerves had been hopelessly shattered. Originally a man of ordinary ability, the scenes through which he -had passed had stamped their impress upon him, and he had come to believe that craft was the only available instrument to use. When Mr. Waeber was superseded by a less scrupulous man, the posi- 346 THE PASSING OF KOREA tion of the King was rendered more difficult. It was necessary to play off Russian against Japanese in order to steer clear of the clutches of both. The Emperor had been brought by hard experience to believe that all talk of reform was but an arrow aimed at him personally, and he was intensely suspicious of any curtailment of his own prerogatives. He was and is a man of kindly nature, and he hates suffering and pain in every form, whether for himself or his people. There is no doubt that under the selfish advice of interested ministers he has allowed the extortion of money from the people, but no one who knows him can believe that he has ever wantonly and knowingly in- flicted suffering upon his subjects. There have been countless cases in which he has proved the contrary. One little incident will illustrate. Near the Altar to Heaven, where he went to assume the title of Emperor, a foreigner was building a house. The rafters had been put on, but the roof was not covered. A host of Koreans swarmed into the yard and climbed to the roof to look down upon the ceremony in the adjoining compound. The American was extremely uneasy, for this was far outside the limits of ordinary courtesy, and he hastened to force the Koreans down; but the Emperor, noticing the commotion and divining the cause, sent a special messenger in haste to say that the Koreans need not be disturbed. This is only a trivial case, but there are others. Nothing could exceed the solicitude of the Emperor when, last year, the ludicrous attempts at monetary reform had driven the merchants to desperation. He tried to help them by lending several hundred thousand yen to them to tide them over the crisis, and the fact that the Japanese would not allow him to do it cannot detract from the credit that is due him. Aluch has been said of his superstitiousness. This is based largely upon the fact that the women of the palace, who share with other Korean women the unhappy legacy of illiteracy, have often called in various kinds of sorceresses and mounte- banks for their own delectation. The King has indulged them THE EMPEROR OF KOREA 347 in this caprice, and it is possible that he may have amused him- self now and then in listening to the extravaganzas of these spirit mediums, but that he gave any more heed to them than any other educated Korean gentleman would is incredible. This sort of talk belongs in the category of those racy accounts given by tourists, who move heaven and earth to get an audience with the Emperor, and then come home to criticise the quality of his wines and sneer at his manners. The Koreans have been called a people of inferior intelli- gence, but the truth is that in pure diplomacy, finesse, they have outwitted the Japanese at every point during the past quarter of a century. In 1884, in 1894, in 1904 the Koreans out- manoeuvred the Japanese in diplomacy, and it was only by com- ing in with the sword that the latter carried her point. At the beginning of the last war Korea received from Japan a definite promise to preserve the independence of the Korean government. Japan felt called upon to give this guarantee because she needed something in return, namely, the passivity of the Korean people and their good will during the war. Korea believed the promise, but when the need of keeping her quiet had passed Japan by an act of unparalleled treachery proved that her word was not as good as Russia’s; for while Russia’s retention of Manchuria was only the postponement of a promised evacuation, the seizure of Korea was an absolute and unblushing refusal to pay, for favours shown, the price that had been definitely agreed upon. There is no sophism that can evade this fact. Attention must be called to the way the Emperor of Korea has always treated Americans and American interests. Nothing has been too good for us. We have had the best gold-mining •concession, the first railroad concession, *the leading place in education, the unbounded confidence of both King and people. We built the first electric tramway and lighting plant. We obtained the important concession for supplying the city of Seoul with a modern water system. All these things have been given os almost without the asking. Nowhere in the world has there 348 THE PASSING OF KOREA been a more open field for the investment of /\merican capital. The Korean Emperor and people have always looked to us as the one power that had no political wire to pull, no axe to grind, no purely selfish policy to carry out. But in the face of all this, we have been the first to push her over the brink, to accept the outrage of November 17, 1905, without loud and instant protest. Why did the world objurgate the failure of Russia to keep her promises in Manchuria and condemn her as the international felon and then turn about and allow Japan to stultify herself tenfold worse in Korea without protest? Those who have been on the spot and watched closely the tragic culmination can see something of how the nature of the Emperor, warped by terrible vicissitudes and held for months at a time in the most heart-breaking suspense, has been dwarfed and shrivelled in the furnace. And yet at this very hour he stands firm in his loyalty to his people. He denounces the so-called treaty of November, 1905, and demands the attention of the powers to Japan’s treachery. CHAPTER XXVIII WOMAN’S POSITION I T is a trite saying that the civilisation of a people may be gauged by the treatment accorded to women. This is only partially true, for in the various races of mankind special conditions make special rulings necessary. For instance, in Thibet, where there seems to be a great preponder- ance of males, the practice of polyandry prevails; but however disgusting this may appear to the Western taste or the Western conscience, it does not place the Thibetan on a lower plane of civilisation than the Escjuimaux who do not practise polyandry. Again, in China, and in all lands that have been permeated by Confucian principles, the prime necessity of securing male issue has largely influenced the position of woman and made her lot more tolerable than in Turkey or Persia; but we cannot argue from this that Chinese civilisation is at all in advance of that of Turkey or Persia. We must look to the causes underlying the better or worse treatment of women, in order to discover whether it is a true index of a people’s civilisation. When India Avas opened to the world, the West cried out in horror against the brutal custom of the self-immolation of widows. But even this was due to natural causes. It was a great preventive law which forced all wives, for the sake of their own happiness, to guard most sedulously the health of their husbands. The common use of poison in the tropics, added to the crafty and vindictive nature of the people, made this cruel law, if not necessary, at least intelligible. In the same way the people of the West are moved with righteous indignation because the women of the Far East are kept so secluded and are not allowed that free intercourse with 350 THE PASSING OF KOREA their fellow-men that is accorded women in the West. This feeling is also in a sense misplaced, for though the condition of woman in Asia is deplorable, we should rather criticise the moral status of the people at large, which renders the seclusion of woman a necessity, than to find fault with the mere fact. Such seclusion is a mean between the promiscuity of savage tribes and the emancipated condition of women in enlightened countries. It is as much better than the former as it is worse than the latter. There can be no question that it is Christianity which has brought about the desirable conditions that prevail in the West, and we need look for no such conditions in the East until it is permeated with ideas emanating from Christian stand- ards. We affirm, then, that under existing moral conditions the seclusion of woman in the Far East is a blessing and not a ■curse, and its immediate abolishment would result in a moral chaos rather than, as some suppose, in the elevation of society. The discussion of woman’s position in Korea falls under several general heads, such as seclusion, occupation, education, punishments, property rights, testamentary rights, divorce, court- ship and marriage, religion, etc. The degree of seclusion which a Korean woman enjoys ■depends upon the position she holds in society. Broadly speak- ing, there are three classes, Avhich may best be termed the hon- ourable, the respectable and the disreputable. As might be ■expected, the seclusion of women here corresponds to what we call “ exclusiveness ” in the West. The higher her position, the more complete is her seclusion. And just as women in America or Europe pride themselves upon their exclusiveness, so women here pride themselves upon the fact that no male person outside the immediate household ever sees their faces. Up to the age of ten or twelve years, the little girl of good family enjoys considerable freedom, and can play in the yard and see anyone that comes ; but the time arrives when she must never be seen without the cliangot, or sleeved apron, over her head held close about her face. From that time she remains WOMAN’S POSITION 351 mostly indoors, and is familiarly seen only by the members of the household and the immediate relatives. This stage of her life is short, for she is married young and goes to take her place in the family of her husband. After that time she can be seen and conversed with, face to face, only by the following male members of the family: her husband, father, father-in-law, uncle, cousin, second cousin, etc., down to what the Koreans call the “ eighth joint,” which means about fourth cousin with us. It will at once appear, therefore, that a Korean woman is not entirely cut off from association with gentlemen, for, in a country where families are so large as in Korea, the number of men within these prescribed degrees may be anywhere from twenty to two hundred. But none of these will ever enter the inner part of the house except by invitation of the husband and in his company. After a young bride arrives at the home of her husband, she will have free access to the private rooms of her new father and mother, even as their own daughters do, but neither her father nor any other man except her husband will ever step inside her private rooms, except under stress of sickness or other imperative cause. If any of her male relatives are to see her, it must be in the rooms of her father and mother. This does not apply to the young brothers of her husband, who may come into her room upon invitation up to the age of thirteen, after which they too are excluded. If there are two married brothers living at their father’s house, neither of them can enter the private rooms of the other, though each can meet the wife of the other in the rooms of the parents. If, however, a young man marries and sets up an establishment of his own, he becomes the head of the house, and any of his male relatives, or hers, down to the “ eighth joint,” can enter the inner rooms upon invitation of the husband, but they will never do this unless there is some special reason for seeing the wife, since the hus- band will be sure to have a sarang, or general reception room, where he meets all his male friends. 352 THE PASSING OF KOREA As a rule, a lady may go and visit her lady friends with considerable freedom, but she must always leave word at home exactly where she is going. She will go in a closed “ chair ” carried by two men. The chair is brought to her door, the men retire till she has entered, and when she arrives at the friend’s house, the men set down the chair and retire while she is getting out. She will invariably be accompanied by a slave girl or other female servant who runs along beside the chair. Arrived at the friend’s house, she enters the inner rooms, and while she is there neither the friend’s husband nor any other man may enter, unless he should chance to be within the prescribed limits of consanguinity. A lady of wealth or even of moderate means will not walk on the street, although this is permissible provided she keeps her face carefully hidden by the changof. Women of the middle class are not so secluded as those of the upper class, and yet they will never be seen on the street without the head covering. At their homes they may be seen by any male relative down to the “ tenth joint.” We see, then, that women of the middle class are visible to relatives two degrees further removed than those by whom her higher sister may be seen ; and besides this, it is far less common for a man of the middle class to possess a general reception room, and the result is that relatives are much oftener invited into the inner rooms. The statement sometimes made, that no respectable Korean woman will ever be seen walking on the street, is very far from the truth. Hundreds of them, may be seen every day. \\^omen of the lower or so-called disreputable class include dancing-girls, slaves, courtesans, sorceresses and Buddhist nuns. I am speaking now from the Korean point of view. A slave or a nun may be a respectable person, but she is classed with the others by Koreans. They are subject to none of the laws of seclusion that apply to so-called reputable people. In fact, they are not allowed to use the changot to cover the face. A possible exception may be found in the courtesan, who may cover the WOMAN’S POSITION 353 head, but is not allowed to use the pad or cushion on top of the head by which the chan got is supported. Besides these women of the lower orders, there are a few others that never cover the head and who, although entirely respectable, may be seen by men without reproach. These are lady physicians, of whom there are many in Korea, and blind female exorcists. Women of even the upper class may enter the medical profession, and it is said that many of them are very expert at acupuncture, which is about all the surgery that the Esculapian art can boast here. Although women of the upper and middle classes cover the face on the street, yet this concealment is by no means so com- plete as among the women of Turkey, for the chan got is simply held together before the face with the hand, and frequently the entire face is exposed. Elderly women of entire respectability often take little or no pains to observe the rule strictly, but one would seldom have an opportunity of catching a glance at more than one eye and a small portion of the face of a young woman. In an afternoon’s walk through the streets of Seoul you will see hundreds of women going about without any head covering whatever. They are mostly slaves. Now and then a dancing- girl will be seen riding on a pony or in an open chair with uncovered face, and, if a wedding procession passes, a large number of unveiled women with enormous piles of hair on their heads will be seen carrying gaily decorated boxes in which are kept the “ plenishings ” of the bride. These all belong to the low class. It may be said in a general way that the chief occupation of the respectable Korean woman, whether of high or low degree, is motherhood. Like the ancient Hebrew woman, she says, “ Give me children or I die.” This springs from the instinct for self-preservation. The Confucian code renders male off- spring a sine qua non of a successful life, and a woman who brings her husband no children is doubly discredited. There is no more valid cause for divorce in Korea than barrenness. 354 THE PASSING OF KOREA There are no “ old maids ” here. It becomes a matter of public scandal if a girl passes her twentieth year without settling in a home. Of course, in the case of cripples or incompetents it is a little difficult to arrange, but many a young man takes his bride home only to find out that she is a deaf-mute or cross-eyed or humpbacked or partially paralysed. This is a triumph for the old woman, the professional go-between, whose skill in “ working off ” these unmarketable goods upon unsuspecting swains is pro- verbial. But the balance is even as between the brides and grooms, for a nice girl as often finds herself married to a drunk- ard or a case of non compos mentis. The Korean woman’s main business then is wifehood and motherhood; but even so, there are many opportunities for her to help along the family finances and supplement the wages of a husband who is too often shiftless and dependent or even worse. First, as to occupations open to women of the upper class. Strange as it may seem, the only kind of shop such a woman can keep is a wine-shop. Of course she never appears in person, but if her house is properly situated she can turn a portion of it into a wine-shop, where customers can be served by her slave or other servant. No lady would ever think of selling cloth or vegetables or fruit or anything except wine. Silk culture is an important industry, in which ladies take a prominent part, espe- cially in the country. The care of the eggs, the feeding of the worms, the manipulation of the cocoons aijd the spinning of the silk afford means whereby the wife of the gentleman farmer passes many pleasant hours and adds materially to the finances of the household. Sewing and embroidery are usual occupations of ladies, but they do very little of it for money. The vendible goods of this kind are made by a different class. Many Korean ladies of restricted means act as tutors to the daughters of their more fortunate sisters. They teach the Chinese character and litera- ture, letter-writing, burial customs, music, housekeeping, hygiene. WOMAN’S CORRECT STREET COSTUME WOMAN’S POSITION 3d:> care of infants, obstetrics, religion, fiction, needlework and embroidery. Of course the teacher is not seen by the gentle- man of the house. In the country it is not beneath the dignity of a lady to tend bees. She may also help in the care of fruit trees, especially the jujube. She may also make straw shoes. It seems singular that a lady should be able to make straw shoes when it would be entirely beneath her dignity to make the better kind, such, for instance, as those her husband wears in town. If an inmate of a house is taken ill, someone must run for an exorcist to come and drive out the evil spirit which has- caused the trouble. It is the blind people who do this work. It is not confined to men alone, but any blind woman, whatever her rank may be, can become an exorcist. Nor do indigent ladies hesitate to enter the ranks of fortune-tellers. It is an easy, lucrative and graceful form of labour, and contains an element of adventure that appeals strongly to some people. But a higher form of labour to which a lady is eligible is that of physician; in fact, no woman can be a physician here unless she belongs to the upper class. The science of medicine, or I should say a science of medicine, has received much atten- tion from Koreans for many centuries. The Korean pharma- copoeia is celebrated even in China ; and it cannot be denied that it contains many crude drugs that are very effective. Korea has many native lady physicians who administer their powdered tiger’s-claw, tincture of bear’s gall or decoction of crow’s foot, according as the symptoms of the patient may seem to require. The lady physician is called in most often for obstetric cases- where a male physician would not be tolerated for a moment. A story is told of a certain queen who was taken ill and no lady physician could be found. The royal patient grew rapidly worse. Male physicians were at hand, but they could not possibly see the patient. Suddenly there appeared an old man at the palace gate who said that he could cure the queen. When asked how he could diagnose the case without seeing the patient, he said,. 356 THE PASSING OF KOREA “ Tie a string around her wrist and pass one end through the partition.” It was done, and the old man holding the end of the string described her symptoms exactly and wrote out a pre- scription which soon effected a cure. Compared Avith this, the recent discoveries of Marconi in wireless telegraphy seem — but we must not digress. As might be supposed, a descent in the social scale widens the field of the Korean woman’s work. The middle-class Avoman can engage in all the occupations of her higher sister, excepting those of physician and teacher of Chinese literature. She may be the proprietress of any kind of shop, though she Avill not appear in person. She may “ take in Avashing,” Avhich means carrying it to the nearest brook or to the neighbourhood Avell- curb, Avhere the Avater she uses speedily finds its Avay back into the Avell. She may act as cook in some Avell-to-do family, tend the foAvls and pigs or do any other form of domestic service. Concubines are draAvn almost exclusively from this middle class. They make combs, head-bands, tobacco-pouches and a thousand other little conveniences of the toilet, the Avardrobe and the home in general. They are alloAved certain fishing rights as Avell, though they are restricted to the taking of clams, cuttle-fish and beche-de-mer. The Avomen on the island of Quelpart, off the southern coast, held until lately a peculiar position in this matter of fishing. The men stayed at home Avhile the Avomen Avaded into the sea or SAvam out from shore and gathered clams, pearl oysters and seaAveed. As the Avomen Avere ahvays nude, there Avas a strict laAv that no man Avas to go Avithin sight of the fishing grounds during the fishing hours. So these modern Godivas Avere the bread-Avinners, and as such claimed exceptional privileges, — so much so that the island bade fair to become a sort of gynecocracy. But this Avas all changed Avhen Japanese f.shermen appeared off the island. The Avomen Avere driven out of business and the men sadly Avent to Avork. This dependence upon the AVomen for a living Avas thoroughly in accord Avith the earliest tradition of the island, Avhich says that three sages came THE LAUNDRY WOMAN’S POSITION 357 up from a hole in the ground and that each of them found a chest, floating in. from the southeast, containing a colt, a dog, a calf, a pig and a woman 1 Women of the middle class often become wet-nurses or enter a Buddhist convent, though by following the latter course they drop from the respectable class to the despised one. Others still become nain, or palace women. These are in some sort hand- maidens of the queen and engage in embroidery and other fancy work under the eye of Majesty. Foreigners often make the mistake of supposing that this position is a disgraceful one, but these palace women are entirely respectable, and any delinquency on their part would be severely dealt with. The reluctance with which parents consent to their daughters becoming palace women is due to the fact that it postpones the date of marriage beyond the approved age. Many middle-class women are innkeepers. Travel on Korean roads usually averages thirty miles a day, and so the inns are numerous. The hostess has little difficulty in keeping the accounts. All she has to do is to watch the rice- bag and the bean-bag, for food and fodder are the only things charged for in a Korean inn. Sleeping and stable room are thrown in gratis ; and we may add sotto voce that they are dear even at that price, at certain seasons of the year. If the hostess had to take charge of the sleeping arrangements, she would be unable to preserve the seclusion which is the sole badge of her respectability. Of all these occupations of middle-class women, there are only two to which low-class women are not eligible, those of palace woman and tobacco-pouch maker. While middle-class women are thoroughly respectable, at least in theory, the women of the low class are entirely outside the social pale. They have practically no rights, though they manage to hold their own with remarkable pertinacity. There are, first, those unfortunates called dancing-girls. The northern province of Pyeng-an takes the lead in supplying women to fill the ranks of this class. The girls are taken when very young and trained in all the meretricious arts of their 358 THE PASSING OF KOREA degradecl and degrading- occupation. Some of them are secured by purchase and many more by chicanery. They are secured at too early an age to make it possible for them to give intelligent assent to their shameful fate. They are never veiled, and they go about as freely as men. In the Korean view they are unsexed and are social outcasts, but in reality, like the hcfairai of ancient Greece, they enjoy far more social life than reputable women. The dancing-girl is not necessarily a woman of bad character. Many are the stories told of their kindness, charity and patriot- ism. And yet, if the estimate of their own countrymen counts for anything, such goodness is about as frequent as the Greek kalends. In early days there were no dancing-girls, but boys performed the dances. In course of time, however, a weakening of the moral fibre of the nation, due to increase of luxury, let in this unspeakable evil. The dancing-girl is a protege of the government ; in fact, the whole clan is supported out of gov- ernment funds, and they are supposed to perform only at govern- ment functions. They do not by any means constitute that branch of society which in MTstern countries goes under the euphemistic name of deuii inonde, but they correspond very closely to our ballet-dancers. As with the hetairai of Greece, so with the Korean dancing-girl, her greater freedom gi\-es her opportunity and leisure to acquire a culture that makes her intellectually far more companionable than her more secluded but more respectable sisters. This is. of course, a great injustice. Though there is nominally a wide difference between the dancing- girl and the ordinary courtesan, it is generally understood that enrolment in the ranks of this profession means a life of shame. Such women frequently close their professional careers by be- coming the concubines of wealthy gentlemen. The female jugglers, acrobats, contortionists and story-tellers are sufficiently described by their names. None of them are respectable people. The niudong, or sorceress, is much in evi- dence in Korea. She is the lowest of the low; for, in addition to an entire lack of morals, she is supposed to ha^-e commerce WOMAN’S POSITION 359 with evil spirits. The p’ansii, or blind exorcist, is an enemy of the spirits and drives them away by a superior power, but the mudang is supposed to secure their departure by friendly inter- cession. This, of course, determines her unenviable position, and no women in Korea are more depraved than she. Female slavery is very common. This will be discussed under the head of slavery, but as it is an exclusively female institution, it must be enumerated here. She may be a born slave, she may be made one as punishment for a crime, either of her own or of a near relative, or she may sell herself into lifelong or temporary slavery in order to liquidate a debt or to help a relative to do so. Her condition is somewhat better than that of many of Korea’s poor, for she is sure of food and shelter, which is far more than thousands can say. As a rule, she is treated well, and her condition does not specially excite our pity. She will be seen carrying water home from the well on her head, and not only will her face be uncovered, but there will be a startling hiatus between her short jacket and her waistband which leaves the breasts entirely exposed. One recent writer on Korea leaves the impression that this species of indecorum is characteristic of all women on the streets of .Seoul, but of course this is a libel. The professional go-between, who acts in the capacity of a miatrimonial bureau, is one of the peculiar excrescences on the body politic of Korea. It is her business to find brides for the bachelors and husbands for the maidens. Her services are not absolutely necessary, for the parents or other relatives of the young man or woman are usually able to arrange an alliance; but there are many cases in which her services will be of value. If an undesirable young man or woman fears that he or she will not draw a prize in the matrimonial lottery, the cJningma is called in, and it is made worth her while to find an acceptable partner. So it comes about that she is well worth watching, and her description of the prospective bride or groom should be verified, if possible, by ocular evidence. A case has just 36 o THE PASSING OF KOREA come under my notice in which a nice young girl was sadly cheated. Her relatives went to see ' the young man that the go-between had provided and found him handsomely dressed and living, apparently, in a fine house; but when the ceremony was over he took her to a wretched hovel, where his father and mother and a large family lived huddled together like rabbits in a burrow. The deception was a most cruel one, for the girl had been reared in comparative luxur5^ Occasionally the go- between is brought to justice for such felonious dealing, but usually the girl would rather suffer in silence than have her name dragged before the public. It is difficult to estimate the wages that female labour receives in Korea, because it depends almost entirely upon the skill and the rapidity with which the work is done. Doubtless the dancing-girl gets the best pay cf all, and next to her perhaps the lady physician. Then come the acrobats and fortune-tellers. The wet-nurse, or “ milk-mother,” is well paid, but her living is precarious. The same is true of the go-between. The teacher in a gentleman’s fam.ily gets no salary at all, only a present now and then. The female physician gets her chair-coolie hire and about a dollar for each visit. The acrobat may get as low as four dollars a month or as high as sixty. The fortune-teller gets eight cents for each fortune that she tells. This represents two hours’ work, for it is no light matter to be turned off by a mere glance at the palm. Go-betweens get from four to eight dollars for each case. The honest ones are, of course, the surest to find steady employment. The woman whose province it is to apply cosmetics to the faces of prospective brides receives some sixteen dollars for each operation, and anyone who has seen a Korean bride in her stucco will say the money is well earned. A good seamstress or comb-maker or head-band maker will earn a dollar a day, while a wet nurse will get forty cents and her food, but if a foreigner wants to employ one, he will have to pay twenty dollars a month and support her lazy husband into WOMAN’S POSITION 361 the bargain. For sewing, weaving, fishing, doctoring, glazing pottery, preparing ginseng, boiling salt, making shoes, exorcism and many other forms of labour, a woman receives as much as a man. It may be set down as a general law that if a woman can make a thing as quickly and as well as a man she will receive the same wages as he. In this respect the Korean woman has the advantage of the female artisan in Europe or America. The relative degree of education enjoyed by Korean women as compared with men is not thoroughly understood by for- eigners, judging from what we find in print. It is commonly believed that education here is almost wholly confined to the men, but this estimate must be considerably modified. Among Korean gentlemen there are very few indeed who have not studied at least a few Chinese characters, but not one in six can pick up a book written in pure Chinese and read it with any degree of fluency. Most of them have the merest smattering of it. Among the women of the upper class, perhaps two in five study a little Chinese, but not more than one per cent of these ladies ever learn to read it. The so-called mixed script in which the daily papers are printed can be read by very many ladies, for it requires no knowledge of the Chinese idiom, but only the meaning of some eighteen hundred characters. The native Korean writing, of which we speak at length elsewhere, is often called the “ ladies’ writing.” Gentlemen pretend to despise it, but it is well known and extensively used by all Korean ladies. If one of them is lacking in this accomplishment, she will be looked upon much as a Western lady would be who should refer to George Eliot as a gentleman. Among the middle classes perhaps half of the women are conversant with this native script. Among the low class there is no education at all, except in the case of fortune-tellers and dancing-girls, the latter of whom are frequently quite well up in letters. The one work that Korean women must master is “ The Three Principles of Conduct.” These are (i) the treatment 362 THE PASSING OF KOREA of parents, (2) the rearing of a family, (3) housekeeping; and, running the risk of seeming out of date, we submit that, while these three studies might not constitute a liberal education for a woman, no woman’s education is complete without them. But while we cannot praise the Koreans too highly for insisting on these, we do blame them that they often stop here. iMany women who cannot read learn this book by proxy. It is written in Chinese and Korean on alternate pages, so that no one may have an excuse for not reading it. Next comes “ The Five Rules of Conduct,” relating to the relations between parent and child, king and subject, husband and wife, old and young, friend and friend. Then there is a book on “ Interesting and Proper Things,” a mass of anecdotes illustrative of the virtues, and the “ Female Physician’s Remedy Book,” a sort of domestic medical work, dealing mainly with prenatal conditions, parturition and the care of infants. Such are the most important books studied by women, and ignorance of their contents is looked upon with great contempt among the upper classes and to a less extent among the middle classes. But besides these, there is an extensive literature in the native script alone. It contains historical works on ancient and medie- val Korea, poetry, tra^'el, letters, biographies and a wide range of fiction, based on fairies, ghosts, love, hate, revenge, avarice, ambition, adventure, loyalty and all other passions that are com- mon to the race. Those books which women regularly study can be obtained by purchase, but, as for the light literature, there are a number of circulating libraries in Seoul where books are lent for two cents apiece, to be returned within five days. It speaks rather poorly for the taste and morals of the Koreans that very many of these books are highly unfit for anyone to read. There are no girls’ schools in Korea, outside those that have been founded by the foreign missionaries. That Korean girls are taught almost exclusively those things that will be of prac- tical use to them within the walls of their own homes, is neces- WOMAN’S POSITION 363 sarily narrowing to the intellect, and makes the woman a companion to her husband only in a domestic sense. The influ- ence that this has upon society is too well known to need discussion here; but it is the testimony of foreigners gen- erally, who have had to do with Korean girls, that these long •centuries of repression have not impaired their mental capacity. That capacity has simply lain dormant, and when given the opportunity it will prove itself easily eciuivalent to that of the •men. It would be impossible to discuss the property rights of women without taking up property rights in general, which we will do as briefly as possible. Let us take the case of a well-to-do gentleman in his home, surrounded by his family, which includes his wife, his two mar- ried sons and one unmarried daughter. His other daughter has married and gone to the home of her husband. This gentle- man’s property consists of rice-fields, real estate and ready, money. All real estate is held by deed from the government, as with us. His ready money is not in the bank, for there are practically no banks. It is all locked in his strong box, or it is lent out to merchants and others at a rate of one and a half or two per cent a month. Considering the risks, this is a low rate. So‘ far as his own immediate household is concerned, this man has com- plete control of all this property, but if he has one or more brothers and they happen to be in needy circumstances, he is bound to feed them. If he refuses to do so, they can go to the local authorities and lay complaint against him; in which case they may command him to hand over some of his money or •other property to the brothers, in order to save them from star- vation. If, however, he can prove that the brothers are indolent and merely want to live upon him, he will be freed from all obligation. The reason for this law will appear shortly. If he has sisters, they are of course married and have gone to the family of the husband. He is, therefore, free from all legal obligation to them. In case they are in severe straits, he 364 THE PASSING OF KOREA will probably help them, but they have no recourse to law. If his aged mother is still living, he must support her. If he does not treat her well, she has instant recourse to the law and can inflict the severest penalties. . If he insults her or strikes her or if he is a thief or seditious, she might strike him dead and the law would uphold her. This is not mere theory, for such things have happened not infrequently. So long as he treats her well, she has no voice in the management of the money. It is hardly necessary to say that the government exercises the right of eminent domain, and can “ condemn ” and take any man’s prop- erty at a fair valuation. We next ask how a Korean can acquire or dispose of prop- erty. In the disposition of the estate his brothers may act as a check upon him. If he is wantonly squandering the patrimony, or even money that he has himself acquired, they can complain to the authorities and ask them to refuse new deeds for prop- erty that he sells. It must always be remembered that in Korea the authorities are seldom approached with empty hands, and to go to law does not necessarily mean to obtain justice. When a man dies intestate, all his property goes into the hands of his eldest son, who is obliged to support all his brothers. If he refuses to do so, they appeal to the law and force a divi- sion of the property, in which case each receives an equal share. If there are unmarried sisters, the elder brother will lay aside a sum sufficient for their dowries, himself being the judge as to what is necessary. These unmarried sisters have no recourse to the law, so long as their brother supports them and gives them a home. If he refuses this, the law will handle him. If they are already married before the death of the father, the brother is not under obligation to gi^■e them an3’thing. If they are in want, he may help them or not as he pleases. A man, seeing his end approach, desires to make his Avill. He calls in a few witnesses, never from his own immediate family, and writes his will in their presence. They sign it in due form. There is no such thing as probate in Korea, and the WOMAN’S POSITION 365 eldest son is always the executor of the will. Ordinarily, the father will have no doubt as to his son’s good intentions and will die intestate. It is when the father fears that the son will not treat the rest of the family well that he makes a will. Sup- posing that the will specifies that the widow is to receive a specified sum, and the other children each a specified sum, every person so specified has the right to claim at law the amount becjueathed to him or her, and the woman’s right is as clear as the man’s. But should the will include a bequest to anyone not a relative, such as a friend, or the poor, or a monk, such person cannot recover the money at law. There is no redress. If, how- ever, the executor, the eldest son, refuses to carry out the wishes of his father in these particulars and shows a too avaricious spirit, the people of the place will compel him to sell out and move away. They will drive him from the neighbourhood, and the authorities will not stir a finger to help him, unless — but the less said about that the better. Now let us suppose that a man dies leaving only two daughters, one married and the other unmarried. In this case the great probability is that he will adopt a son before he dies, someone among his near relatives. This will be mainly in order to have someone to sacrifice to his spirit after his death. The adopted son has all the rights and powers of a real son, and will control the property. Perhaps once out of ten times the father will fail to adopt a son, in which case the daughters take charge of the property and administer the estate exactly the same as a man would, and with equal power. These daughters are not obliged to hand the property over to their husbands unless they wish, but the husband may, if evil-minded, seize it, in which case the wife will probably have no redress. This, however, would very rarely occur, for, if it were known, the man would be sub- ject to the most bitter scorn of his acquaintances and would be practically ostracised. In case a man dies leaving only a widow, she will adopt as her son the eldest son of one of her husband’s brothers, and he 366 THE PASSING OF KOREA will naturally have charge of the money. This is a hard and fast rule that is never broken. If there be no such nephew, she may adopt some other boy, if she so desires, or she can hold the property in her own name. If her husband has a childless brother, she must divide the property with him, but not with any more distant relative. It is a striking fact that among the common people a wife has greater power over her dead husband’s property than her more aristocratic sister. If she adopts a son, she still may con- trol the estate if she desires. The Koreans have a queer say- ing to the effect that to live well in this world one should be the wife of a middle-class man, and when a woman dies she should wish to be reincarnated in the shape of a gentleman or high-class man. This is because in the middle class the woman is more nearly on a level with her husband, she knows more about his business and has more to say in the management of the family affairs than the high-class woman ; also she has a much firmer hold upon her husband’s estate in case he dies. She is not so strictly bound to adopt a son to whom she will have to hand over the property, nor does she have to give so much to her deceased husband’s brothers. As we descend in the social scale, all restrictive laws and all inequalities between the sexes are toned down, so that when Ave reach the lowest classes we find that the relations are much the same as in our own land. The Koreans say that among the very lowest classes are to be found the most unfortunate and the most fortunate women ; but this would not be our estimate, for the Koreans mean by this that the miidang, or sorceress, and the courtesan and the dancing-girl, being unmarried, are the most independent women in the land, and are cared for, fed and dressed the best of any in Korea. Of course this is a terribly false judgment, for it looks merely to material comfort and for- gets the awful price at which it is bought. On the other hand, the respectable woman of the lowest orders is the most pitiable, for she is everybody’s drudge. She has no rights that anyone WOMAN’S POSITION 367 is bound to respect, and she lives at the caprice of her husband ■or master. The question arises as to whether a married woman has con- trol of the wages which she may earn. In this respect the middle-class woman has the advantage of her higher sisters, for while a gentleman’s wife will invariably turn over the pro- ceeds of her work to her husband, the middle-class woman may ■or may not do so. Every act of a high-born woman is subject to far closer scrutiny than in the case of the middle-class woman, .and, as she can never go to a shop to buy anything, she cannot well use her money. On the whole, she is a very helpless being. It is very common for middle-class women to give up their wages to their husbands, and the latter can take money from their wives by force without the least fear of molestation from the authorities ; but by sufferance these women are given greater freedom than others. If a widow is possessed of considerable property and sees lier end approach, and she has neither sons nor near relatives, she may give her money to some young man and ask him to perform the annual sacrificial rites for her, or she may go to a Buddhist monastery and give her money to pay for the perform- ance of Buddhist rites. This is a very common occurrence in Korea, and forms an important part of the income of the mon- asteries. No woman of the upper class ever does this. If a man is a traitor or if he desecrates a grave, the common -custom, until very recently, has been to decapitate him and all his male relatives of near degree, and to execute by poison all Avomen of his immediate family, namely, mother, wife and daughters. In certain cases the women may merely be made slaves. If a woman herself meditates treason, she will be poi- soned. For murder a man is decapitated and his wife poisoned. If a woman is the offender, she will be strangled or poisoned. For arson a man suffers strangulation or poisoning, while the Avoman suffers the latter penalty. For theft a man may be either decapitated, strangled or banished. His Avife will be enslaved 368 THE PASSING OF KOREA and all his property confiscated. Such was the law up to the year 1895, but at that time the punishment of wives and daugh- ters for the man’s fault was done away, and a great forward step was thus taken in judicial ethics. Since that time only the principal offender himself has suffered punishment. In the matter of divorce the great inequality between the sexes becomes plainly manifest. On no pretext whatever can a woman obtain a legal separation from her husband. The only thing she can do is to run away to her father’s house or to that of some relative. In this case the husband has no redress unless he can disprove her charges against him. In such case he can demand not her person, but only the cost of the marriage ceremony. This proving is not done by legal process, but is a matter between the parties concerned and their relatives. The law will not force a woman to go back to her husband's home. Thus we see that divorce in its main feature, namely, the getting rid of a bad husband, is possible to any Korean woman, but there is no legal document which dissolves the marriage tie. If a man wants to get rid of his wife, the reason will prob- ably be either that she is barren, or that she has committed adultery, or that she is an inveterate gossip, or that she has insulted him, or that she is indolent, or that she does not attend properly to the sacrifices or that she is a thief. If the woman thus divorced is a lady, she has absolutely no redress, whether the accusation is just or not. If she is a common woman, she can appeal to the Mayor of Seoul or to her local magistrate and can have her husband punished for driving her away without sufficient cause if she can prove that such is the case. If a woman is divorced, or if she runs away from her husband, all the children remain in his care. She cannot take any of them with her unless by his permission. If she clandestinely does so, he can force her to give the child up. Divorce is very uncommon among the upper class. The wife and mistress of the house is by no means a mere chattel, as in Turkey or Persia. She has certain well-defined rights WOMAN’S POSITION 369 that her husband is bound to respect, and to divorce her requires very sound and patent reasons. She has her powerful relatives who could make it very uncomfortable for her husband should he attempt to discredit their house by wantonly divorcing her. It is a terrible disgrace for a gentleman to have his wife run away from him,^ and he will go far to conciliate her and prevent such a scandal. Among the common people, however, there is far greater license. Divorce is exceedingly easy and common. If a man finds that the woman of his choice (or the go-between’s choice) is not what he anticipated, he will simply send her home to her mother. It is very uncommon for a woman to complain before the magistrate and have her delinquent hiisband punished, for in any case she cannot go back to him, and so the less said about the matter the better. The utmost promiscuity prevails among the lower classes. A man may have half a dozen wives a year in succession. No' ceremony is required, and it is simply a mutual agreement of a more or less temporary nature. The biblical picture of the Samaritan woman at Jacob’s Well who had had five husbands is descriptive of many thousands among the low-class people in Korea. The cost of a regular wedding in this country is very great, averaging some six months’ income. This is one of the main reasons for irregular connections. Concubinage is an institution as old as history. It has ex- isted in Korea from time immemorial. There are three main causes for it, — if a man has no son by his wife, if the wife is an invalid or a cripple or old, if the man is a mere libertine; in any of these cases he is likely to take a concubine. The custom is prevalent both among the high class and the middle class. The woman of the high class- never becomes a concubine, but men of that class take concubines from the lower strata of society. From time to time we hear excuses made for concubinage in the case of a man whose wife is barren, but the excuse is not a valid one; and for the very good reason that however many sons a man may have by a concubine, not one of them can call 3/0 THE PASSING OF KOREA him father, or become his heir or sacrifice to him after deaths He may have half a dozen sons by concubines, yet when the time comes to die he will adopt a son from some more or less distant branch of the family, and it is this adopted son who will call him father, worship him after death and inherit all his prop- erty. The sons of concubines have no rights whatever, nor would any gentleman think of adopting his son by a concubine to be his legal heir. Great stress is laid upon purity of blood in the upper class. Among the common people, however, where the restraints are very much less, the son by a concubine may become the heir. In such case the man and his concubine belong to the same grade of society. The children always take the status of the mother. If a man of the upper class has one or more concubines, he must keep a separate establishment for each of them. It would be unheard of for a gentleman to introduce a concubine into the home where his genuine wife lives. Among the common class, however, the wife and the concubine may occupy the same house. Human nature is the same the world over, and it is needless to say that oftentimes the result is most distressing. No other one thing is so conducive to domestic discord as this evil custom. The Koreans recognise its baneful effects and condemn it, but money and leisure offer great temptations in Korea even as elsewhere. The commonest form of amusement in which women indulge is called kugyung. This word cannot be exactly translated, but it may mean to “ look see ” or to “ take a walk,” or both of these combined. In other words, it means the satisfaction of curiosity in any form. When the Korean says kugyung kapsita, he means, “ Let us take a stroll and look about a bit.” Now, this, in the uneventful life of a Korean woman, is one of the highest forms of pleasure. It makes no difference though she sees nothing more exciting than a passing bicycle or electric car. It is amus- ing and entertaining. Of course, such pleasures are mostly limited to the lower classes, who are less secluded. Ladies amuse WOMAN’S POSITION 371 themselves by playing the koimingo, or harp. Its musical capa- bilities are not high. They also play other crude instruments. Korean girls are very fond of swinging, and on a certain day in spring there is a swing festival in which men, women and children participate. Huge swings are arranged in public places, but these are used only by men and boys. Girls have a peculiar kind of see-saw, which consists of a short board laid across a fulcrum three or four inches high. The girls stand on opposite ends of the board and jump up and down. The impact of one coming down throws the other up into the air some three or four feet. A rope is drawn above their heads like a clothes-line, and to this they cling as they go up in the air, in order to insure their equilibrium. In the country the girls enjoy what is called the chid nori, or rope game. A rope is drawn taut between two trees, and the girls swing back and forth against it, keeping time to a song. The Korean doll is also very common and is called a kaksi. It is most often seen tied to the back of the little girl, and she pre- tends that she is carrying her baby as her mother does the genuine one. Dominoes, go-bang and dice are favourite amuse- ments of women, though the last are used almost exclusively by ladies of the higher class. As for titles, only ladies of the very highest class, wives of the leading officials, are given a “ handle ” to their names. These correspond to our terms “ countess,” “ baroness ” and others; but- these titles are not hereditary in Korea. CHAPTER XXIX FOLK-LORE F OLK-LORE is a very ambiguous term, including at one extreme not only the folk-tales of a people, but the folk-songs, superstitions, charms, incantations, proverbs, conundrums and many other odds and ends of domestic tradition which find no classification under other headings. Folk-lore is the back attic, to which are relegated all those interesting old pieces of ethnological furniture which do not bear the hall-mark of history and are withal too ambiguous in their origin and too heterogeneous in their character to take their place downstairs in the prim order of the modern scien- tific drawing-room. But if we wish to feel as well as to know what the life of a people has been, we must not sit down in the drawing-room under the electric light and read their annals simply, but we must mount to the attic and rummage among their folk-lore, handle, as it were, the garments of bygone days and untie the faded ribbon which confines the love-letters of long ago. W ritten history stalks across the centuries in seven- league boots, leaping from one great crisis to another, and giv- ing but a bird’s-eye view of what lies between; but folk-lore takes you by the hand, leads you down into the valley, shows you the home, the family, the every-day life, and brings you close to the heart of the people. It has been well said that the test of a man’s knowledge of a foreign language is his ability to understand the jokes in that language. So I should say that to know a people’s life we must understand their folk-lore. The back attic of Korean folk-lore is filled with a very miscellaneous collection, for the same family has occupied the house for forty centuries and there never has been an auction. FOLK-LORE 373 Of this mass of material, in the small space here available, we can give only the merest outline, a rapid inventory. For convenience we may group Korean folk-tales under six heads, — Confucian, Buddhistic, shamanistic, legendary, myth- ical and general. Williams defines Confucianism as “ the political morality which was taught by Confucius and his disciples and which forms the basis of Chinese jurisprudence. It can hardly be called a religion, as it does not inculcate the worship of any god.” In other words, it stops short at ethical boundaries and does not concern itself with spiritual relations. The point at issue be- tween Confucianism and Buddhism is that the latter affirms that the present life is conditioned by a past one and determines the condition in a future one, while Confucianism confines itself to the deciding of questions of conduct beginning with birth and ending with death. It is to be expected, therefore, that, like Judaism in the days of its decadence, every probable phase and aspect of human life will be discussed, and a rule of conduct laid down. This is done largel}^ by allegory, and we find in Korea, as in China, a mass of stories illustrating the line of conduct to be followed under a great variety of circumstances. These stories omit all mention of the more recondite tenets of Confucianism, and deal exclusively with the application of a few self-evident ethical principles of conduct. They all cluster about and are slavish imitations of a printed volume of stories called the 0-ryiin Hang-sil, or “ The' Five Principles of Conduct.” This has been borrowed mainly from China, and the tales it contains are as conventional and as insipid as any other form of Chinese inspiration. As this is a written volume which has a definite place in literature, it may not perhaps be considered strictly as folk-lore, but the great number of tales based on it, giving simple variations of the same threadbare themes, have become woven into the fabric of Korean folk-lore and have produced a dis- tinct impression, but rather of an academic than a genuinely moral character. Following the lead of this book, Korean folk- 374 THE PASSING OF KOREA lore has piled example upon example showing how a child, a youth or an adult should act under certain given circumstances. These “ Five Principles ” may be called the five beatitudes of Confucianism, and while their author would probably prefer to word them differently, the following is the way they work out in actual Korean life : (1) Blessed is the child who honours his parents, for he in turn shall be honoured by his children. (2) Blessed is the man who honours his King, for he will stand a chance of being a recipient of the King's favour. (3) Blessed are the man and wife who treat each other properly, for they shall be secure against domestic scandal. (4) Blessed is the man who treats his friend well, for that is the only way to get treated well himself. (5) Blessed is the man who honours his elders, for years are a guarantee of wisdom. Then there are minor ones which are in some sense corolla- ries of these five, as, for instance : Blessed is the very chaste woman, for she shall have a red gate built in her front yard, with her virtues described thereon, to show that the average of womanhood is a shade less virtuous than she. Blessed is the country gentleman who persistently declines to become prime minister, even though pressed to do so, for he shall never be cartooned by the opposition — and incidentally shall have no taxes to pay. Blessed is tlie young married woman who suffers patiently the infliction of a mother-in-law, for she in turn shall have the felicity of pinching her own daughter-in-law black and blue without remonstrance. Blessed is the man who treats his servant well, for instead of being squeezed a hundred cash on a string of eggs he will be squeezed only seventy-five. Korean lore abounds in stories of good little boys and girls who never steal bird’s-nests, nor play “ for keeps,” nor tear FOLK-LORE 375 their clothes, nor strike back, nor tie tin cans to dogs’ tails. They form what we may call the “Sunday-school literature” of the Koreans, and they are treated with the same contempt by the healthy Korean boy or girl as goody-goody talk is treated b}' normal children the world over. While these stories are many in number, they are built on a surprisingly small number of models. After one gets used to the formulse, the first few lines of a story reveal to him the whole plot, including commencement, complications, climax, catastrophe and conclusion. For instance, there is the stock story of the boy whose parents treated him in a most brutal manner but who never made a word of complaint. Anticipating that they will end by throwing him into the well, he goes down one dark night by the aid of a rope and digs a side passage in the earth just above the surface of the water; and so when he is thrown in headlong the following day, he emerges from the water and crawls into this retreat unknown to his doting par- ents, who fondly imagine they have made all arrangements for his future. About the middle of the afternoon he crawls out, and faces his astonished parents with a sanctimonious look on his face, which, from one point of view, attests his filial piety, but from another says, “ You dear old humbugs! You can't get rid of me so easily as that.” Be it noted, however, that the pathos of this story lies in its exaggerated description of how Korean children are sometimes treated. We also have the case of the beautiful widow, the Korean Lucrece, who, when the King importuned her to enter his harem, seized a knife and cut off her own nose, thus ruining her beauty. Who can doubt that she knew that by this bold stroke she could retire on a fat pension and become the envy of all future widows ? Then there was the boy whose father lay dying of hunger. The youth whetted a knife, went in to his father’s presence, cut a generous piece of flesh from his own thigh and offered it to his parent. The story takes no account of the fact that the old reprobate actually turned cannibal instead of dying like a decent 376 THE PASSING OF KOREA gentleman. The Koreans seem quite unable to see this moving episode in more than one light, and they hold up their hands in wondering admiration, while all the time the story is exquisitely ironical. There are numerous stories of the Lear type, where the favourite children desert their parent, while the one who had been the drudge turns out pure gold. There is quite a volume of Cin- derella stories in which proud daughters come to grief in the brambles and have their faces scratched beyond repair, while the neglected one is helped by the elves and goblins and in the sequel takes her rightful place. But these stories are often marred by the careless way in which the successful one looks upon the suf- fering and perhaps the death of her humbled rivals. Another common theme is that of the girl who refuses to marry any other man than the one, perhaps a beggar, whom her father had jokingly suggested as a possible husband for her. The prevailing idea in this is that the image once formed in a maiden’s mind of her future husband is, in truth, already her husband, and she must be faithful to him. Such stories are a gauge of actual domestic life in Korea inversely to the degree of their exaggeration. A favourite model is that of the boy who spends his whole patrimony on his father’s funeral and becomes a beggar, but after a remarkable series of adventures turns up Prime ^Minister of the land. But in actual Korean life it has never been noted that contempt for money is a leading characteristic of officialdom. Far from it. There is also the type of the evil-minded woman who was found weeping upon her husband’s grave, but when asked why she was inconsolable, she replied that she was moisten- ing the grave with her tears so that the grass would grow the sooner, for only then could she think of marrying again. Korea is rich in tales of how a man’s honour or a woman’s virtue has been called in question, and just as the fatal moment came the blow was averted by some miraculous vindication ; as when a hairpin tossed into the air fell and pierced the solid FOLK-LORE 377 rock, or an artery was severed and the blood ran white as milk, or the cart which was to carry the traduced but innocent official to his execution could not be moved an inch, even by seven yoke of oxen, until the superscription “ traitor ” was changed to that of “ patriot.” These are but a few of the standard models, and in examining them we find that they are all highly exaggerated cases, the in- ference apparently being that the greater includes the less, and that if boys and girls, youths and maidens, men and women, acted with virtue and discretion under these extreme circum- stances, how much more should the reader do so under less trying conditions. But the result is that, as Confucianism proposes no adequate motive for such altruistic conduct and provides no adequate punishment for delinquency, the stories are held in a sort of contemptuous tolerance without the least attempt to profit by them or to apply them to actual conduct. This tendency is well illustrated in another phase of Korean life. When asked why his people do not try to emulate the example of the West in industrial achievements, the Korean points to the distant past and cites the case of Yi Sun-sin, who made the first iron-clad war-ship mentioned in history; and he actually believes Korea has beaten the world, though Korea to-day does not possess even a single fourth-class gunboat. Even so they point to these fantastic tales to illustrate the tone of Korean society, when, in truth, these principles are as obsolete as the once famous tor- toise boat. It should be noted that while the models given in the “ Five Rules of Conduct ” are mostly from the Chinese, yet a vast number of the tales which are based on these and which pass from mouth to mouth, are purely Korean in their setting. The Confucian imprint is there, but translated into terms of Korean life and feeling. I have already hinted that the more recondite and esoteric ideas of Confucianism are entirely waved aside and only the practical application is brought to the fore. It is to this fact 378 THE PASSING OF KOREA that we must attribute the virility of Confucian ethics as a code, even though there be no effort to live up to it. These ideas are such as belong to every religion and every civilisation, and it is just because they are fundamental principles of all human society that they survive, at least, as a recognised standard. They are axiomatic, and to deny them would be to disregard the plainest dictates of common sense. These stories form, as I have said, the “ Sunday-school literature of the Koreans, and they are taken, as in the ^^Tst, by a select few on select occasions. Everyone knows about them and has a general familiarity with their contents, just as every Western child knows about David and Goliath, Jonah and the whale, Daniel and the lions; but just as in the Western nursery Mother Goose, Cinderella, Jack the Giant-killer, Alice in Won- derland and the Brownies are more in evidence than religious tales, so in Korea the dragon or fox story, the ipp and elf and goblin story, are told far oftener than the tales illustrative of Confucian ethics. When we come to Buddhistic stories, we find a larger volume and a wider range. Being a mystical religion. Buddhism gives a much wider play to the imagination; being a spectacular reli- gion, it gives opportunity for greater dramatic effect; carrying the soul beyond the gra\ e and postulating a definite system of rewards and punishments, it affords a much broader stage for its characters to play their parts upon. The Confucian tales are short, intended each to point some particular moral, and con- ciseness is desirable ; but with the Buddhistic tales it is different. The plots are often long and intricate, the interrelation of human events is more carefully worked out and the play of human passions is given more extended illustration. They approach much closer to what we would call genuine fiction than do the Confucian tales. The latter are mere anecdotes, and afford no such stimulus to the imagination as the Buddhistic stories do. Another reason why Buddhist tales are so common is that Buddhism was predominant in the peninsula for a period of FOLK-LORE 3/9 over a thousand years, and antedated the general spread of Confucianism by many centuries. Coming in long before lit- erature, as such, had made any headway in the peninsula, Buddhism took a firm hold upon all ranks of society, deter- mined the mould into which the thought of the nation should be poured, and gained an ascendency over the Korean imagina- tion which has never been successfully disputed. It is probable that at the present time three stories hinge upon Buddhism, where one draws its motive from Confucian principles. The former cult entered Korea about three centuries after Christ, but it was not until iioo A. D. that there was any serious rivalry between it and Confucianism. By that time Buddhism had moulded Korean fancy to its own shape, and had constituted itself some sort of substitute for genuine religion ; but Confucianism never went deeper than the reason, and so the former cult, by the priority of its occupancy and by its deeper touch, made an impression that the latter code of morals has never been able to efface. Another cause of the survival of Buddhistic ideas, especially in folk-lore, even after Confucianism became nominally the state religion, was that the latter gave such an inferior place to women. Buddhism makes no such invidious comparisons. The very nature of the cult forbids it, and Korean history is full of inci- dents showing that women were equal sharers in what were believed to be the benefits of religion. Confucianism, on the other hand, gave woman a subordinate place, afforded no outlet to her religious aspirations, and made child-bearing her only service. It is a literary cult, a scholastic religion, and women are de- barred from its most sacred arcana. They retorted by clinging the closer to Buddhism, where they found food for their devo- tional instincts, albeit the superstition was Egyptian in its dark- ness. In this they were not opposed. Confucianism, the man’s religion, seemed to fancy that by letting despised woman grovel in the darkness its own prestige would be enhanced. The fact remains that one of the most striking peculiarities about Korean society to-day is that while the men are all nominal Confucian- 380 THE PASSING OF KOREA ists, the women are nearly all Buddhists, or at least devotees of one or other of those forms of superstition into which Buddhism has merged itself in the peninsula. What would have become of Buddhism and the monasteries if it had not been for the queens of the present dynasty? Even the last twenty years give abundant evidence of its potent power in the female breast. It is the mothers who mould the children’s minds ; and every boy’s and girl’s mind is saturated with Buddhistic or semi-Buddhistic ideas long before the Thousand Character Classic is put into his hands. The imagination and fancy have become enthralled, and, while it is true that in time the boy will be ridiculed into pro- fessing contempt for Buddhism, the girl clings to it with a tenacity born of sixteen hundred years of inherited tendency. It is, of course, a modified Buddhism. The basic fetichism and animism which the Korean inherits from untold antiquity has become so thoroughly mixed with his Buddhism that we can hardly tell where the one leaves off and the other begins. A*e are speaking now of the common folk-tales and not the written literature of the country. The formal writings of the past five centuries are Confucian, and the models have been those of the Chinese sage ; but they are not for the mass of the people, and they mean even less to the common crowd than Shakespeare and Milton mean to the average Englishman or American. I must mention one more reason for the survival of the Bud- dhist element in Korean folk-tales ; that is, its localising tendency. The story plays about some special spot; it clings to its own hallowed locus, and without this it would lose force, just as the story of William Tell or King Arthur or Evangeline would suffer if made general as to locality. It is because the Korean can lead you to a mountain-side and say, “ Here is where INIuhak the monk stood when he pronounced the fatal words that foretold the great invasion,” or show you the very tree, now centuries old, that Tosan planted — it is because of these definite local elements that these tales are anchored so firmly in the Korean consciousness. Any Confucian story might have occurred any- FOLK-LORE 381 where at any time. But old Diamond Mountain carries as many tales of famous monks as it bears pines, and the shoulders of old Halla Mountain are shrouded in as heavy a cloak of Buddhist lore as of the driving mist from off the southern seas. The style and make-up of the Buddhistic story are almost infinite in variety. What we may call the inner circle of Bud- dhist philosophy never appears in these tales, but through them is constantly heard the cry for the release from the bane of exist- ence. The scorn of merely earthly honours is seen on every page. Well indeed might the women of Korea be willing, nay, long, to sink into some nirvana and forget their sorrows. Bud- dhism is consistent at least in this, that it acknowledges the futility of mere existence and says to every man, “ What are you here for ? ” The plots of Buddhist stories are too long to give in extenso, but a few salient points can be indicated. The monastery is the retreat to which the baffled hero retires, and in which he receives his literary and military education, and from it he sallies forth to overthrow the enemies of his country and claim his lawful place before the King. Or, again, a monastery may be the scene of an awful crime which the hero discloses, and thus vindicates the right. There is no witch nor wizard nor fairy godmother in Korea. It is the silent monk who appears at the crucial point and stays the hand of death with a potent drug, or warns the hero of his danger, or tells him how to circumvent his foes. Now and again, like Elijah of old, a monk dares to face the King and charge him with his faults, or give enigmatical advice which delivers the land from some terrible fate. Often a wandering monk is shown a kindness by some boy, and in after years by his mysterious power raises the lad to affluence and fame. In these days one never connects the idea of scholarship with a Buddhist monastery, but the folk-lore of Korea abounds in stories in which the hero retires to a monastery and learns not only letters but astrology and geomancy. Even military science seems to have been taught in these retreats. From no other 382 THE PASSING OF KOREA source do we derive so much information about the monasteries in the middle ages as we do from these same stories. While in Europe the monastery was the repository of learning and culture, to which the war-worn veteran retired to do penance for his sanguinary career, in Korea it was the school in which the young man learned the science of war as well. Folk-lore shows the part that Buddhism has played in de- termining many other phases of Korean life as seen to-day. Take, for instance, the penal code. The punishments until lately inflicted upon criminals were evidently copied from the repre- sentations of the Buddhistic hell. Of course these originally ■emanated for man’s imagination, and one might argue that the horrors of the Buddhist hell are borrowed from the system of punishments in vogue in Korea, were it not that the system was brought complete from India by way of China. The crystal- lisation of these inhumanities into religious forms has perpetu- ated the ancient and gruesome horrors, and prevented the advent of humaner forms of punishment commensurate with the general advance in civilisation. Buddhistic stories have bred in the Korean a repugnance to taking the life of any animal. To make blood flow is beneath the dignity of any decent man, and though Buddhism has been politically under the ban for five centuries, the butcher has, until recently, been counted with the chilban, or “ seven kinds,” which include mountebanks, harlots, slaves and sorceresses. And yet this repugnance to taking life does not prevent the most revolting cruelty to animals of all kinds. Many other points might be cited to show how Buddhist lore has tended to perpetuate ideas that are not only outside the Confucian system but directly antagonistic thereto. And this brings us to our next point, the antagonism be- tween these two religions. During the whole of the Koryu dynasty (918-1392) a bitter fight was kept up between the ad- herents of these two cults. No one was then both a Buddhist and a Confucianist, as is quite common to-day. Sanguinary FOLK-LORE 383 ■struggles took place in which Buddhism was uniformly success- ful; but there was always left the nucleus of an opposition, and in the end, when Buddhism had dragged the nation in the mire and made her contemptible, the Confucian element came to the surface again, and by one bold stroke effected, at least on the sur- face of things, one of the most sweeping changes that any people has ever experienced, comparable to the French Revolution. This struggle between the two systems could not but leave an indelible mark upon the folk-lore of the country. A volume ■could be filled with stories illustrating in detail the successes now of one side and now of the other. Once when the Confucian element prevailed and the Buddhist pontifex was condemned to death, he foretold that when his head fell his blood would flow white like milk to vindicate his cause. It turned out even so, and his executioners bowed to the logic of the occasion and rein- stated the formerly despised cult. Again a raven was the bearer of a missive to the King bidding him to hasten to the Queen's quarters and shoot an arrow through the zither-case. He obeyed, and found that the arrow had taken effect in the body of the high priest, who had taken advantage of the King’s absence to attack the honour of the Queen. In one instance a test was made to see whether Confucian or Buddhistic principles were better able to control the passions. A leading representative of each of the •cults were subjected to the blandishments of a courtesan, with the result that Confucianism scored a notable triumph. So far as we have found, Korean folk-lore accords the palm of victory in a majority of cases to the Buddhist side. This is doubtless because Buddhism made far greater use of folk-tales to impress itself upon the people than did Confucianism. The latter is the more reasonable cult, but Buddhism chose the better, or at least the surer, part by capturing the imagination and monopolising the mystical element which is so prominent in Ori- ental character. After Confucianism had secured a firm hold upon the government, it cared little what Buddhism did in the moral sphere. All physical contest between them came to an 384 THE PASSING OF KOREA end, and they became blended in the Korean consciousness in so far as the antipodes can blend. This also has left its mark upon Korean folk-lore. The longest and most thoroughly elabo- rated stories show Buddhi^sm and Confucianism hand in hand. The former supplies the dramatic element, and the latter the ethical. The motive is Confucian, the action Buddhistic. Under the head of shamanistic stories I include all tales which hinge upon shamanism, fetichism, animism and the like. They are the stories which appeal to the basic element in the Korean. Before he was a Confucianist, before he was a Buddhist, he was a nature worshipper. True enough, the monk can scare him with his pictures of a physical hell, but it is as nothing to the fear he has of the spirit which inhabits yonder tree on the hillside. The Confucianist can make the chills run up and down his back by an inventory of the evil passions of the heart ; but it will not begin to compare with the horror which seizes him when in the middle of the night a weasel overturns a jar in the kitchen, and he feels sure that a tokgabi is at work among his lares and penates. The merchant will not be moved by a homily on the duty of fair dealing with one’s fellow-men, but he will spend all day spelling out from the calendar a lucky day on which to carry out a plan for “ doing ” an unwary customer. Countless are the stories based upon these themes. The spirits of mountain, stream, tree, rock or cave play through Korean fiction as the fairy, goblin or genius does through the pages of the “ Arabian Nights.” This portion of our theme is of greater interest than almost any other, for while Buddhism and Confucianism are both impor- tations, and bring with them many ideas originally alien to the Korean mind, we have here the product of the indigenous and basic elements of their character. And yet, even after the lapse of so many centuries, it is difficult to segregate the original Korean and the imported Chinese ingredients in these tales ; but we may be sure that here if anywhere we shall come near to the genuine Korean. FOLK-LORE 385 First come the stories based upon the belief that animals can acquire the power to transform themselves into men. These are among the stories that children love best. There was the wild boar that drank of the water that had lain for twenty years in a human skull, and thus acquired power to assume the human shape, but with this fatal limitation, that if a dog looked him in the face he would be obliged to resume his natural shape. There is the fox which turned into a woman, an Oriental Circe, and worked the destruction of an empire. Now and again a centena- rian toad assumes human shape, and acts as valet to the tiger, who is masquerading as a gentleman. A serpent turns into a beautiful maiden and lures a man to the brink of destruction, but, being thwarted, changes its tactics and infests his body with a myriad of little snakes, from which he is delivered by the sparrows, who kindly peck holes in his skin and let the reptiles out. There is a clear line of demarcation between the good and the bad animals. The fox, tiger, wild boar, serpent and toad are always bad, while the rabbit, frog, tortoise and dragon are invariably good. As the tiger is the most destructive animal in Korea, we are not surprised to find a great number of stories, telling how he turned into a girl and came crying to the door of a house in order to lure out its inmates. This is the “ bug- aboo ” story with which Korean children are frightened into obedience. Many are the wonders worked by the tokgahis, the imps that delight to make trouble in the household. No Korean will pro- fess to have seen one or to have been the victim of his tricks, but every Korean knows of someone else who has so suffered. They believe that these imps are the spirits of wicked men who have been refused entrance into the place of the blessed, and have no option but to haunt their former places of abode ; or they may be the spirits of good people who have died by violence, or under other painful circumstances, and cannot go to paradise because of the desire of revenge which burns in them. Sometimes they take the shape of a man with the lower half of his body gone. 386 THE PASSING OF KOREA sometimes that of a flying man or child. At other times they appear in the shape of fire or lightning, or a crash as of thunder. Many stories are told of how these tormented spirits have leagued themselves with men, promising that the unholy com- pact will bring riches and power. This corresponds to the witch- craft of the West. By the aid of these familiar spirits many a deed of darkness is done ; but the promises always fail, and the man becomes pinched and pale, and he gradually wastes away. It is only by breaking the compact that he can save himself from disaster. The things the tokgabi dreads the most are silver, a red colour and a tree that has been struck by lightning. iMen may break the spell by hanging about the house cloths dipped in a red dye. This barrier the spirit cannot pass, and after four days of waiting he departs never to come again. His dread of silver reminds us of the superstition in the MTst, that in order to shoot a ghost one must load the gun with a silver piece as well as the regular charge. If a tokgabi seizes a man, it always lays hold of his top-knot ; for this reason it is that so many Koreans wear a little sih'er pin in the end of that ornamental member. If a tree is struck by lightning, the boys of the neighbourhood will hasten to secure splinters of the wood to carry in their pouches as a charm against the fiends. This meddlesome sprite is a sort of Korean Puck, and any casualty whose cause is not patent is laid at his door. One of his favourite pastimes is to bewitch the rice-kettle and make the co\'er fall in. The cover is a trifle larger than the kettle’s mouth, and the trick would seem to be impossible ; but if the cover were cold and the kettle made very hot, the expansion of the metal might make even this possible. This may have occurred once or twice in all the centuries, and it is still cited as evidence of the existence of these imps. The tokgabi seldom plays the lead- ing part in a Korean story, but he flits in and out and adds spice to the narrative. Prominent among the folk-tales are those of the Uncle Remus FOLK-LORE 387 type ; and it is very commonly the rabbit that outwits his stronger enemies. A wicked tortoise, in search of a rabbit’s liver to use as medicine in healing the sea-king’s daughter, inveigled a rabbit into riding on his back across the water to an island that the tortoise said was a rabbit’s paradise. When well out from shore, the tortoise bade the rabbit prepare to die, for his liver was needed down below. After a moment’s thought the rabbit laughed and said : “ You might have had it without all this trouble. We are made with removable livers, so that after eating too much we can throw our livers out and wash them and keep them cool. I had just laid mine out to dry when you came, and your story was so fascinating that I forgot the liver entirely. You are welcome to it if you will let me show you where it is.’” So the rabbit got safely back to shore and had a good laugh at the expense of the tortoise. Spirits are everywhere, and they turn up on the most unlikely occasion. Even the door-hinges or the chopsticks may be the abode of an imp who has the power to change a man’s whole destiny. As a rule, they seem to be on the watch for someone to injure them, for only so can they gain the power they crave. These stories deal with the lowly and humble things of life, and it is in them that Korean humour shows itself to the best advantage. Their influence is very great, and it may be said with some degree of confidence that they define the religion of far more Koreans than do the more high-sounding names of Bitd- dhism and Confucianism. If they had been left to themselves' and had not been made the dumping-ground for other people’s religions, it is probable that they would have developed some such pantheon as that of the Greeks ; but even as it is, we find them worshipping the spirits of grove and rock and mountain with a fervour that neither Buddhism nor Confucianism can arouse. Y’e will now consider briefly the legends of Korea. Under this heading we include all supernatural or extra-natural inci- dents, believed by the credulous to form a part of the history 388 THE PASSING OF KOREA of the country. These stories are always short and pithy and are truly indigenous. Most of them are of great antiquity and antedate any considerable Japanese or Chinese influence. Many legends deal with the founding of the various dynas- ties and kingdoms that have flourished here from time to time. We find upon examination that the egg plays a very important part in the origin of ancient heroes. To be sure, the Tangun, the most ancient of all, had another and a unique origin. A bear, by patient Avaiting in a cave, at the command of the great spirit became a Avoman. Whan-ung, the son of the Creator, sought and found her, and she bore a son Avho is knoAvn as Tangun, contemporary Avith Noah. The founder of the great southern kingdom of Silla (57 b. C.-918 a. d.) Avas brought forth from a gigantic egg that Avas found in a forest. The founder of Koguryu in the north came also from an egg of superhuman origin. One of the early heroes of Silla came from an egg that floated in from the sea in a chest. The origin of the three heroes of Quelpart is different. They arose from a hole in the ground. The founder of Koryu had for mother the daughter of the sea-king, the Korean Neptune. Another mighty man came from beneath a boulder in the shape of a golden toad. Closely connected Avith these are the tales Avhich deal Avith the omens and signs that heralded the coming of momentous events. It Avas ahvays the evil fortune that Avas thus fore- shadoAved. Fear is a main element in the religion of all semi- civilised people, and this fear has made them quick to detect the signs of coming danger. Before the kingdom of Pakche fell, imps fleAV through the palace corridors, .screaming, “Pakche is fallen,” and then dived into the earth. Digging at the point Avhere they disappeared, the King found a tortoise on Avhose back Avas Avritten, “ Pakche's sun is at the zenith,” Avhich meant that it Avas ready to go doAvn. In other cases, tigers have come doAvn from the mountains and Avandered in the streets of the capital ; the sea has turned red like blood ; meteors, comets and eclipses have appeared; abnormal births, either human or animal, haA'e FOLK-LORE 389 taken place; a white fox has crossed the road in front of the King, insects have fallen in showers, thunder has been heard in winter, fruit trees have blossomed late in the fall, a white bow has pierced the sun, red snow has fallen, wailing sounds have proceeded from the royal tombs, a city or temple gate has been blown down, clouds or frogs have fought with each other. All these and many more are met with in Korean legend, and every one of them has meant death or destruction or some other dire calamity. It is interesting to note how closely some of these correspond to the signs which were dreaded by the ancient Romans. Among the signs which predict good fortune, the most prominent are the meeting with a white deer, the finding of a white pheasant or a white crow, or the discovery of a stem of barley with two stalks. But many happy events have been foretold by dreams. The founder of the present dynasty is said to have dreamed that he saw a sheep running over the hills, and as it ran its horns and tail dropped off. This meant that the two upper strokes and the lower stroke of the Chinese character for sheep had been taken away, leaving the character for king! Yi Sun-sin, who saved Korea in 1592, had a dream in which he saw himself defending a tree which vandals were attempting to cut down. A maiden dreamed that she saw a dragon enter her father’s ink-water bottle. When she awoke she took the bottle and hid it until in after years her own son was ready to go up to Seoul and take the examinations. She gave it to him, and promised that the dragon would help him take his degree. It did, and he became Prime Minister. Prophecy plays an important part in Korean legendary lore. Of course, it is almost all ex post facto prophecy, but the Koreans still cling to it. Most of the leading events in Korean history since the tenth century are said to have been foretold at some earlier time. There does not seem to have been any prophetic office, but now and again a monk or a scholar has been moved to tell his vision of the future. The monk Muhak objected to the site upon which it was proposed to build the 390 THE PASSING OF KOREA first palace at Seoul, and affirmed that if it was built there a great calamity would overtake the country in just two hundred years. His words were unheeded, and just two hundred years later the armies of Hideyoshi landed on the coast of southern Korea. To prove that these prophecies were not all made after the event, the Korean points to those prophecies which ha\'e existed for centuries and are as yet unfulfilled. The most strik- ing of these is that the present dynasty will be followed by one that will have its capital at Kye-ryong IMountain in the south. Another affirmed that this dynasty would have great difficulty in passing its five-hundredth anniversary. As that year came just after the China-Japan war, many Koreans watched with the utmost solicitude to see whether the dangerous point would be passed in safety. The latest one to come to light is that, “ When white pines grow in Korea, the northern half of the peninsula will go to the Tartar and the southern half to the shrimp.” The Koreans interpret the “ white pines ” to be the telegraph poles, and Tartar to be Russia, and the shrimp to be Japan; for the islands of Japan are noted as being in the shape of a shrimp. ^^dlen the monk Tosan in 918 ascended Songak and chose the site for the capital of the Koryu dynasty, he made a mistake, for when he went to take another look in the morning he saw far away to the south the peaks of Samgak IMountains peeping above the nearer range, thus forming the dreaded kytibong, or “ spying peak ” ; and for this reason he said that within five hundred years the dynasty would fall before another whose capital should be at the foot of Samgak. Four hundred and se^■enty-six years later his word came true. Another style of legend deals with the supernatural aid that was given in important crises in history. When Chumong fled from home before his brothers and came to an impassable river, the fish came to the surface and formed a solid bridge upon which he crossed to safety. \Mien the capital of Silla was attacked by wild men, strange warriors appeared with ears like FOLK-LORE 391 bamboo leaves and delivered the town. The next day the King- found his father’s gra\'e strewn with the leaves, and he then knew that his father’s spirit had led forth an army of spirits and had delivered him. The battlefields of Korea, as of every other land, form the background for many a thrilling tale. When the army of Koguryu went forth to conquer Puyu, they heard the sound of clashing arms in Yimul forest. The leaders pushed forward and found swords and spears clashing against each other in mimic battle, but wielded by invisible hands. It was deemed a good omen. The weapons were taken, and with them the foe was conquered. When rebels besieged Kyong-ju, a star fell in the city, a sign of destruction. The rebels rejoiced; but the stubborn general within, defying even the fates, sent up a kite with a lantern attached, and the rebels, thinking that it was the star and that the decree of heaven had been reversed, raised the siege and decamped. At one time or another almost every foot of Korean soil has been the scene of battle, and the tales of wonderful marks- manship, heroic daring, gigantic strength, subtle stratagem, in- ventive genius, intrepid horsemanship and hairbreadth escape by field and flood are among the commonest household words in Korea. Who can worthily sing the praises of Yi Yu-song, against whose body bullets flattened themselves and fell harmless to the ground ; or of Kwak-Cha-u, the “ General of the Red Robe,” who to-day would be falling upon the enemy in Chulla and to-morrow would take breakfast in Kyong-ju, a thousand li away, because he had the power to “wrinkle the ground”? He would make the ground contract before him, and, after he had stepped over it, expand it again and find that he had gone a hundred li. Many are the dei e.v niachina like this, whereby men have been saved from seemingly desperate situations. Women, too, come in for their full share of attention, from the time of Yuwha, the mermaid princess mother of Chumong, down to the time of Nonga, the dancing-girl patriot, who seized 392 THE PASSING OF KOREA the Japanese general, her enforced paramour, and leaped to death with him from the wall of Chin-ju, in the days of the great invasion. Most notable was the Queen of the last King of Pakche, who, upon the approach of the ruthless enemy, led her maids to the top of a beetling precipice and threw herself into the water below rather than suffer indignity at the hands of the conquerors. That is the Nakwhaam, or “ Precipice of the Falling Flowers,” a name of most poetic beauty. Tongman, the first woman ruler in Silla, divined, from the fire in the frogs’ eyes, that the enemy had crossed the border of her realm. Seo, the faithful wife, followed her husband to Japan on the flying boulder and became a queen there. She wove the magic silk on which the King of Silla sacrificed, and thus brought back the light of heaven to his realm, which, since her departure, had been shrouded in Egyptian darkness. There was also the Korean Judith, who, during the occupation of Pyeng-yang by the Japanese in 1592, brought her brother over the wall at night to smite off the head of her captor, who slept bolt upright at a table with a sword in each hand and with only one eye shut at a time. Even after his head had rolled to the floor, he arose in his place and hurled one of his swords with such tremendous force that it went clean through a massive wooden pillar. There are stories of women notorious for their wickedness, as, for instance, the Princess of Ang-nang, who married a prince of Yemak and one night went and cut open the head of the big drum which, without touch of mortal hand, always emitted a booming sound when an enemy was approaching. Soon after this messengers came hurrying with the news that the Ang-nang forces were crossing the border, but the King laughed at it, saying that the drum had given no warning. Too late it was found that the drum was destroyed. A fruitful source of Korean legend is the wisdom shown by magistrates and governors in deciding knotty questions of law. These bear witness to the rich fund of humour in the FOLK-LORE 393 Korean, which keeps him cheerful and patient through centuries of — what shall we say ? — anything but ideal government. A boy accidentally shot his parent and came weeping to the prefect, who had not the heart to execute the penalty of the law on him. But the prefect’s son, coming at the moment and seeing his father’s perplexity, asked the cause, and, being told, exclaimed : “ The boy must be killed. If his heart had been right, he would not have waited for the law to punish him; he would have killed himself. It is plain that his tears are only to excite pity.” So the prefect sent the boy up to Seoul for execution. A hunter had wounded a fox and was chasing it down when a dog ran out of a house and caught the animal. The owner of the dog claimed the game. The magistrate decided as fol- lows : “ It is evident that what the hunter was after was the animal’s skin, while the dog thought only of its flesh. Let each have what he was after.” Early one morning at a country inn a good horse was stolen and a poor spavined brute was left in its place. The prefect was appealed to. He ordered that the miserable animal that had been left be deprived of water for two days and then set free upon the road. Of course it went straight for its former master’s house in a distant village, and there the stolen horse was found. When we speak of myth, we take the word in its strict meaning, — some extra-natural origin of a natural phenomenon. At the very start we must say that the Korean imagination has never been capable of those grand flights of fancy which pro- duced the enchanting myths of Greece. Nor has it been virile enough or elemental enough to evolve the stern heroes of the Norse mythology. The Greek, the Roman, the Scandinavian pantheons are filled with figures that loom gigantic and awful, Avhile in Korea these agencies all seem, somehow, less than man ; sometimes craftier, often stronger, but seldom worthier or better. So, instead of giving us a Phoebus Apollo to lead out the chariot 394 THE PASSING OF KOREA of the sun, the Korean gives us the reason why the bedbug is so very flat. Instead of fancying that the cirrus clouds are flocks of sheep feeding in ethereal pastures, the Korean tells us why sparrows hop on both feet while magpies walk by putting one foot before the other. The Greek mythology is telescopic, the Korean microscopic. If you want to know the origin of fire, of the precession of the equinoxes, of echo or of lightning, you must go to the Greek; but if you desire to learn why the ant has such a small waist, or why the louse has a black spot on its breast, or why crabs walk sideways, you must consult Korean lore. A single sample will suffice. The flies and the sparrows had a quarrel and agreed to arbitrate. The governor of Pyeng-an was chosen to settle the matter. The flies charged the sparrows with stealing the rice from the harvest fields and of building their nests under the eaves of the houses and causing all sorts of disturbances. With- out waiting to hear the other side of the case, the governor ordered the sparrows to be beaten on the legs. As the blows began to fall, the sparrows hopped up and down in pain and begged that their side of the story be heard. The governor complied, and then the advocate of the sparrows charged the flies with laying eggs in the standing rice and ruining whole crops, with entering houses and defiling the food and waking the sleepers in the early morning. The governor would hear no more, but ordered the flies to be beaten unmercifully. It was their turn to be humble then. They came before the governor and, rubbing their hands together as Koreans always do when supplicating, asked that they be let off. After thinking it over, the governor pardoned both sides, but, in order that neither the sparrows nor the flies should forget the warning, he decreed that for all time the sparrows should hop instead of walk, and th.at whenever a fly alighted he should rub his hands together, as they had just done before him ! In like manner Korean lore tells why flounders have both eyes on the same side of th.e head, why shad have so many FOLK-LORE 395 bones, wny the full moon contains a picture of a tree with a rabbit beneath, wh}^ sorghum seeds are enveloped in a red case, why clams are simply birds that have fallen into the sea, how the serpent and the octopus had a fight and as a result the ser- pent had to surrender his four feet to the octopus, how the earthworm had his feet all taken away and given to the centi- pede, — all these and many another cpiaint and curious freak of nature is explained to the satisfaction of the Korean. Thus far we have been able to classify roughly the different types of Korean folk-tales, but outside these limits there is a whole realm of miscellaneous fiction, so varied in its character as tO' defy classification; and we can enumerate only individual types. I should include under one head all those tales which draw their inspiration from the workings of human passions. Of the love-stoi')^, as we know it in the West, Korean lore is entirely innocent. Social conditions, which prevent personal contact between men and women of a marriageable age, suffi- ciently account for this ; and it is this limitation along the line of legitimate affection that is to blame for a wide range of popular literature which cannot be discussed with propriety. Love between man and woman is a thing never spoken of among respectable Koreans. Many tales are based upon the passion for revenge. With- out doubt the prevalence of this type results from a state of society in which even-handed and blindfold justice finds no place; where the principle, “ to the victor belongs the spoils,” applies equally in the political, industrial and social life. It is a condi- tion in which “ pull ” in its most sordid sense is the main asset of the politician, the merchant and even the coolie. Here the passion for revenge has daily and hourly food to feed upon, and we see a clear reflection of it in the folk-tales. A woman has been robbed of her ancestral burial-place by a bad prefect, and she is told by a fortune-teller that she will recover the property as soon as she is able to make one egg stand upon another without falling off. One night, several 396 THE PASSING OF KOREA years after this, the King of Korea, masquerading like Haroun al Raschid of old, peeped through a window and saw an aged woman trying to make one egg stand upon another, but always without success. But even as he looked, behold ! the impossible was done. He demanded admittance and, after he had heard the story, gave the woman ample revenge. A young girl whose father and brother have been wrongfully done to death by the Prime IMinister retires to a mountain retreat, and practises the sword dance with the purpose of becoming so proficient that she will be called upon to dance before the court and thus will secure an opportunity to kill the Prime Minister’s son. Meanwhile that son has been disowned by the Prime Minister and wanders away among the mountains, where he acci- dentally meets the girl and persuades her to marry him, prom- ising to let her go when her destiny calls. The boy has been told by a fortune-teller that he will die on his eighteenth birthday. Neither of them tells the other what is in store, and the girl never dreams that she has married the man that she must kill if she is to keep her oath. It would take too long to unravel the plot, but the reader can see that all sorts of complications are possible. Korea has also its stories of detectives and their wiles. The custom of sending government detectives to the country to spy upon governors and prefects and to right the wrongs of the people forms an easy hook upon which to hang many an inter- esting tale. These are crude compared with the complicated plots of the West, and yet now and again situations occur that would do credit to Sherlock Holmes himself. In the human heart there is a passionate love of justice. In the end the right must prevail. Koreans evidently think so, for though there are tragedies enough in actual life there are none in Korean fiction. Things come out right in the end. The Korean may be much of a fatalist, but he is not a pessimist. His fatalism is of that cheerful type that leads him to take things as they come. -M^e may rightly say that the comic muse fills the whole stage of Korean drama. It is the villain only that gets killed off. FOLK-LORE 397 This craving for justice amounts to a passion; perhaps on the principle that things that are least accessible are the most desired. This feeling is expressed in a multitude of stories in which justice, long delayed, has at last been done. The Korean story-teller has the same penchant for getting the hero into hot water that the Western novelist has, but the Korean always gets his hero out, which is more than can be said for our more real- istic style, in which the hero is often left suspended over the coals. Stories based upon the passion for fame generally take a literary turn. They cluster about the great national examina- tions. The enormous influence that these examinations have exercised on the life of the Korean is shadowed forth in count- less stories relating to the open strife of the competitors, their attempts to cheat or to bribe the examiners, to substitute spu- rious manuscripts, to forge names, if by any means whatever they may arrive at the Mecca of official position. And right here appears the relative status of literary and military life. The literary man is distinctly above the military. No fame is suffi- cient that rests merely upon military success. There are a very few exceptions. All Korean Action goes to show that military glory is thrust upon a man, while it is only literary fame that he eagerly seeks. Avarice is also one of the chords that are struck in Korean tales, but it is usually only as a secondary theme. Rarely is a story devoted exclusively or even mainly to the illustration of this passion. The Koreans are too happy-go-lucky, and they have too great a contempt for niggardliness to make the sordid acquisitive faculty a pleasing theme in fiction. On the other hand, the tales of generosity and self-sacrifice, of prodigal and even reprehensible bounty, are common enough, for they fit the spirit of the people and go hand in hand with their optimism. A lad goes forth to seek his fortune. Coming to a village, he meets another boy who is grieving because he has no money with which to bury a parent. Our hero gives the unknown lad 398 THE PASSING OF KOREA every cent he has, and then fares on, a beggar. Of how he tramps up and down the country, and finally comes to the capital and becomes a general, of how the enemy have in their ranks a veritable Goliath, of how our hero goes and challenges him only to find that it is the very person whom he had befriended, and how a happy peace is consummated, — all this forms the kind of story that the boys and girls of Korea can listen to by the hour and still wish for more. The peculiar customs of the country are enshrined in the folk- lore. The unique stone-fight ; the tug-of-war ; the detestable widow-stealing and the still more horrible custom called posain, which is veritable murder, committed for the purpose of fore- stalling the predictions of the fortune-teller that the bride will soon become a widow; the wiles of the ajiins, or hangers-on at country prefectures, who are looked upon much as Judean pub- licans were, — all these themes and many more, based upon national customs and traits, swell the volume of Korean folk-lore. It is natural that a land as old as this should be filled with relics of other days, and that they should be surrounded with a halo of popular veneration. Even though many of these relics are now lost, like the Holy Grail, yet the stories remain. There was the golden yardstick of Silla, and the pair of jade flutes that refused to sound if taken away from the town of Kyong-ju. There was the magic stone in which one could look and discover the nature of any disease. There was the magic robe which would render its wearer invisible, and the King’s stone, from which the ashes of cremated sovereigns of Silla were cast into the Japan Sea. Stories cluster about the dolmens and cromlechs that are found all over Korea, but whose origin no one seems to know. Among the miscellaneous tales are those which tell of the introductions of A'arious things into Korea, or their invention. St. Patrick drove the snakes out of Ireland, but Prince Yunsan introduced them into Korea. He wanted a few to keep under his bed, but as there were none in Korea he sent to India and secured FOLK-LORE 399 a cargo of them. As they were being unloaded, some escaped into woods, and ever since that time Korea has had her ophidians like other lands. The sckntific value of a study of folk-lore is the opportunity it affords for comparison. We want to know what are the affin- ities of Korean folk-lore in order to establish its ethnological relationships. Such comparison seems to be possible when we note that in Korea we have stories that are almost the exact counterpart of that of Cinderella, The Forty Thieves, Brer Rabbit, Haroun al Raschid, Jonah and the Whale, Red Riding Hood, Aladdin’s Lamp, Sinbad the Sailor and many another type familiar to the scientific folk-lorist of the West. PROVERBS In spite of the lack of a literature that is largely accessible to the common classes, the people have developed a keenness of insight and a terseness of expression that is surprising. The lack of books has resulted in a refinement of the art of story- telling, and this in turn has brought out a large volume of terse and witty sayings which correspond to our saws and proverbs. The Koreans use these much more frequently than we do, and it adds a spice to their talk that is often lacking in ours. Where we would use the very humdrum formula “ Make assurance doubly sure,” they would sa}^ “ Even though the crab is boiled, you must pull its legs off first and eat them.” There is a whole sermon in the proverb, “ A finger prick will demand attention, though the worms be eating the heart unknown.” The value of personal observation is illustrated by the saying, “ If you want to know how deep the river is, wade in and see.” “ The blind man stole his own hen and ate it ” is a finely ironical way of saying that the covetous man will overreach himself. Our proverb, “ Lock the barn-door after the horse has been stolen,” is expressed equally well in the Korean, “ Fill out the prescrip- tion after the friends of the sick man have put on mourning.” 400 THE PASSING OF KOREA “ There cannot be a deep valley without there being a hi^h moun- tain ” means that you cannot get something for nothing. The Koreans better our “ Every man’s goose is a gander ” by saying, “ Even the hedgehog says her young are smooth.” “ Making a mountain of a mole-hill” means to the Korean, “Killing a bullock for a feast when a hen would have sufficed.” A frequently observed trait in human nature is touched upon in the saying, “ The man who had his face slapped in Tongjagi waits till he gets to Subingo before he makes faces at his insulter ” ; in other words, he puts some space between before answering. We say that a man must lie upon a bed as he makes it, and in the same way the Korean says that “ The man wFo eats the salt must drink the water.” To “ build a house beside the main road ” is a rather subtle way of saying that “ too many cooks spoil the broth,” for it means that everyone who passes along will criticise and say, “ Why don’t you make this part so and that part thus? ” and in this way the builder will at last find that he has made a botch of the whole job. We have an expressive proverb, “ Jump from the frying-pan into the fire,” but the Korean is abreast of us with his “ Cut off a wart and make a tumor.” “ What looked like blossoms on the dead tree turned out to be only the white mould of decay ” conveys the same idea as our reference to a mirage. “ You cannot sit in the valley and see the new moon set ” means that if we would get the best things we must make an effort. Insincerity is epitomised in the trenchant words, “ Honey on the lips, but a sword in the heart.” It shows a keen insight into human nature to evolve the proverb, “ Never beg from a man who has once been a beggar himself.” How often do fashion’s votaries in every land illustrate the saying, “ He went and caught the dropsy out of envy for the fat man ” ! The Koreans have gotten rather the better of our proverb, “ The pot called the kettle black ” by saying, “ The aspen blamed the pine for rustling so loudly in the wind,” when everyone knows that the least breath of air will set the aspen leaves to quivering. This proverb contains a distinctly poetic touch which is quite lack- FOLK-LORE 401 ing in our culinary metaphor. How true it is the world over that “ Where there are no tigers, wild-cats will be very self- important.” This illustrates the man who is clothed with a little brief authority, or, in part, the fact that “ When the cat ’s away, the mice will play.” The idea that we try to convey in the classical allusion to “ the Greek calends ” the Korean expresses in the more homely way, “ Like blood in a bird’s foot.” The universal desire to escape responsibility is shadowed forth in the proverb, “ The cook blames the table because he cannot pile the food high.” The skill of a Korean cook is proven by his ability to make a pyramid of cakes or sweetmeats two or three times as high as the diameter of the plate. If he fails, he will say that the plate is crooked. “ Even beggars sometimes feast their friends ” corresponds to our “ Every dog has his day.” Exces- sive caution is illustrated by the hyperbole, “ He would not walk beneath the city wall with a load of rotten eggs.” The extremely small value of the load and the extremely small liability of the wall falling and crushing them show the measure of the man’s timidity. We sometimes enumerate our barnyard fowl before their incubation, and in the same way the Korean says that some people “ Make the baby-clothes before the wedding.” It is a profound truth that has many close applications that “ The horse will ^. tripped up if you tether it with too long a rope.” Many a rich man’s son has proved this to be true, not in Korea only. We say truly that “ A scalded cat fears the fire,” and the Korean is just as near the truth when he affirms that “ A man that has once been frightened by a tortoise will jump every time he sees a kettle cover.” One of the most expressive of Korean proverbs characterises the fickle man as “ The character wul written on chamois skin.” Now this character wni is I — I ; but if you write it on chamois skin and then stretch the skin vertically, it will become Q, which is the character il, an entirely different thing. It reminds us of Polonius and the cloud which looked now like a camel, now like a weasel and anon like a whale. These are only a very few of the commoner proverbs that 402 THE PASSING OF KOREA are used as household words. The following might be added to show how the Koreans have picked out for such generalisation those qualities of the heart which are the universal property of the race. “ He ate so fast that he choked.” “ The flower that blooms in the morning is withered by noon.” “ You can recover an arrow shot, but not a word spoken.” “ It is easy to hurt yourself with a sharp-cornered stone.” “ To make a mountain you must carry every load of earth.” “ If you go across-lots, you will fall in with thieves.” “ If the carpenter stretches his marking-cord tight, he will be able to make a straight line.” “ If you use good enough bait, the fish will bite, though it kill.” “ It is foolish to mourn over a broken vase.” “ You can mend now with a trowel what it will take a spade to mend to-morrow.” “ You cannot expect to lift a heavy stone without getting red in the face.” “ He pours instruction into a cow’s ear.” “ All roads lead to Seoul.” CHAPTER XXX RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION B efore beginning the discussion of Korea’s religions we must define the term. This will seem strange to I a Western reader, who knows well enough what a religion is; but with these Eastern people it is ex- tremely difficult to tell where religion leaves off and mere super- stition begins. I think it will be better to take the word in its broadest sense, and consider religion to include every relation which men hold, or fancy that they hold, to superhuman, infra- human or, more broadly still, extra-human phenomena. And we must even supplement this by saying that in the category of extra-human we include the spirits of human beings that have died. Thus defined, we shall see that the religions of Korea form a very intricate study. In no department of Korean life is the antiquity of their civilisation so clearly demonstrated as in the mosaic of religious beliefs that are held, not only by dif- ferent individuals but by any single individual. We have no choice but to deal with these separately, but the reader must ever bear in mind that in every Korean mind there is a jumble of the whole; that there is no antagonism between the different cults, however they may logically refute each other, but that they have all been shaken down together through the centuries until they form a sort of religious composite, from which each man selects his favourite ingredients without ever ignoring the rest. Nor need any man hold exclusively to any one phase of this composite religion. In one frame of mind he may lean toward the Buddhistic element and at another time he may revert to his ancestral fetichism. As a general thing, we may say that the all-round Korean will be a Confucianist when in- 404 THE PASSING OF KOREA society, a Buddhist when he philosophises and a spirit-worshipper when he is in trouble. Now, if you want to know what a man’s religion is, you must watch him when he is in trouble. Then his genuine religion will come out, if he has any. It is for this reason that I conclude that the underlying religion of the Korean, the foundation upon which all else is mere superstructure, is his original spirit-worship. In this term are included animism, sha- manism, fetichism and nature-worship generally. Buddhism was introduced into Korea in the early centuries of our era, and Confucianism followed soon after. The former was too mystical to appeal to the people in its more philosophic aspects, and, as it came in as a fashionable state religion, its spectacular character was its chief recommendation. Confu- cianism, on the other hand, was too cold and materialistic to appeal to the emotional side of his nature, and so became simply a political system, the moral elements of which never found any considerable following among the masses. But both these sys- tems eventually blended with the original spirit-worship in such a way as to form a composite religion. Strange to say, the purest religious notion which the Korean to-day possesses is the belief in Hananim, a being entirely unconnected with either of the imported cults and as far removed from the crude nature- worship. This word Hananim is compounded of the words “ heaven ” (sky) and “ master,” and is the pure Korean counter- part of the Chinese word “ Lord of Heaven.” The Koreans all consider this being to be the Supreme Ruler of the universe. He is entirely separated from and outside the circle of the various spirits and demons that infest all nature. Considered from this standpoint, the Koreans are strictly monotheists, and the attri- butes and powers ascribed to this being are in such consonance with those of Jehovah that the foreigpi missionaries (Protestant) have almost universally accepted the term for use in teaching Christianity. The Roman Catholics have adopted the term Chim-ju, a pure Chinese word of the same significance, but open to the same objection, namely, that it was used long before RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 405 Christianity came, and may therefore be called the name of a heathen god. But while in China it has been found that idols exist bearing the name Chun-ju, the Koreans have never attempted to make any physical representation of Hananim. He has never been worshipped by the use of any idolatrous rites, and the concept of him in the Korean mind is, so far as it goes, in no way derogatory to the revealed character of God himself. It is a moot point whether the Koreans consider the physical heavens to be the person of this god. Some of the more igno- rant ones will deny that he is invisible, and point to the heavens in proof of their statement; but they attribute to him a fatherly care of mankind in sending sunlight and shower, and a retribu- tive power in striking the wicked with lightning or other disaster. The Temple of Heaven to which the Emperor repairs to pray in times of famine, pestilence or other great calamity is a purely Chinese innovation, and can be said to have only such connection with the Korean Hananim as grows out of a common but independent concept of Divinity in the two coun- tries. As a rule, the people do not worship Hananim. He is appealed to by the Emperor only, as we have just said, and this in itself would seem to indicate that the Koreans received the idea of this being from China. One would be rash to dogmatise here, but it is our conviction that it was indigenous to Korea as well as to China. The foregoing coincides with the Confucian element in Korean religion, so far as Confucianism postulates a personal Supreme Being, but on the Buddhist side there are countless gods, the one commonest to the Korean being Ok-wang Sang-je, or Jade King Supreme Ruler. The various “ uses ” of the Buddhist deities will appear in connection with our remarks on fortune-telling. We must turn now to what we may call the practical reli- gion of the Koreans, the belief in a countless number of spirits which definitely affect the every-day life of the individual. The higher deities are reserved for special festivals, but these others 4o6 THE PASSING OF KOREA are daily in evidence and the ordinary Korean has them ever in mind. Here it is easy to exaggerate, for there are thousands of Koreans who pay no attention whatever to any kind of a deity or power. They are morally averse to any restriction upon their own passions, and they are too intelligent to believe that their welfare is dependent upon the propitiation of any spirits, whether such exist or not. They may acknowledge the fact, but will not abide by the logical inference. There are very many Koreans, however, who not only believe in the existence of such spirits, but are anxious to propitiate them. It is safe to say that an overwhelming majority of these are women, whose compara- tive lack of education makes them highly susceptible to super- stition. There are also many men who in ordinary life would laugh the imps to scorn, and yet when laid upon a bed of sick- ness or subjected to some other painful casualty are willing enough to compound for their previous scepticism by the pay- ment of large bribes to these same imps. It comes out, as we ha\'e said, in times of trouble. Korean folk-tales frequently ha\'e to deal with a situation where a gentleman is ill, but will have nothing to do with the spirits. His wife, however, holds the opposite opinion, and, unknown to her lord, smuggles in a uniii- (hriig, or pansu, to exorcise the demon of disease. AT have already pointed out the fact that, as a rule, women are the best supporters of Buddhism, o\A ing to the very inferior position which Confucianism accords them. The latter cult is the avowed enemy of the belief in goblins and imps, but Bud- dhism has become so mixed up with them that the Korean Avoman cannot hold to the one without embracing tbe other. Host Korean gentlemen will scoff at the idea that the spirits have any control o\er human destiny, but they put nothing in the way of their wives’ adhesion to the lower cult. There are two orders of spirits, — those which have an un- known but extra-human origin and those which represent the souls of the deceased. The various eh es that haunt the spring, the rock, the tree, the cave or the river are nature-gods, pure RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 407 and simple, and have little to do with human destiny, except as they are sacrificed to and asked to give good luck. They repre- sent the good fairies and are not propitiated, but simply asked to give blessing or help. The spirits of disease and disaster are commonly considered nature-gods as well, and not of human origin. They rec[uire to be propitiated or else exorcised, which ceremony it is the office of the mudang or pansu to perform. These spirits all go under the name kzidsin or kzvccsin. But there is another class, called tokgahi, which correspond to the malignant imps of our own folk-lore. They are always up to pranks, and in mischief they find their greatest delight. They fly about the kitchen and knock over the kettles and pans ; they .seize the goodman by the top-knot and cut it off and fly away; they make the kettle cover fall into the kettle. All these and a long list of other tricks they play about the house. They like company, and will not go away and live in a desert place by themselves. If a miser has buried some money, they may watch the place and haunt it, so that no one else will dare to live there, though the imps themselves can get no good from the money. But the most malignant spirits of all are the disembodied souls of those men who have met a violent death or who ha^'e been grievously wronged and have died without obtaining revenge. Ordinarily these are supposed to have been good people while they were living, and their present deplorable state is not a punishment for past misdeeds, but they are in somewhat the same condition that the ancient Greek thought the soul of the unburied was in. There is something that must be done before the spirit can get rest ; it must be “ laid.” The spirit seems to think that it must vex and trouble people until they effect this. There are thousands of spirits who are just waiting for some- one to do them an injury, so that they may have an opportunity to play their pranks upon him. The person who succeeds in steering clear of all these traps and pitfalls cannot become the object of their persecution. It is important to note that while these shadowy beings have 4o8 THE PASSING OF KOREA some powers that are distinctly superhuman, in other points they are less than human. Almost invariably, in the Korean story, the fiend is thwarted by the word of a just man. Him they not only fear, but must obey. But we must pause and give a few special names and characteristics of the Korean gods, begin- ning with those of the highest grade. Besides Hananim, who is quite separate and remote from all others, even as Allah was distinct from the gnomes and naiads of the Arabian Nights, the Koreans believe in the Five Point Generals. These are supposed to rule the five divisions of the visible firmament, — North, East, South, West and Centre. It is to these that the pansus, or blind exorcists, pray and offer sacrifice in order to gain the upper hand of evil spirits. Each of these five great gods has a host of lieutenants, nearly one hun- dred thousand in all, and it is to these that the pansii looks for active help. These five generals are frequently taken as village gods, and the curiously carved posts which are so often found at the entrance of a Korean country town, and which have erroneously been called guide-posts, are representations of these gods, which stand as guardians against the entrance of wicked spirits. Then come the earth spirits, the ones which make the Koreans so reluctant to dig in the earth for minerals. They think the spirits will consider themselves robbed and so exact a penalty. It may be that it is for this reason that miners are looked down upon as practical outcasts by the people. These spirits must be consulted every time a grave is to be dug, for if a mistake should be made the dead man’s descendants might wake up some morn- ing to find that the grave is empty and the body has been spirited away, to their everlasting disgrace. Houses must be built only on spots where the spirits allow, and more than one house has had to be pulled down and erected on some other site because of the terrible misfortunes the imps have inflicted and are ready to inflict because their toes have been trodden upon. Often the traveller will come across a heap of small stones RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 409 beside the road and a stunted tree on which are hung rags, locks of hair, strips of coloured cloth, pieces of money and a great variety of useless articles. Such a place may be found in the plains, but it is much more likely to be near the top of a pass between two valleys. These sacred places are not dedicated to any particular spirit, but to any or all the local deities. The traveller picks up a stone and throws it on the pile. This is his prayer for success in his journey. If he has reason to fear that the “ good-fortune snake ” is not propitious, he will spit on the stone pile. A man who is going to the neighbouring market with his bundle of wares to sell may stop and tie a one-cash piece to the branch of the tree “ just for luck.” It is an offering to the spirit, and is a request for financial success. A woman from the village below may come up the hill with a bowl of rice and a little honey and set the food down on a stone and shuffle her hands together, bending low the while. She is asking that her son come home betimes from his fishing trip, or that her child may recover speedily from the disease which has seized upon it. A bride may cut off a shred of her skirt and tie it to the tree to prevent the good spirits of her father’s house fol- lowing her to her new abode and deserting the dwelling of her parent. As the name of these spirits is legion, so the names of the different shrines where they are worshipped would make a long catalogue. There is the “ Boulder Hall,” erected to the spirit of some particular rock ; the “ Buddha’s Hall,” a sort of cross between Buddhism and fetichism; “Ursa Major Hall,” to the spirit of that constellation; the “ Kyung Hall,” referring to the Buddhist sutras; the “Wall and Moat Hall,” a common name for the place where there is a pile of stones or a tree to tie fetiches to; the “Old Man Hall,” in honour of the Old Man Star, which Koreans believe can be seen in the south only by the people who live on the island of Quelpart ; the “ Grand- mother Hall,” “ Kingdom Teacher Hall,” “ Dragon Spirit Hall ” and many others. 410 THE PASSING OF KOREA There are also what the Koreans call the mountain spirits. They are most like our angels of any of the Korean supernatural beings, but they are almost always represented as venerable men with long white beards. They live among the inaccessible peaks of the mountains and always in a state of bliss. Happy is the man who chances to catch sight of one of them. If a man lives an exemplary life, he may become a sin-sun and join this happy band among the hills, and many are the tales Koreans tell of the wonderful adventures of good boys among the haunts of these immortals. One of these is so like the story of Rip Van Winkle that we must give it space. Paksuni was a wood-gatherer by profession, and his wife Avas a termagant. So long as he earned a day’s wages he did not worry, but the woman was always scolding because he did not earn more, and raising a great disturbance whenever he happened to miss a day. One morning he took his jiggy on his back and started up the mountain-side to gather fagots as usual. It was very warm, and he sat down in the shade of a tree to cool off. What more natural than that he should doze off, and presently see through sleepy lids two venerable men approach, one carrying a chess-board and the other the bag of chess-pieces ? They sat down beneath the shade and began the game, ne\ er deigning a glance in his direction. He watched the game as it proceeded with absorbing interest. It was the very best game of chess he had ever seen played. Finally one of the old men made a move and exclaimed, “Chang’’ (check). It was the first word that had been spoken, and it brought him to his feet. The old gentlemen disappeared like a flash, and left him looking about in vain for his axe and jiggy. The latter was gone, and nothing of the former remained but a rusty shred of iron. His clothes were in rags, and his beard had grown to his waist. He tottered down the mountain-side and entered the village. It all seemed changed. The faces looked unfamiliar. He stopped a man and asked if he could tell where a fellow named Paksuni lived. The man stared and answered that Paksuni had been RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 41 1 lost for thirty years. Pie had wandered among the hills and had been eaten up by tigers. Just then an old woman came along to get some water from the well and stopped to listen. The bewildered fellow announced that he himself was Paksuni ; whereupon the old woman dropped her water-jar, seized the tattered remnant of humanity by the top-knot and haled him down the street, calling upon heaven to witness that the lazy ■rascal had left her for thirty years to shift for herself, and now had the face to come back and show himself. This was so much dike old times that Paksuni was happy, knowing that after all he had not gone mad. Those who think that chess is a slow game will find confirmation of their opinion in this tale. Besides all these there are the village gods, who watch over special localities and to whom the people erect shrines and offer an annual sacrifice. In this every member of the village is inter- ested, and the cost of the ceremony is borne by all. One is fairly safe in conjecturing that the worship of the dragon is a Chinese innovation. The Koreans are imaginative enough to evolve the idea of a long chain of mountains being the body of an immense dragon, but this idea existed in China long before the Koreans could have evolved it. In fact, among these spirit gods there are some that are identical with those which the Chinese recognise and there are others which are purely native to Korea. There has been such a mixture of all sorts and conditions of ideas in the peninsula that one must speak with many reservations and without the least dogmatism. We know where Confucianism and Buddhism came from, but as for the rest the only thing that we knozv is that it is here. This dragon plays an important part in the Korean’s life, and his influence is always and only good. We could not begin to describe the countless points where this fabled beast comes in contact with the fortunes of the Korean. The question of fetiches is closely connected with the fore- going. The belief in these many spirits leads people to attempt to localise them by means of some physical emblem. They do 412 THE PASSING OF KOREA not think that the fetich is the spirit itself, but that it fastens upon the fetich and can always be found there when necessity demands. Dr. George Heber Jones is an authority on Korean fetiches, and he has given the following as some of the most im- portant. “ When a Korean moves, he does not take his ‘ gods ' with him, but passes to the dominion of the gods of the house to which he goes.” For this reason he is very careful to get an exact list of the latter, so that if sickness or misfortune comes he may know just whom he must pray to in order to get out of trouble. Each house has its Holy Master. “ His fetich con- sists of blank sheets of paper and a small bag of rice, which are hung upon the ridge-beam of the principal room.” Mdien a new house is erected, an elaborate ceremony often takes place, especially if the owner be a little superstitious. A mitdang is called in, and by her occult arts she invites a Holy blaster to come and abide under that roof and take charge of the entire destiny of the inmates, ward off disease and protect them gener- ally. From that time on no one must ever step upon the thresh- old of that house, but always o'S'er it, for this is the neck of the household god, and to step upon it would anger him and make him bring misfortune at once. “ Ranking next to the Holy blaster is the Lord of the Site. His fetich consists of a bundle of straw set up like a booth, on three sticks.” He has control, not of the house, but of the site on which it is built, and he must be kept in good temper, or trouble will be brewing. The Koreans are wonderful people for depending upon luck. They have consequently apotheosised the idea, and every house must have its fetich to Good Luck, and it must be worshipped with great punctuality twice a year. Dr. Jones says very ap- positely : “ The kindly favour of the Deity, bestowed out of pure love and kindness upon his children, is not known in Korea. Her religion remains down on the lower level of luck and ill- luck. When all things are going well, then the spirits are be- stowing luck on the family ; when things go badl}", luck has been withdrawn.” In this connection the Koreans have various sorts RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 413 of luck-bringers, just as our American negroes carry rabbits’ feet. In Korea there are the Luck-snake, the Luck-pig, the Luck- toad, the Luck-weasel and the Luck-man. There are places in the country where people worship the Luck-snake, and the pres- ence of a large snake near a house is welcomed as a good sign. Each year, about New-Year’s time, the Koreans make little straw manikins, stuff a few cash into their bodies and then throw them into the streets, where small boys seize upon them and tear them to pieces for the sake of the money. In this way the spirit of ill-luck is supposed to be dismembered and rendered innocuous. Some people hang a hat and a coat at the entrance of the house as a fetich of the Door-spirit. Others hang up old shoes, bunches of grass and fishes’ heads as fetiches of their various household divinities. Among all the spirits of disease, that which represents the smallpox is the most dangerous, and elaborate ceremonies are gone through to keep him out or, if he has already entered, to get him out again. Such is a list of some of the many spirits which swarm about the Korean, keep him under constant espionage, and are ready at any moment to fall upon him in wrath. If he goes among the mountains, they are there; if he goes into his inner room, they are there ; if he travels to the remotest corner of the earth, they will follow him. It remains, therefore, to examine the ways in which he can keep on good terms with these figments of his imagination, which are still very real to him. Korean society is blessed, or cursed, with two handicrafts whose aim and end it is to deal with these occult powers with which the Oriental imagination peoples all space. The people who follow these vocations are called miidang and pansii, the nearest approach to which in English is “ sorceress ” and “ exor- cist,” but they might be broadly termed witches and wizards. The word mudang means “ deceiving crowd,” and pansu means “ decider of destiny.” The former name is specially appro- priate. The mudang is always a woman, and is considered at 414 THE PASSING OF KOREA the very lowest point in the social system. She is always an abandoned character, though generally married. She pretends to be a sort of spiritual medium, and by her friendship with the spirits to be able to influence them as she may wish. Kija is said to have brought with him from China the art of necro- mancy. It is sure that a character closely allied to that of the mudang has existed in China for thousands of years, and if Kija was an actual character, it is more than likely that he brought this form of incantation. We cannot conclude that he brought the spirit worship, but only the peculiar method by which the spirits might be governed. The ceremony performed by the imidang, and without which her services are of no avail, is called a kut. There are ten different forms of service that she ma}' perform by means of this kut. The service most in demand is that of driving out the spirit of disease. But why should spirits torment people in this way? Well, there are the “ hungry ” spirits. They come around the door when you are eating, and if you do not throw them a morsel of food they have a grievance against you, and so have power to lay you on a bed of sickness. Of two intimate friends one dies, and his spirit tries to keep up the intimacy after death. This too will make trouble. If a man has wronged the spirits by deny- ing their existence, it is sure to be visited on his head. The spirit that haunts rubbish of various kinds that had lain a long time in one place will follow and injure the man that disturbs them. If you go to the house of a person that has just died, his released spirit is very likely to follow you home and make trouble for you. Such are only a few of the countless ways in which a man may gain the ill-will of the spirits, and from them we can readily see that it will be often through no actual fault of the man but only by pure chance. Let us then suppose that a man by some such mischance has contracted a disease. He may not be sure that it is caused by a spirit, but if he has reason to suspect that such is the case he will send to the home of a iniidaiig^ describing his symptoms and RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 415 asking her what spirit it is that is causing it. She may reply by naming some spirit, or she may declare that she must see the patient first. After accepting a fee of two or three dollars, she will name a fortunate day on which to hold the kut, which will be either at her own house or at that of the patient, according as he has means to pay. The elaborateness of her preparations will also depend upon the fee. If the trouble is caused by the spirit of a dead relative, great care must be taken; but if by a common spirit, then a little ordinary food thrown into the street will generally suffice to cause its departure. The test is by throwing a common kitchen knife out into the road after the food. If it falls with the blade pointing away from the door the spirit has gone; but if the blade points back toward the door, then the spirit will require further argument before leaving. When the patient is a man of large means the ceremony may be performed at some neighbouring shrine. Arriving at the patient's house, the inudang takes charge of the whole place, arranges the food and stations the friends of the sick man at particular points. She is accompanied by an assist- ant, and when all is ready the latter sits dowm and begins scraping on a kind of basket. This is supposed to attract the spirit. The inudang begins to dance about and to call upon the spirit to come. She works herself up to a perfect frenzy, and at this point the audience believes the spirit has taken possession of her body. Every word now is that of the spirit, not of the w’oman. She screams out the name of the spirit that has come, and tells what they must do to cure the patient, which directions generally include the payment of an extra sum of money. At last the spirit promises to take aw'ay the disease, and then the inudang, after a few^ more frantic leaps and screams which betoken the leaving of the spirit, suddenly becomes quiet and sho\vs no signs of her previous excitement. She does not try to make the deception more complete by pretended exhaustion nor by falling dowm like a dead person. The grossness of her employer’s superstition ren- ders such finesse quite unnecessaiy. It is perhaps needless to add 4i6 THE PASSING OF KOREA that the food that has been provided for the spirit is eaten with great gusto by the miidang and the friends.of the sick man. The result of all this commotion and fuss upon the patient is seldom very edifying. A second kind of kut is performed after death. A person’s spirit will stay about the house for three days after his demise, and often much longer than this. If the relatives have reason to think that the dead man had something that he wished to com- municate but did not have the opportunity, they will call a mttdang, for only through her can they establish intelligent com- munication with the spirit. The miidang comes, arranges the food, and becomes possessed by the spirit, but without any danc- ing and screaming. She is used by the spirit to make the desired communication, after which the friends weep and say good-bye, and the spirit leaves. Then they all fall to and clear the tables. Sometimes another hut is celebrated after the man is buried. If the dead man was supposed to have been summoned away from life by an angel or messenger sent from one of the great gods, the mudang will be called in to raise this spirit messenger and ask it to lead the dead man directly to the realm of the blessed and not through any purgatorial stage. At this time they have the power to call the dead man’s spirit back for a positively last appearance, and the final adieus are said. But even this does not finish the matter. A month after burial the friends of the deceased, if they have money, may hold a monster kut at some well-known shrine in the vicinity. The viudang is dressed in all her finery, and everything is done to make the ceremony impressive. The object is to help the dead man to secure influence or to get a “ pull ” with the Judge of Hades. The dead man has no money to do it with, so his friends do it for him. The food is spread, and the mudang, all in white, goes into a trance after the usual gyrations, and the spirit of the departed takes possession. He is asked whether he has met the grand- RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 417 parents or other relatives who have been long dead, and all sorts of questions are propounded. These the miidang answers glibly, fearing no contradiction. Not infrequently the spirit will prom- ise to do something that will help those who are still in the land of the living, so it appears that the benefits are mutual. This spirit is then dismissed, and the Judge of Hades is called up. There are ten judges on the bench of this supreme court, but this is the Supreme Judge. Food is placed before him, and he is implored to make it easy for their friend in the beyond. He invariably promises to do so and praises the food. After this the mudang calls up the special judge who has charge of their friend’s case, and he too is properly “ fixed.” The petitioners have no difficulty in securing his promise to make the man’s post-mortem condition as bearable as possible. Then they call up the spirit who guards the household of the man who has died. He is easily entreated, and promises to look after the interests of the family. He may warn the household of some impending trouble, and give them advice as to the best way to avoid it. When these special spirits have all been consulted, any relative who has helped pay for the ceremony may call up any of his friends or relatives and have a chat with them. It is like an afternoon tea with the dead, except that it is generally prolonged far into the night. One of the chief duties of the mudang is to deal with the Great Spirit of Smallpox. This is the only disease that enjoys the special oversight of a spirit all by itself, and it shows that the Koreans put this ailment in the fore-front of the ills that flesh is heir to. It is more to be feared even than cholera, for, like the poor, it is ever with us. From the fifth day after the appear- ance of the disease no member of the household may comb his hair, wear new clothes, sweep the house, bring any new goods within the doors, cut wood, drive nails, roast beans or allow a drain to become blocked up. Any of these things would leave the patient blind or severely marked. If anyone does sewing in the house, it will cause intolerable itching in the patient. 4i8 THE PASSING OF KOREA Neither the ancestors nor the guardian spirit of the house must be sacrificed to, for it would displease the smallpox spirit. The inmates of the house must eat clear rice without beans in it, for this would leave the patient with a black face. No animal must be killed, for this would cause the sick man to scratch his face and aggravate the disease. No washing nor papering must be done, for this would cause the nose of the patient to be perma- nently stopped up. After the ninth day all these restrictions are removed except- ing the driving of nails, papering of walls and killing of animals. The thirteenth day is the one on which the spirit is supposed to depart. A feast is set for him ; a piece of sari wood is made to personate a horse, and a straw bag is put on its back with rice and money inside. A red umbrella and a multi-coloured flag are attached, and the whole is set on the roof of the house. This horse is provided for the departing spirit to ride, and must be forthcoming whether the case has ended fatally or not. On that day the niudang comes and goes through an elaborate ceremony, in which she petitions the spirit to deal kindly with the patient and not to leave him pock-marked. The “ dragon spirit seance ” demands a brief mention. Every river or stream, as well as the ocean, is the abode of a dragon spirit, and every village on the banks of a stream has its periodical sacrifice to this benignant power. Not only so. l)ut the freight-boats have their ceremony, and the feriy-boats. fishing-boats and war-boats and boats that carried the annual envoys to China, — all have their special forms of worship toward the great dragon. The great importance of this sacrifice lies in the fact that the dragon has control of the rainfall, and he must be propitiated in order that agricultural pursuits may not be endangered. The ceremony is usually performed by a mudang in a boat, accompanied by as many of the leading people of the village as can crowd in. Her fee is about forty dollars. The most interesting part of the ceremony is the mudang’s dance, which is performed on the edge of a knife blade laid across the RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 419. mouth of a jar that is filled to the brim with water. We cannot affirm anything as to the sharpness of the knife, but we presume that the fee is well earned even if the dragon part of it is purely imaginary. In the case of coastwise vessels, the mndang calls up the dragon spirit and the spirits of the men who have drowned, and implores them to make the sea calm and the voyage successful. For fishing craft a single ceremony suffices for the whole fleet. The mndang confesses to the dragon that it is rank trespass for men to go and catch his subjects to eat, but men must live; she begs him to overlook the wrong and give the fishermen a good catch. The ferry is an important institution in Korea, owing to the lack of bridges. The boats are often so crowded that they sink, and the annual loss of life from this cause is considerable. At important ferries the ceremony is a very animated one. A boat is dressed in gala attire, with a spar like a roof-tree extend- ing its whole length. The mndang and her accompanying crowd enter and push off from the shore. Food is thrown into the water for the spirit, and as the mndang begins to grow excited and “ possessed ” she imitates the motions of a person dying by drowning. She then leaps to the roof-tree and dances thereon, screaming at the top of her lungs. After an hour of such antics they come ashore, and the mndang runs to a willow tree and climbs to its very top, wailing and “ taking on ” shockingly. She says she is a spirit imprisoned in the dark water, and she must have one chance to take a good look around. From the top of the tree she has a “ look see ” and then comes down. All the time she has been gnashing her teeth, and howling as loudly as her lungs will permit. Until the year 1894 the government sent an annual embassy to Peking, and before it started the attendants and underlings held a great knt. It would have been beneath the dignity of the envoy to have anything to do with such a superstition, but there is e\'ery reason to belie^•e that a good part of the cost was. defrayed by him. Four or fi^•e mn'dangs were employed, and they 420 THE PASSING OF KOREA besought the dragon spirit to treat the company well and bring them back in safety. The ceremony was in the shape of a panto- mime, in which one of the mudangs personated the envoy and another the Minister of State. Such are only a few of the occasions upon which a miidang’s services are required. Korean folk-lore teems with stories in which the nmdang plays a leading part. We have space for only one. A nmdang dreamed that the Great Spirit of Smallpox appeared to her and said that he was about to enter a certain house in the neighbourhood, and that he had selected a certain closet in the house as his favourite place. Mdien the woman awoke, she hastened to the house indicated, and found that it was true. The young son was stricken with the disease, and con- tinually asked to be placed in that closet. By this the miidang knew that her dream was a true one. As the disease developed, the child kept scratching his neck, which caused a dangerous swelling. The uiudang said, “ Someone in this house has wit- nessed the killing of a hen.” Upon inquiry this was found to be true. Still the father refused to allow the mudang to hold a knt over the child. At last the boy began to turn a livid green in the face, the sure sign of approaching death. The mudang said, “ Search and you will find that someone has brought a piece of green cloth into the house.” This too was found to be true. The father could no longer refuse to let the mudang try her hand, and in the story of course the child recovered. It is said that not until some time after the beginning of the present dynasty was the horrible custom of throwing a young virgin into the sea at Po-ryung discontinued. At that place the mudang held an annual seance in order to propitiate the sea dragon and secure plenteous rains for the rice-crop and successful voyages for the mariners. A new prefect was appointed to that district, and as he had no faith in mudangs he determined to go and witness the ceremony and put a stop to the custom, if pos- sible. Three mudangs were on hand and had secured the maiden for sacrifice. As they led her down to the water’s edge to cast RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 421 her in, she wept and screamed and struggled. The prefect stopped them. “ Is it necessary for you to sacrifice a human being? ” “ Yes, it will please the dragon and he will give good crops.” “ How do you know ? ” “ Oh, we are great friends with him and know his mind.” “ Then I think it would please him much more if one of you were sacrificed ” ; and with that he signalled to one of his attend- ants, and had one of the mudangs bound and thrown into the water. The dragon showed no signs of revealing himself, so the second miidang followed the first. Still the spirit gave no sign, and the third miidang went to prove the theory. That was the end of the matter. The prefect memorialised the throne against the whole tribe of mudangs, and from that time to this they have been considered the lowest of the low. The mudangs are not the only people who have infiuence with the spirits. The pansu is even more conversant with their tricks and better able to overcome their evil propensities. We have noted that the mudang is a sort of medium, and moves the spirits through her friendship with them, but the pansu is an exorcist rather than a medium. He is the enemy of the spirits, and is able to drive them rather than coax them. The profession of the mudang is much older than that of pansu, the latter being the product of the past few centuries, while the former have existed from the remotest antiquity. As we have said, the word pansu means “ decider of destiny,” and we judge truly from this name that the chief office of this blind fakir is to tell fortunes. He is frequently called upon, how- ever, to exorcise evil spirits. He is looked upon as little superior to the mudang, though his sex protects him from many aspersions that are cast upon the character of the mudang. There are a few female pansus, but they have nothing to do with the spirits, and they are as low in the scale as the mudang. The office of pansu in Korea, like that of masseur in Japan, is confined to the ranks of the blind, and the prevalence of scrofulous diseases 422 THE PASSING OF KOREA insures a plentiful source from which to recruit the ranks of the profession. Koreans use the services of a pansii to find out rvhether a man will escape the punishment of a crime; whether he will receive a reward for good conduct ; whether a certain piece of work will be successful ; what will happen during the day ; what will happen during the month ; what will happen during the year ; what will happen up to the point of death; what was the condition in a former state of existence ; whether he carries in his body the seeds of a great misfortune; how to find a lost article or person; whether a journey will be prosperous; what is the condition of a distant friend or relative; what will be the day of his death; whether he will become wealthy; what is the cause of sickness;, in what direction he should move when he changes his residence; whether he can repair his house without suffering calamity ; whether he will draw a prize in a lottery ; whether he had better purchase a certain slave ; when a son will be born ; when he will obtain official position; when he will get out of jail; whether a son or daughter will have a happy life ; how a spirit may be propitiated ; when one must marry in order to be happy ; where to find a good husband for one's daughter; whether a dream is good or bad ; whether it will be safe to cut down a certain tree ; whether; he may move a grave with safety; whether it will be Avell for a woman to be delivered of a child at her own house or whether she had better go to some other. Divination is accomplished in any one of three Avays, — with dice-boxes, pieces of money or Chinese characters. The first of these is the lowest, the second is a little more respectable, and the third, being performed with Chinese characters, may be adopted by a gentleman without incurring criticism. iMany gentlemen learn to do their own divining in a crude sort of way. The dice-box divination consists in shaking and throwing out from a dice-box eight little metal rods about the size of friction matches. Each rod has a different number of notches cut in it, and as each rod is put back after the throw, it will be seen that RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 4^3 in three throws, which forms a trial, there are many possible combinations. The paiisu has learned a set formula for each combination, and so it is apparent that this formula must be in the form of an enigma, for it must answer any question that the client may ask. Let us suppose that the man has asked when his friend will get out of jail, and the answer comes : “ If the net is old, the carp will break through.” This he will forthwith explain to mean that as carp are always caught in winter the friend will languish in durance vile till winter comes. The skill of the pansu is exhibited in fitting the formula to the question in hand. They are a little more accommodating than the priests of the Delphic Oracle in Greece, where the client had to do the guessing himself. The second form, called “ money divination,” is accomplished by the use of four, six or eight ancient Korean coins. Those with the seal character on them are the best, but any will do, provided they are old. The diviner shakes the coins in his hand and lets a certain number of them drop. The combination which appears tells him what formula to apply. There are hundreds of ways to manipulate the coins, and each pansu has his own favourite way, just as different cooks have their favourite recipes for pre- paring food. The method of practising “ book divination ” is to ask the questioner in what year, what month, what day and what hour he was born. These four dates, taken two and two, in every combination give four characters, and from these the diviner makes up a verse of poetry. Then he determines which character best fits the case of his client. Using this as an index, he looks up the corresponding passage in his diviner’s book, which he carries as faithfully as the surveyor does his table of logarithms, and the passage which he finds will be the enigma from which his client must extract an answer to his question. Another form of book divination is carried on by the use of the volume called “ Record of Previous Existence.” This is based upon the fact that many Koreans believe the ills of the 424 THE PASSING OF KOREA present life are the punishments of sins committed in a previous life, and that present happiness is a reward for past goodness. Only when in trouble will one consult this kind of oracle. If a woman is cursed with a drunken husband and is driven to des- peration, she consults the pansu, and he, after looking up the formula, tells her that in a previous existence she was a bullock- driver and her husband was the bullock, that she beat and abused him so cruelly that she was now doomed to be ill-treated by him in turn. But he tells her that if she will take a bundle of flax-stalks and tie them at seven places, as a corpse is tied for burial, and place it in the room and hide, her husband, coming home drunk, will mistake the bundle for his wife and beat it to pieces. This will take away his propensity to maltreating his wife. Another woman, who asked what she should do to insure the continued loyalty of her son to herself, was told that in a past life she had been very kind to a starving dog, and that providence had decreed that she should come into the world again and that the dog should become her son. If she continued to treat him well, she would have no trouble. A man’s bullock was struck by lightning, and he consulted a pansu to find why this calamity overtook him. The seer told him to go back home and look carefully at the hide of the animal and he would find what an evil past it had had. The mystified farmer went and looked, and on one of the horns was written in fine Chinese characters the legend “ In the days of the Tang Dynasty lived a Prime T^Iinister, Yi Rim-po. After his death he was transformed nine times into a dancing-girl and three times into a bullock, but even so he could not expiate the crimes that he had committed ; so at last Heaven smote him with a thunderbolt and thus cancelled the debt of vengeance.” It is only necessary to add that this Yi Rim-po was one of the most corrupt officials China ever saw, which is saying a good deal. Still another form of divination depends upon the “ Thoughts on the Works of the Jade Emperor of Heaven.” If a demon of disease is so malignant that nothing but the direct command of the deity can exorcise it, recourse will be had to this book. RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 425 Insanity is considered the worst of diseases and is caused by a most “ poisonous ” imp. The pansu comes to the house, invites all the household gods to a feast and asks them to secure the presence of the evil spirit. This accomplished, he feeds the ugly fellow and tells him to depart for ever. If this does not prove successful, he reads a magic formula from the book, which gives him power over the imp. The latter is seized and corked up in a bottle and is whipped. He may escape, and if so, he must be feasted again; but this time a peachwood cork is used and the beating is done with peach sticks, which reduces the spirit to help- lessness. The bottle is then given to a mudang to go and bury, the direction in which she is to go being minutely specified. The cure is now complete. “ Spirit sending divination ” is used to cure men at a long distance. “ Ten-thousand spirit divination ” is a sort of congress of all the spirits, at which the pansu presides. The “ spirit im- prisoning divination ” gives a man a sort of amulet that will protect him from evil. “ Spirit liberating divination ” is used in case one of the spirits is in prison and the rest want to get him out. One of them goes to earth and afflicts a man with disease. The pansu intervenes, and the spirit tells him that he will leave if the pansu will secure the release of the imprisoned one, and he promises to go security for the spirit’s future good behaviour. In every Korean book-stall will be found a little volume called “ The Six Marks of Divination,” or sometimes “ The Five Rules for Obtaining the Ten-thousand Blessings.” It represents some of the grossest superstitions of the Korean people. It is the com- mon people who make great use of this book, but the woman of the upper class is almost sure to have a volume hidden about the house, from which to cast the horoscope of her infant sons and daughters. It is a curious mixture of Buddhism, spiritism and fetichism. One can see at a glance how Buddhism has joined forces with the original elements in Korean religion to form a conglomerate that will suit all tastes. 426 THE PASSING OF KOREA We find, first, the “ procession of the years.” It tells what star rules each year of a person’s life from the tenth to the sixty- fourth. It tells what he must do to insure comfort and success, and it tells, by means of an obscure simile, what the condition of the body will be. It begins at the tenth year, because before that time no one marries, nor does a boy shave his head and become a monk. In order to show the way it is done, we will quote two or three of the formulae. For the ele\ enth year, for instance, we find that a boy will be luider the influence of the “earth star” (Saturn), that his patron will be Yuraposal (a Buddhist saint), that he must pay particular attention to his body, which will resemble a hazvk in the ashes. A girl in her eleventh year will be under the influence of the “ man image star,” her patron will be Kwaneumposal and it is her duty to show deference to the spirits. She is like a deer in a deep gorge. And so it goes through the whole sixty-four years. The different stars are the Aletal Star (Venus), Water Star (Mer- cury), Star Sun (Sun), Fire Star (iMars) and so on through the list. The patrons are a long list of Buddhist worthies. The duties are nominal, and the things that the body are like to are as follows : pig in hot water, deer in a blossom, hawk in the mountain, rat in the garden, wolf in the bag, pheasant in the ashes and lion in the river. In all there are eight animals, and the situations they find themselves in are twelve in number; river, garden, ravine, bag, field, ashes, grass, mountain, hot Avater, blossom, mill and hill. Among the animals there is no distinction between the good and the bad, but it is the combina- tion that is unpropitious. The hawk in the ashes or the rat in the river, the pig in a bag and a hawk in a mill (rice-grinding mill) are evidently bad predicaments, while deer in the moun- tain, wolf in the field, rat in the garden and pig in the ashes are presumably happy combinations. Then come the different star influences and their power OA'er the destiny of a man or woman. For instance, in the Sun Star year, one will haA'e many blessings, a good salary, a chance to RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 4^7 travel and good words from ever3Tody, but in the first, fifth and ninth moons he will be censured or will lose monej". In order to ward off these evils, one must cut out a disc of red paper on the fifteenth of the first moon, fasten it to a piece of wild cherry wood, stick it up on the roof and bow to the four points of the compass. This will save him from all anxiety. On the ■contrary, in the Fire Star year all will go wrong. One will be ill or will be censured. The house may burn down. In the third and ninth moons one is almost sure to be ill. In the fifth and tenth moons one of his sons or grandsons will lose money and must be on the lookout for robbers. He must not travel far nor must he engage a new servant. And yet there is safety for him if on the fifteenth of the first moon he will tear oft* the ■collar of his coat and burn it toward the south. Another division of the book deals with the five elements, metal, wood, water, fire and earth. This form of divination is practised on the fifteenth of the first moon in order to find out whether luck will be good or bad during the year. The man takes in his hand five little discs of wood, each bearing one of the names of the elements on one side but blank on the other. Shaking them in his hand, he says : “ Beneath the bright heavens I stand and pray, I who live in Whang-ha Province, town of Ha-ju, ward of Pu-yong, by name Kim iMun-suk. To the bright heavens I pray that I may truly be shown what will be- fall the present year, or good or ill.” He then throws the discs upon the ground. The different combinations that result indicate, by refereirce to the book, what the fortune will be. If they are all blank but one, the fortune will be medium, unless that one be “ water,” in which case it means good luck. If all the char- acters turn up, it is an excellent omen. Water and wood make a good combination, because water floats wood. Fire and water are, rather unexpectedl}^ good, for they are so different that they do not interfere with each other. iMetal and wood make a bad combination, because metal cuts wood. So on through- out the list, each combination telling the thrower what he may 428 THE PASSING OF KOREA expect of good and what he must avoid or put up with of evil. Still another way to tell the fortune is to throw four little pieces of wood like half an inch of lead-pencil split in two. The combinations, that are made in three throws, of the flat or rounded sides that turn up, will tell what is to happen. Some of the formulae are as follows : The man will be like a rat in a granary (lean in spring and summer and fat in autumn and winter), like a candle at night, like flowers meeting the spring- time, like a king without a realm, like a moth about a candle, like a stork that has lost his home, like a tortoise in a box, like a dragon in the sea, like a dead man come to life. Each of these tells its own story and needs no comment. A Buddhistic element is seen in the simile, like a monk who has returned to the world. It will be seen that this book which we are describing is like a domestic medicine book in our own land. Those that cannot afford to hire a mudang to cure them will have recourse to its pages, and this accounts for the enormous sale which the volume enjoys. It affirms that the human body is subject to two kinds of diseases, — those which can be cured by medicine and those that require exorcism. Some people have foolishly tried to cure both kinds by drugs. The hermit Chang laid down the rules for exorcising the demons of disease, and he wisely said that if in any case exorcism does not succeed, it is certain that the disease is one that must be cured with medicine. Note the implication that exorcism should be tried first, which is a pretty piece of special pleading in behalf of the profession. The book tells on what days of the month special diseases are likely to break out, and the name of the spirit that causes them. Whichever one it is, the work must be begun by writing the name of the imp on a piece of white or yellow paper (according to the day on which it is done) together with the name of the point of the compass from which the spirit comes, wrap a five-cash piece in this paper and throw it out of the door at the imp. These imps are sup- posed to be the spirits of people that have died, and they are RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 429 specified as spirits of men who have died by accident away from home, aged female relatives, yellow-headed men, perjurers, men who have died by drowning and so on to the end of the list. In each case the exorcist is told to go a certain number of paces in some particular direction and throw the cash. The her- mit wisely confined himself to diseases that will pass away in a few days by themselves, but it is a pity he did not exorcise the whole troop of devils with a good dose of castor oil. The book gives a description of various sorts of calamities and indicates the way to avoid them. One can tell from the “ Cycle of Years ” when a misfortune is due to arrive, and in order to avoid it he must, upon the morning of his birthday, spread a mat on the ground, place three bowls of white rice on a table on the mat, also three plates of gluten-rice bread and three cups of wine. He must then bow nine times, spread three sheets of white paper over another table, wrap in each sheet a measure of white rice and hang them up over the door. Three years later it must be taken down, cooked and thrown to the spirit. Also during the first moon of the year in which the calam- ity is scheduled to arrive he must draw the picture of three hawks upon paper and paste them up in his room with the bills of the birds all pointing toward the door. The medical portion of the book deals almost exclusively with female and children’s diseases, showing that it is the women who use the work and not the men. It will be impossible to do more than indicate a few of the remedies that are used. The most common are poultice of cow’s dung ; twenty-one ginko nuts ; the split kernel of an apricot seed with the word “ sun ” written on one side and “ moon ” on the other and then stuck together with honey ; water in which the wooden pin of a nether millstone has been boiled; three live frogs; four boiled dog’s feet; water in which burned hair has been boiled; the yellow clay in which a frog has been wrapped and burned to death ; the saliva of a black cow; a boiled hen whose abdominal cavity has been filled with angle-worms. Such are a few of the remedies. In no case 430 THE PASSING OF KOREA is the patient urged to call in a physician. The writer evidently knew that the reader would probably not be able to afford the care of a physician. Only once, far back in the eighties, was it my privilege to witness the curious ceremony of frightening away the “ Heavenly Dog ” that was going to swallow the moon. From the earliest antiquity eclipses have been looked upon with fear by the Koreans, and even though they have known for many centuries the cause of the phenomenon and were formerly able to predict an eclipse, yet the still more ancient custom of frightening away the animal persists. A brisk walk of ten minutes brought us to the limits of the suburbs, and there we found a company of a thousand Koreans •or more gathered on a circular piece of ground, which was sur- rounded by an amphitheatre of hills. They were grouped in silent ■companies on the sloping hillsides, and in their white garments looked like a congregation of very orderly ghosts. The central plot was covered with mats to form a dancing floor, and on either side was a huge bonfire. Around the edge of the circle sat the Korean orchestra, whose strains alone ought to ha\e sufficed to scare the Heavenly Dog. At ten o’clock the shadow of the earth began to pass across the face of the moon. A sudden darkness fell upon the scene, and the two fires, no longer suffering competition, gleamed with a new intensity upon the still faces which pressed eagerly forward to catch the subtle meaning of the weird notes that the musicians produced. Only one who is “ to the manner born,” and who has in his blood the dash of mysticism born of the East, can get from that weird music all that the Korean can. All the time the moon is adum- brated the crowd stands silent, awed, intent. They know that it is all a mere play, but the dramatic element in their nature carries them back to those far days when their savage forbears stood transfixed with genuine fear lest the light of the moon be for e^’er darkened. The moment the limb of the moon appears beyond the RELIGION AND SUPERSTITION 43 ^ shadow, and it becomes apparent that the Heavenly Dog has “ bitten off more than he can chew,” there is a sudden change in the music, a stir in the crowd. They press forward eagerly, and at that instant a man leaps into the centre of the ring, wear- ing a hideous mask and blood-red sleeves that hang down to the ground. The dance is not to be described in words. The impression that remains, after the years have mellowed the memory of the spectacle, is that there were two kinds of motion, one of the feet and one of the hands. Imagine a half-intoxicated man standing on one foot and trying to put a sock on the other. This was the principal figure that the feet cut. With both the long sleeves the man tries to defend himself against the attack of a very determined swarm of bees. This is the whole com- bination, first on one foot and then on the other, while the bees continue to get in their work. Before long other actors join the rout, and the performance becomes a mere exhibition of buffoonery, which soon becomes tiresome. But the white- coated crowd, the wild whirl of the dance, the weird snarl of the pipes and over all the fitful gleam of the great fires, — it all makes a picture not soon to be forgotten. CHAPTER XXXI SLAVERY W E must briefly review the history of slavery in Korea before describing its present status. At the time of Kija, who came to Korea in 1122 b. c., slavery did not exist in China ; but when that great coloniser took in hand the half-savage denizens of the peninsula, he found it necessary to enact stringent laws. Among the different forms of punishment decreed by him, we find that slavery was one. We cannot but admire the line of reason- ing upon which he based what we believe to be a social evil. He said in effect : “ God decrees that man shall live by his own exertions, each one earning a living by his own hands and obtaining both the necessities and luxuries of existence by his own personal effort. If, therefore, a man takes by wile or by force the fruits of another man’s industry, he becomes joined to that man by a logical and moral bond. If he eats the other man’s food, he belongs to the other man.” Theft was therefore pun- ished by slavery, the thief becoming the property of the man from whom he stole. It was possible for him to redeem himself by the payment of a large sum of money, but even after that he must remain a discredited member of society, an outcast. .Adul- tery was likewise punished by slavery, but the male offender could not, for obvious reasons, become a slave in the house of the man he had wronged. He became a slave of the govern- ment, and the King gave him to one or other of the high officials. This continued till the year 193 B. c., when Kijun, the last of the ancient line, Avas driven out by Wiman and fled to the southern part of the peninsula. The upheaval of the north dis- organised society, and slavery disappeared under Y’iman’s short SLAVERY 433 rule. But Kijun carried the institution south with him and introduced it into his new kingdom of Mahan. It existed in the mild form in the early days of Silla (57 b. C.-918 A. D.), but could not have been very common, for only murderers were condemned to slavery. Meanwhile the Kingdom of Koguryu arose in the north (36 b. c.). Slavery did not exist there until the armies began the conquest of the wild Hyungno tribe. These people were taken and made slaves. Thus we find that when Buddhism began to gain a foothold on Korean soil in the fourth century, slavery existed in a mild form throughout the peninsula. One curious effect of Buddhism was to do away with the institution of slavery. The exaggerated notion of the value of human and animal life entertained by that cult, together with the doctrine of the transmigration of souls, aroused a decided sentiment against human slavery, and so the institution fell into desuetude throughout the peninsula in proportion as Buddhism made conquest of the country. But after the entire peninsula was united by the first king of Koryu in 918 A. d. and Buddhism became rampant, the cult underwent a rapid deterioration. Its spirit dropped away, leav- ing nothing but the form. Luxury began to sap the life of the people, and slavery again lifted its head. In fact, the number of slaves increased to an enormous total, and exciting stories are told of how they revolted from time to time and fought bloody battles with their masters, only to be put down. On one occasion three hundred slaves had stones tied about their necks and were cast into a river. When the Koryu dynasty was overthrown and the present one took its place, in 1392, there occurred a period of social house-cleaning in the peninsula; but general slavery continued up to the time of the great invasion by the Japanese Hideyoshi, 1592. This war killed off so many of the male population of Korea that when peace reigned once more, a law was promul- gated forbidding the slavery of males and confining it to the gentler sex. This has continued till the present time, and the 434 THE PASSING OF KOREA great outstanding fact in regard to the slavery of Korea to-day is that there is not a single male slave in the domains of the Emperor of Korea. In discussing the status of slavery, therefore, we have to do only with female slaves, and the first c^uestion that arises in the inquiring mind is as to the methods by which a woman can become a slave. There are four ways. Let us suppose that a woman of the middle or lower class finds that she has lost all visible means of support, and must either become a beggar or a slave or else starve ; or if perchance she is in great need of ready money to bury a parent or to sup- port aged parents, she will go to an acc[uaintance and ask him to recommend her to one of his friends as a slave. This is done, and she is introduced into the house of her prospective purchaser. He looks her over, sets her to work, and satisfies himself that she is competent. He then pays her forty thousand, fifty thousand or as high as a hundred thousand cash for herself, and she gives a deed of her own person, made out in legal form. In place of a seal, she places her hand upon the paper and marks its out- line with a brush pen, and by this she can easily be identified. She is now a slave. The transaction does not come under the cognisance of the government, but is a private contract. For- merly only men of the higher class were allowed to hold slaves, and it is only during the last fifty years that Koreans of the middle class ha\'e been allowed to hold them. This is one of the marked features of the rapid demolition of social barriers that has been taking place during the past half-century. A woman of the upper class can sell herself into slavery only by disguising her high birth and so deceiving her purchaser, for no gentleman would knowingly buy a lady’s person, not only because of the innate impropriety of the transaction, but because he would sub- ject himself to the most caustic criticism of his peers. The second way in which a woman could become a slave was as follows. If a gentleman was convicted of treason (or, for- merly, of counterfeiting as well), he was either executed or SLAVERY 435 banished, and all the female inmates of his house became slaves. They were given by the government to high officials, but as a rule it was not long before such women were liberated. They were never sold from one house to another. If a woman slave dies, her daughter takes her place and enters the ranks of slaves. She is called a “ seed slave,” as she fol- lows the mother in the ordinary line of descent. Under every circumstance a slave dying, still unredeemed, has to give her daughter to be a slave in her place. It is very probable that when a slave dies leaving a young daughter, this young girl will go Avith the master’s daughter as part of her wedding dowry. There is a fourth way in which a woman may become a slave. She is poor, and finds it impossible to live. She wants a home of some kind, and so voluntarily offers herself as a slave without any compensation, except the food, clothes and shelter that will be given her. One would suppose that such a slave would be of a higher grade than the one that has sold herself, but the opposite is the case. The sold slave can redeem herself at any time by paying back the exact amount that she received, but a woman who becomes a voluntary slave cannot be liberated by any means. As all slaves are women, it will be necessary to inquire how their marriages are arranged and what is the status of the hus- band. It is manifestly to the interest of the owner to have his slave marry, for if she dies without issue there will be no one to take her place. A bought slave is allowed to select her partner about as she pleases. She will probably marry some day-labourer or coolie in the vicinity. She has her little room on her master’s compound, usually near the gate quarters; and her husband is allowed to occupy it with her free of rent. He owes nothing to the master of the house, and does no work for him excepting of his own accord. In the case of a slave who is not bought, the master may let her marry or not, as he wishes ; but ordinarily he will consent. After she has worked several years her master not infrequently lets her go, and even sets her up in some little 436 JHE PASSING OF KOREA business or other. The husband of a slave has no right to eat the rice that she receives from her master. He must bring in his own provender, and the two will “ pool ” their interests and get along very snugly. Of course she will try to get enough out of her master to feed them both, but in any case the children eat of the master’s rice till they are old enough to work for themselves. We have seen that if a slave dies her daughter takes her place. If there are several daughters the eldest takes the mother’s place, and the rest go free. If the eldest daughter dies before her mother, then the master selects one of the younger ones to take the mother’s place. If a slave dies and the eldest daughter takes up her work, but dies immediately, none of the other daughters can be compelled to step into the A-acant place. All male children are naturally free and cannot be enslaved. They owe nothing to their mother’s master, and as soon as they can go alone they no longer feed out of his bag. The slave does all the rough work about the house. She does the washing, brings the water from the neighbourhood well, goes to market, helps with the cooking, Avalks as a mourner in her master’s funeral procession, runs errands and makes herself generally useful. In the country she Avill work as an ordinary field hand. She is not the familiar servant of the lady of the house, and she seldom acts as lady’s-maid, nor is she ever called to do any of the seAving or nursing. Her place is in her master’s kitchen or yard, and not in the chamber of her mistress. Korean folk-lore is full of stories of faithful and mfaithful slaves. CHAPTER XXXII FUNERAL PROCESSION — GEOMANCY A ROYAL death demands universal lament. The entire nation must assume a mourning- garb, the colour of ■which is not black, as with us, but the natural colour of sack-cloth, — a dirty yellow. The chief mourners must be particular as to the colour, but the populace as a whole adopts white. As this is the ordinary colour for Korean cloth- ing, it becomes necessary only to doff their black hats and put on white ones. Those who are very poor can compound with the law by pasting white paper over their black hats. No bright colours must appear on any portion of the body. The body of the dead is partially embalmed, and laid in an artificially cooled room, where it remains five months, the legal interval within which the royal dead cannot be interred. A few days after the announcement of the death all the high officials meet before the great gate of the palace, and, seated on their mats, lament the departure of the illustrious deceased. Then the preparations begin. Money pours in from the provinces, the guilds are informed what services will be required of them, the geomancers are sent out to find a propitious site for the tomb, and thousands of men are set to work making the various para- phernalia that will be needed to bring the occasion off with suffi- cient eclat. As the day for the grand procession draws near, people begin to flock in from the country to see the sight, and every inn is full to overflowing. All the government departments are intent upon nothing else, and ordinary business is at a standstill. Sev- eral days before the great event, there are trial processions in which the participants are trained for the performance of their 438 THE PASSING OF KOREA various functions. In order to witness the pageant to best advan- tage, one must secure in advance the upper story of one of the veiy few two-story buildings on the Great Bell Street, which runs through the centre of the town. At midnight a small company of foreigners sallied out and made their way down through the crowded streets to the building that they had preempted. A perfect sea of lanterns showed the innv:merable throng hurrying to their places of observation. Soon after we had secured our places a sudden hush in the surging, screaming crowd told us that the vanguard of the procession was at hand. The people pressed to the sides of the street and stood perfectly quiet. This great thoroughfare is about one hundred feet wide, and gives ample opportunity for the full display of such a pageant. Looking far up the street to the left, we could see the advance runners of the funeral cortege moving slowly down between two solid walls of hushed humanity. First came a num- ber of torch-bearers, whose duty it was to light the great brush torches that are planted at intervals all down the avenue. These torches are as thick as a man’s body and ten feet high ; and as they flickered, crackled and then sent up a spire of lurid, smoky flame, they seemed to turn everything blood-red, and made the advancing ranks of the procession look more like a company of fiends than of human beings. The main body of the procession was flanked on either side by a line of soldiers who carried in lieu of muskets silk flags embroidered with Chinese characters. Some of them bore long paddles, with which they were supposed to keep the crowd back if it pressed too close. The first division of the procession itself was composed of thirteen large sedan chairs draped in red. blue and green brocaded silks, and borne on the shoulders of a dozen carriers whose liveries were pink and white. These chairs are supposed to carry the thirteen historians whose duty it is to write the achievements of the deceased. The absolute silence with which these figures glide by adds much to the weirdness and solemnity of the occasion. The road is not paved, and their FUNERAL PROCESSION — GEOMANCY 439 shoes are soft, sandal-like arrangements that make no noise. Next come a number of banners of Oriental richness, borne aloft on bamboo poles, each surmounted by a handsome bunch of pea- cock feathers. From the cross-bar hangs the banner itself, ten feet long by four feet wide. The central panel is of white bro- caded silk, on which are sewed Chinese characters in black and red. The border is of another colour of silk, and is deeply ser- rated at the edge. From the ends of the cross-bars hang lanterns and bells. The pole is covered with red felt, on which are gilt figures of men, birds and dragons. Each of the great guilds of Seoul is required to furnish one of these costly trinkets. They represent an expenditure of about one hundred and fifty dollars each. Next come a crowd of gaudily dressed bearers, carrying aloft on poles long scrolls of white paper on which are written eulogies of the dead by the most famous scholars of the land. They are substitutes for an obituary address. Behind these comes- the chair of state which the deceased was wont to ride, a sump- tuous affair borne high above the heads of a score of sturdy fellows. It is draped and canopied with costliest silks, and is bedizened on every side with bangles, knots and tassels. Before it is borne the royal red umbrella, and behind it, festooned upon a hundred poles or more, is carried the blue cloth fence within which the palace women ride on ponies to the place of burial. It is to protect them from the curious eyes of the crowd. It is not unlikely that this is a remnant of the ancient custom of burying several girls alive in the tomb of a dead king. History records one significant instance in which a king of Silla gave orders that in his case this barbaric custom must be omitted. The next feature is a pack of hobgoblins or imps with enor- mous masks over their faces. These masks are three feet broad, and have two pairs of staring eyes and hideous grinning mouths. These are supposed to frighten away all evil spirits and make the obsequies propitious. Behind these, after an interval, comes the master of ceremonies, mounted upon a splendid white horse, and surrounded by liveried attendants and armed troops. The trap- 440 THE PASSING OF KOREA pings of the horse reach almost to the ground, and the robes of the rider are of the most gorgeous description. He is a general of the highest rank. He bears in his hand the wand of authority, and for the time being holds the power of life and death. There are two catafalques exactly alike, and no one is supposed to know in which one the body lies. A description of one will suffice for both. It rests upon a heavy framework that is carried on the shoulders of one hundred and eight bearers. Thick transverse poles have heavy padded ropes run fore and aft between them, so that the shoulders of the bearers may not be galled. On the high framework is a structure like a little house, ten feet long, six feet high and five feet broad. The roof and sides of this pavilion are painted and draped with the gaudiest colours. All the tints of the rainbow and several others compete for the supremacy. One man stands on the framework immediately in front of the pavilion, and another stands behind it, facing back. The one in front holds a bell in his hand, and he keeps time so that the men may step together. Ropes a hundred feet long extend forward from the catafalque and also back, and a long line of men hold these, and are supposed to pull forward or back, as it may be necessary to ease the unwieldy thing down a hill or draw it up one. By far the most interesting and novel feature of the whole procession follows this catafalque. It is six enormous paper horses made of paper stuck over a framework of wood. They are aboiit ten feet high, and are mounted upon great carts so that they loom full fourteen feet from the ground. The anat- omy of these monsters is wonderful and fearful, and their size makes one think of his boyhood days when he read of the siege of ancient Troy. These are to be burned at the tomb, and will furnish a means of locomotion for the deceased in the world beyond. It is very plain that Confucianism is not tlie only reli- gion of these people, nor Buddhism either, for the most dis- tinctive things about this great ceremon}" are neither tire one nor the other, but relics of the aboriginal nature worship of the IMPERIAL “FUNERAL BAKED MEATS’ FUNERAL PROCESSION — GEOMANCY 441 people. In the rear of all come a company of foreign-drilled troops who present a striking contrast to the medieval pageant that has gone before. The cost of such a funeral varies with circumstances. If it is a king that is being buried, it may cost half a million dollars, but in case it be a prince or princess it may come within a hundred thousand. In any case it is a severe drain upon the finances of the country, not merely because of the monetary outlay, but because it disorganises everything for the time being, and through adventitious causes brings great loss to the people. GEOMANCY It will be a sad day when Nature loses all her mystery and when we can project the cathode ray of science into every crack and cranny of this over-classified world, — when we shall put, as it were, a revolver to the head of the Sibyl and compel her to rearrange the scattered leaves, when we shall reduce to gram- mar the leaf language of the Dordonian oak. No one seems satisfied to-day unless he has his eye at a microscope or a tele- scope. Wordsworth had the present age in mind when he spoke of the man who would “ peep and botanise upon his mother’s grave.” The very children know there is no pot of gold beneath the end of the rainbow and that Santa Claus is a myth. But the Korean is as yet untouched by this passion for classification. He is as full of myth and legend, of fairy lore and goblin fancy, as any minstrel of the middle ages. Nature is full of the mys- terious, and for that reason speaks to him in some sort with greater authority than she does to us. Korean geomancy might be a page torn from some old wizard’s book or copied from a Druid’s scroll. It forms a dis- tinct profession here, though no guild of geomancers exists. By some unwritten law the ranks of the profession are recruited only from the country, as no Seoul man is eligible. This is because the geomancer is occupied almost exclusively in finding 442 THE PASSING OF KOREA propitious grave sites, and so the dwellers in the country are much better qualified than the denizens of the metropolis. It is ordinarily the Rip Van Winkle style of man, who prefers walking over the hills with his dog and pipe rather than doing an honest day’s work, that evolves into a geomancer. The first step in his novitiate is the mastery of the book called ‘‘ The Great, Important, Celestial Instrument.” Having learned the theoretical side, he then begins to take practical lessons under a competent teacher. They wander o^•er the hills together, discussing the merits of the different burial sites and determin- ing their relative values. A man’s prospects in life may be blighted by burying his father’s body in an unpropitious spot. More agues, sprains, murrains and blights are caused by this than by any or all other causes. When the candidate has been all over his allotted district, and has studied all the available places and has made out a mental list of charges, ranging from several hundred dollars for a first-class site down to a few cents for an indifferent one, he graduates, buys him a yiindo, “ wheel picture,” — in other words, a compass, — and is ready to “ hang out his shingle.” He has now taken the degree of “ Earth Spe- cialist,” or, as we might say, the degree of B.E., Bachelor of Earth. We must imagine him, then, in his office waiting for trade. A young man comes in and states that his father is dead and a suitable burial site must be found at once. The geomancer accompanies the young man to his home, where a substantial meal is set forth, to be washed down with plenty of wine. This forms the retaining fee. He then puts out feelers in all direc- tions to learn about how much the young man is able to pay, and, having made up his mind on this cardinal point, he leads the youth over the hills and discourses on the various sites. The first question to be asked about any site is whether it has a good “ advancing dragon.’’ This is the line or range of hills leading down to the site. The declivity where a long un- broken line of hills drops to the level of the valley is usually a FUNERAL PROCESSION — GEOMANCY 443 good site. But if the line of hills is short, or if the continuity of the range is broken at any point by a deep intersecting valley, if the range is mostly shorn of timber, or if it is rugged and abounding in precipices, the site will be of comparatively little value. The perfect site is rare and hard to find. It is called a “ mountain line that curves around and sees its great- grandfather.” Each of the points that form the chain is looked upon as the parent of the next lower one, and so, when the line curves so that from the lowest eminence the highest one is visible, it means that the latest descendant can always look upon his ancestor. Next in importance is “ the prospect.” To be perfect it must be toward the south, though the east or west are not bad. It must never be toward the north, for it looks away from the sun and its colour is black. The blue dragon and white tiger must also be attended to. These represent the east and west sides of the grave, where the flanking hills must be of equal length or their influence will be evil. The most dangerous thing is a kyubong, or “ spying peak.” If from the grave site there can be seen the top of a hill peeping over the top of a nearer one, it means that the descendants of the man buried there are fated to become robbers. A genius, or spirit of evil, crouches behind the nearer hill and keeps its baleful eye upon the last resting-place of the dead. If everything is right and the pay is guaranteed, the geo- mancer gets out his “ wheel picture,” lays it on the ground and determines the exact direction in which the grave must face. If there are other graves in sight, it must not point toward any of them. The remoteness or proximity of other graves exer- cises an important influence. The operator next lays the “ golden well.” This is a frame composed of two transverse and two lateral rods in the shape of the Chinese character for well. A mark is made all around inside this parallelogram, and the ground is broken for the grave. The depth to which it must be dug, and the position that the chief mourner must occupy at 444 THE PASSING OF KOREA the burial ceremony, must be carefully determined or there will be literally “ the devil to pay.” The geomancer’s part in the interment mzy now be said to end, — that is, after he has pocketed his fee. But the chances are that he or some other geomancer will be called in at some future time to examine the grave and see that everything is right. Although every precaution has been taken, it frequently happens that the dead man’s relatives get into trouble. If so, and if there be no other visible cause for the trouble, it is set down to the fact that something is the matter with the ancestor’s grave. The geomancer is called in and, if there is plenty of money in sight, he may decide that something serious is the matter with the grave, or that it requires only slight alterations. There are special formulae for discovering the mysterious cause of the trouble. These are all given in the book which has been mentioned. At the very worst the geomancer may discover that the body has run away ! Koreans solemnly aver that such graves have been opened and that invariably the corpse is absent. If so, it must be hunted up instanter; and it may be remarked that this chasing of a long-buried corpse about the country is not the least gruesome part of the geomancer’s business, and might well deter nervous or excitable people from entering the profession ; but fortunately Koreans have no nerves. It is claimed that a successful geomancer will run his game to earth within twenty-four hours, and when the afflicted relative digs at the indicated spot, he always discovers the object of his search. This search is carried out according to what is called “ The Old Grave Magic Rite.” CHAPTER XXXIII BURIAL CUSTOMS B urial customs are not uniform throughout Korea, for the poor and the low-class people omit many of the finer points which are never forgotten in the case of a gentleman of means. If, then, we describe the treatment of the dead among the wealthy people of the upper class, it will be simply a task of elimination to describe that of any class in Korean society. For this purpose, let us take a Korean gentleman of means, the head of a household, and inquire how he is treated from the time he is known to be dying until his funeral obsequies are completed. When he is found to be desperately ill, he is taken from his own chamber and removed to some other apartment. The Koreans have the notion that the change may possibly check the course of the disease. This is not akin to putting the dying man outside the house on a mat. This is done only by the lower and more superstitious classes, who believe that the death will pollute the house and make it unlucky. When the patient is evidently in articiilo mortis, he is taken back to his own chamber, and all his immediate family come in and sit in perfect silence about the room. A light piece of cotton batting is put to the dying man’s mouth that the exact moment of death may be recorded. When the breath ceases to stir the cotton, death is supposed to have occurred, though in many cases, of course, life is not yet extinct. When the man is pronounced dead, a blanket is thrown over the body, but no one begins to wail yet, for it might disturb the disembodied spirit which may still be hovering near. An hour passes, and then the family assembles again and the wailing 446 THE PASSING OF KOREA commences. During this process, which is audible at some dis- tance, the sentiments given expression to are almost all in com- miseration of the dead. He is pitied for having died. His virtues are not commonly recited on such occasions, nor is refer- ence made to his survivors, though there is no rule that would forbid this. In the wailing no subjective element appears. The wallers do not complain that they are bereft, nor wonder how they are to get along without the departed father or husband. After an hour of wailing some near relative, not a member of the household, or an intimate friend of the family remains to watch the body, and all others leave the room. One of the trusted servants of the house, or some friendly neighbour, not of the upper class, takes in his hands an inner coat of the dead man, mounts to the roof of the house and takes his stand directly over where the body lies. This coat is of native cotton, never of silk or any imported goods, and has probably been kept in the family wardrobe for years for this special purpose. Standing thus, the man grasps the collar ■of the coat with his left hand and the hem at the bottom with his right and waves it three times toward the north. At tlie first shake he cries aloud the full name of the deceased, at the second shake the name of the highest rank that he ever attained^ and at the third he announces that the man is dead. The reason for shaking the garment is that, being something intimately associated with the person of the man, it forms the credentials of the one who is announcing the demise, as much as to say, “ Here, behold the inner coat of such and such a man of such and such a rank ; him I announce to be dead.” The reason for shaking it toward the north is because shadows fall to the north. It is the direction of the shades, its colour being black. This is done not only to announce the death to other living people, but also that the spirit of the dead man may hear, and so be sure that the momentous event has been properly pub- lished. The reason for shaking the garment three times is because of the dead man’s in, cni, and yc, which may be trans- BURIAL CUSTOMS 447 lated respectively his “ original nature,” “ righteousness ” and “ etiquette.” This important ceremony completed, the man brings down the coat and spreads it over the body of its owner. The family now assemble again and wail for fifteen minutes by the clock, after which the body is lifted from the floor and placed upon a plank, which is supported by two boxes made specially for the purpose. The head must be toward the south and raised a little higher than the feet. A screen is drawn around the body. The next thing in order is to make the hon-pak-kwe, or “ spirit ghost box.” This is of wood, about eighteen inches long and twelve inches wide and deep. It is supposed to hold in some occult way the spirit of the dead. The box is neatly papered, and inside is placed a paper case in the shape of a box, and inside this is a piece of paper on which is written the name of the dead. Sometimes only blank paper is put in, and rarely both name and title are written. This spirit ghost box is first laid at the head of the dead man. After these preliminaries have been arranged, a man is chosen from among the near relatives of the deceased to have charge of the funeral ceremonies, and one of the trusted servants is chosen to handle all the funeral expenses. All the mourners, by which we mean the immediate family, look upon themselves as in some sense criminals upon whom rests the responsibility of the man’s death. They put aside all coloured clothing and all silk, and dress in plain linen and cotton. All jewelry is put away; the hair is taken down. No boiled rice is eaten, but a kind of rice gruel takes its place. The mourners now go to the apartment of the dead. It has been divided down the middle by a curtain, and the men take their places on one side and the women on the other. Meanwhile the master of ceremonies has sent out written notices to the particular friends of the family, and they come, both men and women, and offer their condolences. The number of notices sent out varies from fifty to five hundred. If the recipient lives 448 THE PASSING OF KOREA within reasonable distance, it is de ngueiir for him to go and offer his condolences. It is customary to take along a little present of money, rice, linen, paper, candles or tobacco. The one who is watching beside the body now takes warm water and washes it, using not a cloth but a piece of clean paper, while the family sit in the adjoining room or busy them- selves in giving away to needy neighbours the old clothes of the deceased. In preparing the body for burial, the hair is tied up loosely, not in a regular top-knot, and all the combings, which have been sedulously preserved for years, are worked into the hair. All the teeth which have been extracted from the mouth of the dead man since his youth and all the finger-nail and toe- nail parings are put together in his pouch and laid beside him. Meanwhile others have been busy making the new garments in which the body is to be dressed. Every part of the garments and the fittings of the casket must be new, — the mattress, blanket, pillow, overcoat, coat, waistcoat, trousers, socks, wristlets, leg- gings, head-band and all. The body is now removed to a table specially prepared for the purpose, and a full dinner is placed before it. The relatives have by this time gathered from far and near, and they all assemble in the room adjoining and kneel, the men toward the east and the women toward the west. The relatives to the sixth remove are represented, and they all wail in concert. A pillow is brought, and each mourner comes for- ward in his turn and, placing his forehead on the pillow, per- forms a special ceremony. The “ spirit ghost box ” is now brought and placed again at the head, with some of the man’s clothes beneath it. His mouth is opened, and in it is placed some flour made of gluten rice. This is for the purpose of holding in place a certain “ jewel ’’ that is put between the lips. This precious object is called the mu-gong-jii, or “ pearl without a hole.” It is not a real pearl, but a hard substance taken from the shell of a certain kind of huge clam that is found only near the mouth of the Nak-tong River. It is a rough substance and has no lustre, and it is y BURIAL CUSTOMS 449 extremely rare. The clams are taken only by the net, and only one in about ten thousand is said to yield a mii-gong-ju. These are not sold, but are handed down from father to son as pre- cious heirlooms. The Koreans believe that they have the power of self-propagation by a process of division, like certain polyps. The body is now dressed in the new clothes and placed on a table specially made for the purpose. A screen is drawn around it, and over the screen is hung a banner on which is written the man’s name and honours, and on a little table are placed some of his effects, such as pen, ink-stone, spectacles and seals. This completes the first day’s work. On the morning of the second day the professional under- taker comes and arranges the clothes of the deceased with great care, and proceeds to tie the body up with cords made of twisted paper. In tying the waist-cord he arranges the knot so as to resemble the Chinese character sini, for it is believed that all the canonised spirits arrange theirs so. On the morning of the third day the undertaker brings the casket, which is not nailed, but is carefully dovetailed and fas- tened with wooden pegs. The bottom of it is covered an inch deep with gluten rice flour. This is to form a sort of cushion into which the body will sink a little, and so be prevented from moving from side to side as it is being carried to the grave. When everything is ready for placing the body in the casket, the sons of the dead man wash their hands, or perhaps take a full bath, and then go in and place the body carefully in its final receptacle. The face is covered with a very thin film of cotton batting, and beside the body are placed the finger-nail and toe-nail parings and the teeth which have been already referred to. The remaining space in the coffin is tightly packed with old clothes of the deceased, so as to prevent any movement of the body, and the cover is fastened on with wooden pegs. The coffin is invariably made of pine. The reason is fourfold. The pine, being an evergreen, is, in Korean eyes, the symbol of manhood, for it never withers or casts its leaves until it dies. 450 THE PASSING OF KOREA In the second place, serpents and other reptiles will never go near it. In the third place, the pine never rots at the core, leaving the trunk a mere shell. In the fourth place, pine wood, Avhen placed in the ground, decays rapidly and evenly, which, singularly enough, is a prime qualification with the Korean. Anything that tends to retard the process of dissolution is con- sidered very unpropitious. This is in striking contrast to the belief of the ancient Egyptians and of most ignorant and super- stitious peoples. The fourth day after the death of a Korean gentleman is called the day for putting on mourning. The only ones who wear full mourning are the wife, the sons, the daughters and the daughters-in-law of the deceased. For the sons this consists of a wide mourner’s hat made of bamboo, a head-band of coarse linen, a coat of the same material, a waist-cord of hemp, leg- gings of coarse linen, straw shoes and a posiin, or face screen, of linen attached to two sticks which are held in the hands. For women, mourning consists in wooden hairpins, clothes of coarse linen and straw shoes. After mourning has been assumed, all the mourners assemble in the room adjoning that in which the body lies, and wail, the men facing the east and the women the west. Only those who are very old may sit. No conversation is allowed. From this day all the mourners may return to their visual diet. The undertaker places the head-bands, combs and other toilet articles of the dead beside the casket, as if he would soon wake up and use them. Fruits, vegetables, meats, nuts and wine are offered, and then the mourners come in and bow and wail again. If the burial should be delayed for three months, as is often the case, the family must come in and bow before the body on the first and fifteenth of each month. Whenever fresh fruit comes into the market, some of it must be offered the dead before the family can taste of it. The interment usually takes place on the fifth, seventh, or ninth day after death, but in the case of high officials or very THE SOUTH GATE, SEOUL BURIAL CUSTOMS 455 wealthy people it is usually delayed three months. This gives opportunity to make more elaborate preparations. A burial site will long ago have been selected through the services of a chigwan, or geomancer. This is a science in itself^ and has been described in a separate chapter. The day before the burial the geomancer and the chief mourner go to the grave site and superintend the marking out of the grave, being careful to drive stakes at the four corners, at the head, at the foot and in the middle of the grave plot. Later in the day the mourners bring food and sacrifice to the spirit of the mountain, calling aloud the name of the dead and announcing that he is to be buried at that spot. The chief mourner returns home and an- nounces to the dead that a burial place has been prepared. Those that have remained at the burial site dig the grave, making the measurements very exact, so that the casket will fit. At the bottom they put sand mixed with lime, and pound it down hard, so as to form a solid bed for the casket to rest upon. Two memorial stones have already been prepared. They are- exact counterparts of each other. One of them is to be set up and the other to be buried in the ground at the foot of the grave. If the one that is set up is injured or destroyed, this buried one can be dug up and erected in its place. These stones are called the chisiik, or “ stone descriptive of the character of the dead.” The next work is the preparation of the sangyu, or “ death carriage,” by which is meant the bier or catafalque. In ordi- nary cases this is rented for the occasion, but in extraordinary cases a special one is made. It is supposed to resemble in shape the ordinary covered two-man sedan chair, or litter, in which- people are carried about in lieu of wheeled vehicles; but it is made longer to accommodate the recumbent posture of the dead. It is covered with a rigid canopy, or roof, and the sides are en- closed. The whole is painted in the most gaudy and fantastic colours, a mixture of the Korean cardinal colours, — red, blue, yellow, white and black, — and is supported on men’s shoulders by a network of poles and ropes. The number of carriers is- 452 THE PASSING OF KOREA determined by the size of the bier and the splendour of the occa- sion, Anywhere from eight to forty men may be employed to carry the “ death carriage.” They are all dressed in coarse linen, with tall linen caps. One of the most important points about a funeral is the making of the sinjii, or “spirit master.” It might be better described as the “ spirit tablet,” for it consists of a plain piece of chestnut wood ten inches long, two inches wide and three- quarters of an inch thick. It is left unpainted, and nothing whatever is written on it, but with it is placed a sheet of paper on which are written the name and office of the deceased. This piece of wood is placed, together with the paper, in a small box made specially for it and painted black. This sinju, or “spirit tablet,” is made of chestnut wood, because the Koreans believe that when a chestnut sprouts and the meat of the nut is used in feeding the growing sprout, the shell of the nut does not decay, but remains attached to the root of the tree until the latter dies. Thus they believe the seed is preserved, and this typifies the long life of the family. This tablet is kept in the house for three years, vmtil the period of mourning is passed, and then it is placed in the sadang, or “ soul hoi;se,” preferably described as the ancestral tablet house. One of these tablet houses is found connected with the residence of every well-to-do gentleman. The use of a separate tablet house has of late fallen somewhat into disuse because of the danger of having the tablet stolen and held to ransom. To lose the sinju is an unspeakable calamity. Be- fore burial, it was formerly the custom to carr}’ the body of the dead to the tablet house, to let him take a look at it, but of late years it has been considered sufficient to carry the “ spirit box ” to the tablet house instead ; but at the same time the casket must be moved a little, as if it were to be taken also. All is now ready for the burial procession, which is a grand spectacular display. On it the heir sometimes squanders half of his patrimony. Korean folk-lore is full of stories of how the son, out of filial piety, spent the whole of his patrimony on his STONE IMAGE NEAR TOMB BURIAL CUSTOMS 453 father’s funeral. Nowadays such devotion is found only in books and traditions. ' The funeral procession forms in the late after- noon, and a start is made just at twilight. The reason for this is that at this hour the streets are less likely to be crowded; it is the quiet time of the day, and the spirit of the dead is less liable to be disturbed by the street cries and by the shouts of hucksters. It seems from this as if the Koreans believe that the spirit of the dead still accompanies the dead body. First in the procession come two men abreast, dragging after them torches made of brushwood. The lighted ends trail on the ground, leaving a wake of sparks. Now and again they will raise the torches and whirl them about their heads until they break into flame again. Behind these comes the procession be- tween two lines of lantern-bearers, each lantern being made of an iron frame, over which is draped red and blue gauze silk. This silk prevents the candles being blown out by the wind, but it is quite diaphanous. First in the procession proper comes the master of cere- monies mounted on a horse, and behind him marches a man bearing aloft the myimgjimg, or banner, inscribed with the name and honours of the deceased. Then comes a line of lanterns across the street, connecting the lines of lanterns on the sides. Then comes a sort of cabinet or shrine, containing the spirit box and the spirit master or tablet. On either side of it march the female slaves of the deceased, with enormous piles of hair on their heads. They may number from two to half a dozen. Then, after an- other line of lanterns, comes the catafalque, which surges along slowly upon a mass of writhing shoulders, the bearers chanting a weird song, which enables them to keep in step. They have been given copious draughts of wine, and it is only their num- bers that keep them on their feet. If the deceased is of high rank, a man will be standing on the bier on the front of the casket, and ringing a bell and marking time for the bearers, and another stands at the back for the same purpose. Along either side of the catafalque walk a number of banner 454 THE PASSING OF KOREx\ carriers, each banner recording the merits of the deceased. These are often sent by the friends of the dead, and correspond to the flowers that are sent as tokens of love in the West. Immedi- ately behind the catafalque comes the chief mourner, the eldest son of the deceased, in a “ chair ” covered with coarse linen, and on either side walk the husbands of his slaves. The other mem- bers of the bereaved family follow in single file, their chairs being flanked by the husbands of the slaves of the dead man’s relatives. Then come the distant relatives and the friends of the deceased, and the whole company is completed by a howling crowd of street boys, who add noise if not dignity to the obsequies. It is forbidden to bury a body inside the Avails of Seoul, nor can the dead be carried out of any of the gates at will ; but two- of the gates are reserved for this purpose, the so-called “ Water- mouth Gate ” and the “ Little West Gate.” In times of pesti- lence, when a thousand people are dying a day in Seoul, as happened in the summer of 1886, it is easy to imagine that these gates are thronged with one stream of funeral processions. Especially Avas this so at that time, for the gates Avere closed and locked betAveen nine o'clock at night and four o'clock the next morning. Arriving at the burial site, the catafalque is placed under a temporary aAvning, and the Avhole party spend the night in a neighbouring village or in extemporised booths. Early in the morning the banner inscribed Avith the name of the dead is spread over the coffin and a little food is offered, .\fter all haA-e boAved and Avept, the casket is placed on two transverse poles and car- ried to the grave. A compass is used to make sure that the casket lies in precisely the proper direction. A piece of black silk is placed OA’er it, and upon this a thin board is laid. Lime is packed in on the sides and OA’er the top to a depth of tAvo inches, and then the grave is filled in Avith earth and lime mixed.. It is a question AAdiether the shape and appointments of a Korean grave are not the most beautiful in the Avorld. The THE AMERICAN METHODIST CHURCH, SEOUL BURIAL CUSTOMS 455 gentle southern slope of a hill is dug into so as to form a wide flat space; the earth thus excavated is formed into a crescent- like bank all around the north, east and west sides of the plot. In the centre, between the arms of this crescent, the grave is dug, and when the earth is piled up on it, the shape is that of an exact hemisphere. In front the ground is terraced down to the original slope of the hill. Back of the grave and on the two sides a thick grove of pine-trees is planted. Nicely turfed and well taken care of, this grave is simply exquisite in its simplicity and neatness. These little groves of pines about the graves form bright spots in an otherwise rather forbidding landscape. It must not be supposed that all graves are arranged as elaborately as this. The common people bury anywhere and everywhere, and so carelessly oftentimes that dogs and foxes dig into the graves and expose the bones of the dead. In the case of very wealthy men or of princes, the grave site will be ornamented with stone figures of men and animals, ar- ranged on either side and facing each other. Before the mound itself there will be a smooth polished stone, which is used as a table on which to place the sacrificial food each year. The desecration of a grave is one of the most serious crimes in the Korean penal code. It is, of course, a capital offence. In our own land children are sometimes kidnapped and held to ransom, but in Korea it is the dead that are kidnapped, and a Korean will always give more for the return of his father’s corpse than he would for his living son. Not infrequently a man finds a placard set up beside his ancestral grave stating that the head of the corpse has been taken away, but will be returned if a cer- tain amount of money, always an enormous sum, is delivered at a certain specified place and time. A self-respecting Korean will put in pawn his whole estate to get back the body of his parent, or any missing part of it. CHAPTER XXXIV MODERN IMPROVEMENTS I F a traveller who visited Korea twenty years ago should come back here in this year of grace 1906, he would be startled at the material changes that have been effected because of the opening of the country to foreign inter- course. But if he should make excursions from the open ports and the main centres of commerce, he would soon discover that, with the exception of the six hundred miles of railroad and of the telegraph lines, these evidences of material advancement are almost wholly confined to those centres. Japanese energy and capital have transformed Fusan from an insignificant fishing village into a thriving city with water works, electric lights, commodious hotels, banks, museums and imposing municipal structures. The same may be said in lesser degree of Wonsan, Mokpo and Kunsan. Chemulpo is the most important port of entry as yet. Her proximity to the capital has won her this distinction, but the trunk railway terminus at Fusan must eventually push her ahead, especially when she becomes a port of call for the great trans-Pacific steamship lines. Chemulpo is, however, still a distinctly live place. Real estate in the foreign or Japanese quarters brings from twenty to thirty 3^en per square metre, which gives us a glimpse of the genuine life of the place. Not only has the Japanese population passed the ten thousand line, but the Koreans have flocked in until they aggregate some thirty thousand. The foreign town is fairly well built, though as yet there are few public buildings of note. The splendid sea-view from the steep side-hill on which most of the foreigners’ houses are built makes it a ven,?^ attractive place to live. A mile-long bund affords facilities for handling the MODERN IMPROVEMENTS 457 commerce of the place, but as yet large quantities of freight have to lie out on the bund exposed to the weather, except so far as it can be protected by tarpaulins. There is no better indication of the life of this port than the fact that trade is always in advance of the facilities for handling and stor- ing it. As for Seoul, the changes have been equally great, though its superior size makes it more difficult for us to get a bird’s- eye view of them, as we can do at Chemulpo or Fusan. The first important innovation was the abrogation of the rule that the gates of the city should be locked every night before nine o’clock and not opened without special orders from the King until morning. The city wall, especially on the south side, has become a nuisance, since it blocks traffic; and it is only a matter of time when the picturesque old battlements, which look down from their half-millennial height upon the impertinence of galvanised iron roofs, will be levelled. Already it has be- come necessary to plan for the enlargement of the South Gate,, which is only eighteen feet wide, and through which flows a very large fraction of the entire trade of the capital. Here, too, the price of real estate has increased tenfold during the past ten years and has doubled during the past year. In spite of all that has been said about the filth of Seoul, it is a fairly clean place as Far Eastern cities go. Those who come direct from Peking or other inland cities of China exclaim in admiration over the broad, level and comparatively clean streets of the Korean capital. Seoul has not made notable advance in the line of public buildings. The beautiful and classic, though severe, lines of the Roman Catholic cathedral dominate the town from the architectural standpoint. The French, English and Russian legation buildings are imposing enough, but they are not conspicuous. Almost all the Korean government buildings are still in the pure Korean style. Some little use has been made of brick and corrugated iron, but the effect is not pleasing. The two styles do not harmonise. The 45 ^ THE PASSING OF KOREA crude, cheap foreign buildings of the Chinese merchants are incongruous with the general tone of Korean buildings, above which they tower in all the blankness of brick and mortar. The Japanese have everywhere preserved the tinder-box character of their architecture. Some of them are beginning to use brick and stone, and the general tendency seems to be in the direction of more solid and enduring forms of architecture. Foreign residence is gravitating toward the hills between the city wall and the river, three miles away. The time is approach- ing when we shall ha\e here a quarter corresponding to the “ Bluff ” in Yokohama or the “ Hill ” in Kobe. These hills form an ideal place for foreign residence. They are high, well wooded and conveniently situated, and soon a second line of electric tramway between Seoul and the river will make these suburban places easily accessible at all times. The problems of proper water-supply and sewerage are still to be soh ed. An American syndicate are arranging to put in a good system of water-works, and until that is done little can be accomplished in the way of sewerage. As for passenger transportation, Seord has made more advance than the average port in the Far East. The American- Korean Electric Company operates about nine miles of surface road on the trolley system. It is a distinct success. The Koreans are good patrons of the road, and the numbers carried ha\e increased steadily from the \’ery start. The employees are largely Koreans, both in the power house and on the line everywhere. It is the unanimous opinion of the Americans who operate the road, that the Koreans make competent hands in e\ ery depart- ment of the work. They have almost displaced Japanese both as mechanicians and overseers. This is a striking testimonial, and one that should hat'e weight in settling the question whether, as so many foreigners seem to think, the Korean is incapable of attaining proficiency in the field of applied science. The same company supplies electric light to all and sundry, but as yet there are very few municipal lights in the streets. RESIDENCE OF THE AMERICAN CONSUL-GENERAL MODERN IMPROVEMENTS 459 Each Korean is supposed to hang out a lamp at night. These serve at least , to make the darkness visible. Korean high officials still cling to their four-man chairs, but the middle-class officials have taken kindly to the jinrikisha, a A'ehicle which has come into use only during the last five or six years. I have mentioned the railroads as being the greatest material improvement yet instituted in Korea, opening, as they do, great tracts of farming land which were formerly almost closed to the world, because of the difficulties of transportation ; but another important step has been taken in the erection of a large number of lighthouses along the dangerous coast of the peninsula. This has been undertaken b}^ the Imperial Customs, and is being pushed vigorously. Its importance can hardly be overestimated. The dangerous nature of the coast is well shown by the fact that it has been deemed necessary to build over thirty light- houses. Many more than half of these are on the shorter western coast. Late years have developed a fairly efficient postal system, and Korea is a member of the International Postal Union. The system has proved an unmixed blessing to the Koreans, although it has always shown a large deficit at the end of the year. The Japanese have now taken over all postal and telegraph offices, and it may be that their efficiency will be largely increased. One encouraging feature of all these changes is that the Koreans accept them gladly and make free use of them. They are quick to see the advantage of quick communication. But with all the beginnings that have already been made toward a higher economic life, it must be confessed that as yet they are only beginnings. The commercial centres are as 3'et objects of wonder to the countryman, and the new life has hardly taken hold of the masses. Nor will it do so until education has laid its beneficent hand upon them and the standard of civic morals has been greatly elevated. These things are of greater immediate importance than economic progress, for upon them 460 THE PASSING OF KOREA depend the ultimate benefits of such progress. Until justice is again blindfolded, and a man can secure redress for wrongs and be secure in the enjoyment of the results of his own labour, railroads, telegraphs and postal facilities can be only added in- struments of oppression. Special emphasis should be laid upon the forward movement of missions along eleemosynary lines. The well-equipped Sever- ance Memorial Hospital has been lately completed and is doing a work of untold value. The munificence of friends in America has also resulted in the erection and equipment of excellent foreign hospitals in Fusan and Pyeng-Yang. The Young Men’s Christian Association is erecting, by the munificence of Mr. John Wanamaker, a handsome and commodious building in Seoul, where the association has made surprising advances and bids fair to prove an elevating instrument of enormous potency. Rapid advancement is being made along the line of publication, and the present plan of cooperation between the different Protestant missions promises large returns in every field of moral, intellectual and social activity. CHAPTER XXXy THE FUTURE OF KOREA I T will be seen from the foregoing chapters, especially those in which the actions of Japan have been traced, why I name this book “ The Passing of Korea.” Japan by a series of successful wars has secured a position from which she can dictate to Korea. That this is satisfactory to any of the other treaty powers can hardly be believed. They acquiesce in it for personal convenience. There are very cogent reasons why the arrangement should be distasteful to British, German and Ameri- can merchants. This point is worth careful study. The forced agreement of last November included a clause in which Japan promised to carry out the terms of the treaties between Korea and the other powers. Now these treaties guarantee to the subjects of the different governments extraterritorial rights in Korea. They are under the legal jurisdiction of their own consular author- ities. These treaties also fix, in a general way, the amount of customs duties to be levied on foreign imports. It is clear that these two things are of great importance to American and other foreign trade in the peninsula; but since the conclusion of the so-called “ agreement ” of November some of the leading Japa- nese papers have strongly advocated the setting aside of the extra- territorial rights of foreigners in Korea, on the ground that this will facilitate the establishment of uniform courts of justice. These papers must think that the powers interested are so impressed by Japanese military successes that any proposals she may broach will be acceded to without opposition, — an opinion in which the attitude of the American government certainly tends to confirm them. How otherwise would semi-official organs of 462 THE PASSING OF KOREA the Japanese government venture the wild proposal to break another of Japan’s recent promises? , Japan began and carried through this whole matter by the clever use of misinformation and broken promises, which suc- /cessfully hoodwinked the American public. For this reason I / urge with all the power at my command that the course of events / should be carefully watched by those who are interested in the / preservation of the principle of an open door in the Orient, and I the preservation of rights which, though only partially utilised as yet, are full of potentialities for the future ; and I urge that immediate steps be taken to forestall the concession to Japan, by the executive department of our government, of the right to dominate the persons and the interests of American citizens in Korea. y My belief that vigilance is necessary is based upon the follow- / ing consideration. The treaty-making power is vested in Con- / \ gress and not in the executive. The latter cannofadd a single I word to a treaty between the United States and a foreign power. / It follows that the executi\'e cannot abrogate, or drop a single I word from, an existing treaty. Is it not pertinent, then, to ask j by what authority our treaty obligations to Korea were so sum- ‘ mar'ily imp aired? If the clau se by which we guarantee to use our good offices to help Korea in case she is oppressed can be ignored by our executive officials, why should they not be able to turn over our nationals to Japanese jurisdiction or consent to a change in jyorean customs tariffs w hich l^:ould kill our jpromising trade ? This would be only a natural outcome of the manifest tendency ^ of our executive to assume legislative functions. TJie t roub le is that Americans do not realise that tire tenffe r feelin g of Japan toward us politically is based upon the-facE-that w£ are giving her every opportunity_t o kill u s commercially in the Far East. But even tlie~ establishment of a proteHoratelBy Japan would V not necessarily mean the certain destruction of Korean nationality if it were carried out along internationally legal lines. Japanese statesmen who are supposed to represent the real feelings of the THE FUTURE OF KOREA 463 Japan government announce that Korea has not been annexed but is still a separate state. There is one fact which belies this statement, and shows conclusively that Korea can never become an autonomous power except through some great international ■cataclysm which is not at present contemplated. This fact is that Japan manifestly intends to allow Korea to be filled with Japanese subjects, and so rapidly, that within a decade they shall form a body strong enough to hold Korea in the event of an armed pro- test on the part of the Korean people. This enormous inrush of Japanese is not the result of a glut of labour or a lack of oppor- tunity in Japan, for, as has been recently shown in a most illu- minating book,^ the arable land in Japan is but half utilised. The present deplorable famine in that country, which has called forth the laudable sympathy of Americans, was doubtless greatly ag- gravated, if it was not actually caused, by the rush of able-bodied workmen to Korea, where, partially freed from the restraints of their strict police surveillance, they could reap golden harvests by taking advantage of the helplessness of the Koreans. This , is the darkest cloud which overhangs Korea, and it is one that has no silver linkig. UF&ilsdh:::is~tlMT-Kai:eaAs_laJiin,g Jier. place ■ in line with 'PolancMh^rmenia a^ t he Congo “ Free ” State. The question arises, what should Korea do under tfi^'e~ciT^~ ■eumstances? What can she reasonably do to preserve from ex- tinction the people who form the nation? There is only one answer. She must bend herself to the task of educating the people up to a point where they can prove themselves the equals of their conquerors and, by the very force of genuine manhood, exert an influence which shall counteract the contempt which the Japanese feel. This may not avail, for the Japanese are slow to show respect to any form of ability which cannot be measured in terms of military or brute force. To-day, in spite of America’s intellectual achievements, the Japanese are laughing in their sleeves' at us, because they think we are afraid of them; what, then, must they think of the Korean ? 1 The New Far East, by Thomas F. Millard. 464 THE PASSING OF KOREA Baron Kaneko, in his campaign of education in America, told us that Japan intended to colonise largely in Korea, but that she would discourage intimate relations between the two peoples, — that she would consider the Koreans a “ lower race.” Signifi- cant words these, which should be put alongside the specious protestations of Japanese statesmen that Koreans are to be humanely treated. Every day brings news of the existence of a surprising and hitherto unguessed-at warmth of feeling for their country on the part of Koreans. This has given the lie to those special pleaders for Japan who have denied the existence of patriotism in Korea, and gives promise of a determination to do whatever may be done to weld the Korean people into a peaceful but intelligent and prosperous body which even the Japanese will be slow to stig- matise as contemptible. As to the agencies at hand for the carrying on of this important work, a few words here will not be out of place. Without doubt the most powerful agency will be the American missionaries now resident in Korea. Not even the Japanese can openly object to any efforts that are put forth for the elevation of the intellectual and moral condition of that people, and there are special reasons for believing that only those who can speak pthe language, and thus can get near to the Korean heart, will be able to carry out a thorough consistent and continuous plan for the vindication of Korea’s claim to intellectual capacity. The Viissionaries are set apart from all political complications, and their efforts for Korea can affect political affairs only as a stiffen- ing of Korea’s moral fibre and a thorough awakening of her dormant intellectual life shall make inevitable her reinstatement in the regard of the Japanese themselves. In this great work the American people ought to be deeply interested, and with it they should be more closely identified than by an occasional word of sympathy. If there is an y nation on earth that deserves the active and substantial aid of the American people that nation Ts Korea. We were the first ^ ^Tsterr L4la^:er- THE FUTURE OF KOREA 465 to conclude a treaty with her, and_in making that treaty we guaranteed to keep a watchful eye upon her safety and in- terests^ For twenty-five 'TeaTS~‘ American representatives and other residents in Korea reiterated the statement that we stood for the “ square deal,” for the ascendency of right as against mere brute force, and Korea had a right to regard our govern- ment as the one above all others wliich._AV£ml£L.demur at any encroachment upon her— independence. But when the time of c^fficulty approached and America’s disinterested friendship was to be called upon to prove the genuineness of its oft-repeated protestations, we deserted her with such celerity, such cold- heartedness and such a refinement of contempt that the 'blood of every “decent A.merican‘'citizen in^Korea boiled with indigna- tion. While the most loyal, -cultured and--patriotic Koreans were committjog suicide one after the other because they would not survive the death of their count]5^7~thWAlhenca:n' Minister was toasting the perpetrators of the outrage in bumpers of champagne; utterly callous to'tlTCMearth-4hr-ees -ciTan:eraprre'*^ich had treated American citizens with a courtesy'WndWbnsideration they had enjoyed in no other Oriental country. .. "How'can we, th'e’Arrrerican people, prove to the Koreans that we were not accessory to this act which was so contrary to the principles we have professed to hold ? There is only one way, — by helping them to the one thing that will enable them to hold together as a nation, and give them time and opportunity to prove the falsity of the libellous statements that have been so freely circulated, and which have temporarily alienated the good- will of so many of our people. That one thing is education. The Koreans have awakened to the fact that this, which should have been their first consideration many years ago, is now their last resort, and they are clamouring for education. I believe there are thousands of Koreans who will open their purses and subscribe generously to the funds required for this great work. Much is already being done by the various missions, but it is necessarily circumscribed and cramped by the lack of funds. 466 THE PASSING OF KOREA What is needed is a wide-spread and thorough canvass of the entire empire for the purpose of getting the subject rightly be- fore the Korean people. There would be nothing in this sugges- tive of opposition to Japan. On the contrary, every effort should be expended with special reference to codperation with whatever plans the dominant power may have formed for common school education. Korea can gain nothing by holding back and offering to the plans of Japan a sulky resistance. They are face to face with a definite condition, and theories as to the morality of the forces which brought about the condition are wholly academic. My discussion of these forces in the foregoing pages is partly by way of record and partly to awaken the American people to the duty which lies upon them. The Koreans need help in establish- ing such a system as I have hinted at above. They will do all they can, but the question arises whether generous-minded people in America will come to the aid of the Koreans and give their personal services or financial support to such a movement. Is there any man or body of men in this country who will seize the opportunity to found in the city of Seoul an institution of learn- ing which shall be the nucleus, the rallying-ground, of a great national movement? It is the opinion of those most conversant with the feeling of the Korean people that there is no other place in the world where money invested in education will bring larger, surer or more beneficent results. Index Abuses by Japanese, 213-220. Admiral Yi Sun-sin, 98. Adoption of child, 365. As:glutinative language, 300. Agricultural implements, 269. Agriculture, 269. Ajuns, 52. Alexaieff, Kir, 156, 159. Allen, Dr. H. N., 125, 141. Alliance, Anglo-Japanese, 176. Alphabet, Attempt at, 76. Alphabet, The present, 92. American expedition, 118. American imports, 286. American interests, 462. American-Korean Electric Company 458. American legation withdrawn, 222. America’s duty, 465. Anglo-Japanese alliance, 176. Animal stories, 385. Animals, 19. Annara rice, 174. Architecture, 241, 333. Art, 330. Architectural, 333; bijouterie in, 331 ; ceramics, 334; colour in, 332; dec- orations, 333 ; embroidery, 334 ; form, 332; grotesque, 333; inlaid work, 334; mural decoration, 333; painting, 334; perspective in, 331. Assassination of Queen, 137. Astronomical observatory, 291. Banishment, 63. Banks, 237. Barter, 238. Battle of Chemulpo, 199. Battlefields, 391. Bears, 22. Beating as punishment, 64. Bell of Seoul, 93. Bell of Silla, 73, 290. Bell, Legend of, 328. Belles lettres, 307. Biography, 308 Birds, 23. Blackmail, 67. Blood-bridge, 292. Boat, The tortoise, 298. Boats, 260. Bomb and mortar, 298. Bridges, 253. Bridges, Suspension, 254. Brokers, House, 282. Brown, J. McLeavy (C. M. G.), 150,, 156, 158, 159, [7^, 233. Bruguiere, Bishop, no. Buddhas, 295. Buddhism, 404. Buddhism introduced, 73. Buddhism outlawed, 91. Buddhism revived, 174. Buddhism supreme, 78. Buddhist excesses, 82. Buddhist relics, 292. Buddhist stories, 378. Building, 241. Bullocks, Pack, 255. Burial, 295. Burial customs, 445. By-products, 270. Capital, Seoul becomes, go. Capital punishment, 61. Carts, 252. Cash, 234. Caste, 50. Cattle, 19. Cave, Death, 298. Census of 1677, 107. Census of 1776, 108. Ceramic art, 102, 273. Ceramics, 334. Cereals, 15. Chain-gang, The, 64. Chair, Sedan, 263. Change in government, 49. Characteristics, 29. Chemulpo, 456. Chess, 280. Chinese conservatism, 7. Chinese ideograph, 76. Chinese innovations, 75. Chinese predominant, 126. Chinhan, 71. Ch'oe Chi-wun, 310. Chong i\Iong-ju, 89. 468 INDEX Christian missions. 126, 464. Christianity and temperament, 33. Chumong, 72. Circulating library, 31 1. Climate, 10. Coal-mines. 274. Coinage, 234. Commerce, 2S1. Commercial morality, 284. Concubinage, 356, 369. Confucian school, 338. Confucian stories, 373. Confucianism, 405. Consanguineous marriage, 81. Conservatism, 7, 34. Coolies demanded, 210. Corruption, Official, 50. Counterfeiting, 177. Couriers, 268. Cromlechs, 294. Cruelty, 43. Currency, 178, 234. Customs of people, 398. Customs, Maritime, 233, 285. Dai Ichi Ginko, 178. Dancing Girls, 318, 357. Decapitation, 61. Decorations, 333. Decorations, House, 250. Deer, 22. Deer blood as medicine, 22. Denny, Judge O. N., 127. Detectives, 396. Dialects. 304. Diamond Mountain, 292. Dismemberment, 61. Divination, 422, 425. Divorce, 368. Doctors, Female, 353. Dogs, 21. Dogs as food, 21. Dolmens, 294. Dominoes, 280. Donkeys, 264 Dravidian dialects, 300. Drums, 316. Dye, Gen. William, 139. Ear and nose mound, loi. Eclipse, Averting an, 430. Education, 335, 337, 338, 465. Electric company, 159. Electric light, 458. Electrical works, 458. Embroidery, 334. Emeute oi 1882, 122. Eineute of 1884. 125. Emperor, The, 343. Accession, 114, 344; at Russian Le- gation. 345 ; and Americans, 347 ; difficulties, 344; firmness, 348 ; kind- ness, 346: superstition, 346. Emperor’s protest. The, 220, 223. Empire declared, 157. Eunjin image, 296. Euphony, 304. Examination, National, 79, 337. Exorcism, 359, 407. Exorcists, 413, 427. Exports, 285. Extortion, 67. Faction:;, 50. Fall of Kogurjm, 75. Fall of Koryu, 89. Fall of Pakche, 75. Fall of Silla, 77. Fauna, 19. Ferry, 253. Fetiches, 41 r. Feudalism, Japanese, 3. Feudalism lacking, 80. Fiction, 310. Fire mountains, 267. Firearms, Japanese, 95. Fish, 25, 271. Floors, 245. Flora, 12. Flowers, 18. Flute, The Jade, 297. Flutes, 315. Folk-lore, 273. Fords, 253. Foreign trade, 284. Fortune-telling, 422. Foulk, George C., 298. Foundations of house, 243. Foxes. 22. Freebooters, 86. French expedition, 117. French priests executed, 115. French vessels wrecked, iii. Fruits, 14. Fuel, 271. Funeral of Queen, 157. Funeral procession, 437, 453. Funeral rites, 445. Fusan, 456. Fusan trading station, 93, lo2. Future of Korea, 461. Gambling, 280. Game birds, 23. INDEX 469 Games, 276. Gates with monkeys, 251. Gene7'al Sherma7i, The, 1 16. Generosity, 36. Geomancy, 437, 441. Ginseng, 18, '270. Go-between, Professional, 359. Gold mining, 274. Gold-mining license, 229. Golden age, 90. Golden pagoda, 291. Goldsmiths, 273. Government, 295. Gojo Maru, The, 257. ‘Grammar, 301. Grave desecration, 455. Grave sites, 443. Greathouse, Clarence, 168. Greek Church Mission, 167. Guilds, 281. Hall, Capt. Basil, no. Hamil, Hendrik, 106. Han Kyu-sul, 221. Hanabusa, 119. Hasegawa, Marshal, 212. Heating houses, 245. Hideyoshi, 94. Historical works, 83, 307. Hong-du invasion, 86. Honorifics, 302. Horse relay, 268. Horses, 19. Hospital, Severance Memorial, 460. Hospital at Fusan, 460. Hospital at Pyeng-yang, 460. Hospitality, 37. House brokers, 282. House decoration, 250. House site, 246. House tax, 228. Houses, 241. Hunting, 275. IjiCHi, General, 190. 1 1-chin society, 210. Images, 295, 296. Imagination, 327. Imbert, Bishop, no. Imitation, 308. Imports, 285. Imprisonment, 64. Improvements, Modem, 256. Independence Club, 148, 150, 159, 161, 165, 166. Independence guaranteed, 204. Industries, 269. Inlaid work, 334. Inouye, Count, 132, 133, 136. Instrumental music, 314. Insurance, 281. Interest on money, 283. Intrigue, 180. Intrigue, Russian, 192. Invasion by Hong-du, 86. Invasion, Japanese, 94, 95. Invasion, Japanese second, loO. Invasion by Kitan, 82. Invasion, Manchu, 103, 104. Invasion, Mongol, 83. Iron, 274. Ironclad, 298. I to. Marquis, 204, 221, Jade flute, 297. Jaisohn, Dr. Philip, 124, 150, 152, 154, 157 - Japan, causes of transformation, 5. Japan, Early relations with, 74. Japan invaded by Mongols, 84. Japan-Russia War, 185. Japanese abuses, 213-220. Japanese army of invasion, 95, Japanese civilisation, 6. Japanese corsairs, 86. Japanese feudalism, 3. Japanese invasion, 94. Japanese protectorate, 221. Japanese second invasion, 100. Japanese suzerainty, 102. Ji^gy^ The, 257. Jingu, Empress, 74. Junks, 261. Justice, 56, 59, 67. Kato, 95, 96. Kija, 69. Kija's money, 234. Kija’s well, 289. Kijun, 71. Kim Pu-sik, 83, 310. Kim Yung-jun, 170. Kmshitc marti, 207. Kitan invasion, 82, Kites, 278. Koguryu, Fall of, 75. Koguryu, origin, 72. Konnmgo, The, 315. Konishi, 95, 96. Koryetz, The, 193, 200. Koryu, Fall of, v Koryu, origin, 78. Kuk-min society, 21 1. Kwaga, The, 337. INDEX 470 Labour songs, 319. Land tax, 225. Language, 28, 300. Language schools, 339. Lawyers unknown, 66. Legation guards, 188. Legation withdrawn, 222. Legend of Bell, 328. Legends, 69, 387. Legendre, Mr., i68. Libraries, 309, 31 1. Lighthouses, 459. Literature, Chinese, 79, 306. Lobanoff-Yamagata Agreement, 152. Love stories, 31 1. Low, Hon. Frederick, 118. Luck, Worship of, 412. Mahan, 71. Manchu invasion, 103. Manchu monument, 106. Mararanta, 73. Markets, 239. Marriage, Consanguineous, 81. Masanpo, 176. Mathematics, 339. Medicine, 18. Medium, Spiritual, 414. Megata, Mr., 212. Military rank, 80. Min Yong-ik, 124. Minerals, ii. Mining, 273. Mining, American, 150. Mirror, Magic, 297. Mi)yoks, 295. Missionaries, 464. Missions, Protestant, 126. Miura. Viscount, 134. Miura’s trial, 143. Flob law, 51. Modern improvements, 456. Mollendorf, P. G. von, 123, 233. Monasteries, 80, 293. Monetary troubles, 177. Money, 234. Money, Paper, 239. Mongol excesses, 84. Mongol invasion, 83. Mongol invasion of Japan, 84. Mongol Queen, 87. Monkeys on gates, 251. Monument of Manchus, 106. Monuments, 288. Morality, 41. Mortgages, 283. IMotherhood, 353. Mudang, The, 358, 413, 414. Muhak, 91. Mural decoration, 333. Murder of Queen, 137. Music, 314. Instruments, 315; notation, 319; score, 317; time, 314; vocal, 316. Myths, 393. Nagamori scheme, 208. Namhan, King at, 105. Neutral zone, 189. Neutrality declared, 189. Newspapers, 151, 340. Nickel coinage, 173, 177, 236. Novels, 310. Observatory, Astronomical, 291. Obstetrics, 355. Om, Lady, i8o. Omens, 388. Official indirection, 57. Opening of Korea, 114. Oppert. 27, 298. Oratory, 305. Orchestra, 314. Origin of Koguryu, 72. Origin of Korea, 69. Origin of Koryu, 78. Origin of Pakche, 73. Origin of people, 27. Origin of Silla, 72. Padok, 280. Pagoda in Seoul, 87. Paint, 250. Painting, 334. Pakche, Fall, 75. Pakche, origin, 72. Pak Yong-hyo, 132. Patisu, The, 359, 413, 421. Paper, 14. Paper money, 239. Parks, 249. Parties, Political, 93. Passions, Stories of, 395. Patriotism. 80. Pavlow, Mr. A., 169. Pearls. 25. Pedagogy, 336. Peddlers' guild, 162, 204, 281. Penal Code, 6r. Persecution of Roman Catholics, 109. 1 10, 1 14, 1 1 8. Philology. 300. Physicians, Female, 353. Physiognomt', 27. INDEX 471 Pigs, 20. Pitch-penny, 278. Play-grounds, 249. Plot against Queen, 135. Po-an Society, 209. Poems. 321. Poetry, 314. Poisoning, 61. Police, 62. Policy, Japanese, 191. Political parties, 93. Pony. Pack. 256. Popular feeling, 51. Population, 107, 108. Position, Geographical, 10. Post-office, 459. Postal Union, 167. Precipice of flowers, 323. Prefectural governments, 53. Press, Public, 340. Pride, 38. Priestcraft, 78. Primogeniture, 68, 363. Prisons, 64. Reforms of Yi T’a-jo, 90, 93. Relics, 288. Relics of Kija, 70. Relics of Koryu, 81. Relics of Silla, 73. Religion, 31, 403. Religious ceremony, 294. Revenue, 175, 225. Rice, 15. Roads, 252. Roofs. 244. Rogers, Rear-Admiral, 118. Roze, Admiral, expedition, 117. Roman Catholic persecution, 109, no, 1 14, 1 18. Roman Catholicism, 106, 107, loS, 109, 1 1 2. Roosevelt appealed to, 220, 223. Russia and Masanpo, 176. Russian intrigue, 192. Russian legation. King’s asylum, 146- Russian policy, 183. Russian timber concession, 185. Proclamation, Japanese, 191. Progressives organize, 120. Property rights, 363. Prophecy, 90, 389. Protectorate, Japanese, 221. Protest of Emperor, 220. Protestant missions, 126. Protocol of Feb. 23, 1904, 204. Proverbs, 399. Public speaking, 305. Publication, 340. Pukhan built, 108. Punishments, 62, 130, 367. Pyeng-yang, 69. Pyonhan, 71. Quarrels, 42. ()uelpart Island, 87. Queen degraded, 142. Queen's assassination, 137. Queen’s funeral, 157. Queen’s party dominant, 120. Railway concession, 167. Railway, Seoul-Chemulpo, 150. Railway, Seoul-Fusan, 160. Railway, Seoul-wiju, 179. Railways, 262. Rainy season, 1 1 . Rebellion of Yi Kwal, 103. Reforms, 130, 152, 154. Reforms of 1730, 107. Reforms, Russia against, 183. Sables, 22. Sale of office 51. Salt-making, 272. Salt tax, 228. Sanitation, 241. Satsuma ware, 102. Sewage, 247. Scenery, 12. Schools, 335. Private, 335, 340; grading, 336; pedagogy, 336 ; Confucian, 338 ; middle, 339; language, 339 ; mission, 340 ; books, 341 ; industrial, 341 ; technical, 341. Schufeldt, Commodore, and United States treaty, 123. Scientific books, 307. Sea traffic, 262. Seclusion of women, 349. Seoul, 457. Seoul becomes capital, 90. Seoul taken by Japanese, 97. Sepulture, 295. Sericulture, 273. Serpent worship, 409. Sev'erance Memorial Hospital, 460. Shamanistic tales, 384. Sheep, 20. Shop runners, 282. Shops, 282. Siege of Namhan, 105. Signal fires, 267. Silk, 273. INDEX 472 Silla, F all of, 77. Silla, origin, 72. Silla consolidates Korea, 75. Silla kings’ tombs, 290. Silversmiths, 273. Simony, 51. Sinclon, 87. Singing, 316. Site, house, 246. Slavery as punishment, 432. Slavery, Female, 433. Slavery in Koryu, 81. Snake worship, 25. Snakes, 24. Songs, 316. Labour, 319; convivial, 323; fishing, 326. Sorceresses, 358. Speyer, A. de, 156, 157. Spirit of smallpox, 417, Spirit stories, 385. Spirits, 406. Spiritual medium, 414. Sports, 276. Stevens, Mr., 212. Stone images, 296. Stone fights, 276. Stories, Animal, 385; battlefield, 391; Bud- dhist, 378; Confucian, 373 ; customs, 398; detective, 396; legends, 387; myths, 393; omens, 388; passion, 395 ; prophecy, 389; Shaman, 383; spirit, 385; Uncle Remus, 386; wisdom, 392 ; women, 391. Story-tellers, Professional, 312. Streets, 247. Sungari, The, 193. Superstition, 403. Surprise wrecked. The, 116. Swinging, 279, 371. Taiwunkun, regent, 114. Dies, 158; resumes control, 140; re- tires, 120. Tangun, 69. Tangun altar, 288. Taxes, 225. Boat, 231; furs, 230; ginseng, 739; house, 228 ; land, 225 ; minerals, 229 ; poll, 232 ; salt, 228 ; special, 232; timber, 231. Telegraphs, 267. Temperament, 29. Testamentary rights, 363. Text-books, 341. Textile fabrics, 273. Tides, 1 1. Tigers, 21. Tile, 244. Timber concession, Russian, 185. Tombs, 298. Tombs of Silla kings, 290. Topography, ii. Tortoise boat, 98, 298. Torture, 65. Total abstinence, 108. Trade, 281. Trade, Foreign, 284. Trading station, Fusan, 93, 102. Tradition, 312. Transformation of Japan, Cause ofj 5. Translation of poems, 321. Transportation, 252. Travelling, 263. Trapping, 275. Treason, 62. Treaty with America, 123. Treaty with Japan, 120. Trees, 12. Trial at law, 58. Trial in Court, 66. Trial of Miura, 143. Triangles, 316. Truthfulness, 40. Turanian languages, 300. Turf, 246. Type-printing, 92. Uncle Remus’ Stories, 386. Variak, The, 196, 200. Vegetables, 17. Violins, 315. Vocal music, 316. Waeber, C., 141, 146, 150, 156. Waeber-Komura agreement, 152. Wall across Korea, 291. Wall of Seoul, 90. Walls, City, 250; house, 246; yard, 248. War, Japan-China, 127. Waste land scheme, 208. Water carriers, 259. Wealth, 68. Weapons, 95. Wiju, opening, 186. Wills, 363. Wiman, 70. Wisdom, stories, 392. Woman, 349. Amusements, 370; concubines, 356 INDEX 473 dancers, 357; divorce, 368; edu- cation, 360; grades, 350; low, 352; motherhood, 353 ; occupations, 353, 354; palace, 357; physician, 353; property rights, 360; punishments, 351; religious, 406; seclusion, 349; slavery, 359, 433 ; stories of, 391 ; titles, 371; wages, 360; work, 360; visiting, 352. Worship, Dragon, 41 1 ; fetich, 41 1 ; luck, 41 2 ; serpent, 409 ; spirits, 406. Yalu, timber concession, 185. Yi Keun-tak, 182. Yi Kwal’s Rebellion, 103. Yi Sun-sin, Admiral, 98. Yi T’a-jo, 88. Yi Yong-ik, 171, 173, 179, 180. Yongampo, Russians in, 185. Young Men’s Christian Association, 460. Yun Chi-ho, 136, 163, 165. Zithers, 315. f V I I {